《His And Her Marriage》 Chapter 1 Chapter 1 ¡°Lucian, I¡¯ve been married to you for three years, but you¡¯ve never once touched me. I¡¯ll give my blessing to you and your first crush by giving up on our marriage. Tomorrow, you¡¯re free to go after her. But for now, just make it up to me for my feelings for you all these years, please?¡± With that said, Roxanne Jarvis leaned down and pressed her lips to the man before her as though she was a moth drawn to fire. Her action was both frenzied and desperate. She knew this was a despicable move, but she had loved him for too long. All the while, she had suffered greatly, and now, all she wanted was a little constion. ¡°Roxanne, how dare you!¡± Lucian Farwell clenched his jaw as his fury sprang to life. His handsome face was as ck as thunder. He wanted to push her away, but the mounting desire in his body was too overpowering. It threatened to burn away all his capacity for reason. How dare she scheme against me? ¡°I¡¯m afraid of nothing¡­¡± A lone drop of tear slipped out of the corner of Roxanne¡¯s eye. Her kisses grew rapid as her inexperienced hands fumbled around his body hastily. All she wanted was to own him entirely for once. A wave of fury crashed through Lucian. s, things weren¡¯t under his control. Soon, his instincts took over. As his body burned up, he lost his rationalepletely. The next day, Roxanne woke up at dawn. Tamping down on her difort, she got out of bed and put on her clothes. After that, she pulled out the divorce agreement she had prepared from the drawer and ced it on the bedside table. Before leaving, she gazed at the man in the bed. ¡°Lucian, I¡¯ll set you free. From today onward, we shall go on separate ways. We will have nothing to do with each other anymore,¡± Roxanne murmured. She averted her gaze and turned to leave. Her heart was full of bitterness and anguish as she stepped out of the Farwell residence. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. Roxanne had loved Lucian for seven years. She had a crush on him from her teenage years until her university days, so her biggest wish was to be his wife. s, Lucian despised her the moment she married into his family. Back then, his grandfather was critically ill and needed a joyous asion to hopefully ward off the bad luck. As luck would have it, she was selected to be Lucian¡¯s wife. Her greedy father and stepmother immediately agreed to the marriage. She could still remember how delighted she was as she waited for the night of her wedding. Yet, when Lucian showed up, he bore a disgusted expression. ¡°Roxanne, I¡¯ll have you know that the person I want to marry is Aubree Pearson. I never wanted to marry you! Only Aubree has the right to be my wife. You¡¯re not good enough for me,¡± he dered. Roxanne knew that Lucian wasn¡¯t obliged to love her. However, she still held on to the hope that the man would warm up to her one day. In the past three years of their marriage, she did her best to be a good and caring wife. Every night, she¡¯d prepare dinner so he coulde home to freshly cooked meals. No matter howte it was, she would only go to bed in peace after his return. If he got drunk at social events, she would take care of him meticulously instead of leaving him in someone else¡¯s hands. Whenever he got ill or hurt, she would be more worried than anyone else. Every winter, she would switch on the heater and fill the bathtub with hot water for him. In the morning, she¡¯d wake up earlier than usual to warm his clothes up so he wouldn¡¯t feel the cold. Nevertheless, he never loved her, and he never would. The day before yesterday was Roxanne¡¯s birthday, but Lucian went to the hospital to keep Aubree It was then that Roxanne finally understood that her one-sided feelings would never be reciprocated. She would never make Lucian fall for her, for his heart belonged to another woman. Thus, Roxanne decided to give up. Lucian only roused by ten in the morning. The first thing he wanted to do after getting up was to choke Roxanne to her death. Lucian was the CEO of Farwell Group, known for his acuteness. No one in the corporate world was his match. Thus, he had never fallen for someone else¡¯s trap. Never in his wildest dreams did he expect to fall for that woman¡¯s trap! Simmering with anger, he nced around the room but didn¡¯t see Roxanne anywhere. Out of the corner of his eye, he spotted the document on the bedside table. ¡°What is that?¡± Lucian¡¯s brows furrowed as he picked up the document with the words ¡°Divorce Agreement¡± printed in bold text on the front page. His gaze narrowed dangerously. First, she resorted to that despicable trick to force me to have sex with her, and now she wants a divorce. Ha! How many tricks does she have up her sleeves? Lucian refused to believe that Roxanne wanted to divorce him for real. Getting to his feet, he put on his clothes and strode downstairs furiously. ¡°Did you see Roxanne?¡± he asked the butler, Lance. Taken aback, Lance replied swiftly, ¡°Mr. Farwell, Mrs. Farwell left home with her luggage before dawn.¡± Hearing that, Lucian halted in his tracks in surprise. Six yearster, at VR Medical Research Institute, Yartran. Roxanne had just stepped out of herboratory when her assistant, Linda, told her, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, Professor Lambert needs to talk to you. He wants to see you in his office.¡± After staying up the entire night, Roxanne was feeling drowsy. However, upon hearing Linda¡¯s words, she snapped out of her daze as her mind cleared. ¡°Did he say anything? Don¡¯t tell me my little rascals destroyed the research results again?¡± ¡°Apparently,¡± came Linda¡¯s answer. She shot Roxanne a sympathetic look. Roxanne was an efficient and capable woman. At a young age, she became the mentee of Harvey Lambert, the best professor in the medical world. With her outstanding capabilities, she was never reprimanded for her work. Nevertheless, that didn¡¯t stop her from being the scapegoat for her naughty sons. Lindaforted her, ¡°You spent three days in theboratory, so Archie and Benny were worried about you. They spent their days bumbling around in Professor Lambert¡¯s office. I think he got a few new white strands of hair from the trouble they caused.¡± Hearing that, Roxanne felt an iing headache. She couldn¡¯t help but find the situation funny, too. Six years ago, she left the Farwell residence and headed overseas without hesitation. Initially, she wanted to further her studies but soon discovered she was pregnant. Back then, she was caught in a dilemma on whether she should abort her children. When she arrived at the hospital, she changed her mind, for she couldn¡¯t bear to part with her children. In the end, she kept her children. Roxanne was pregnant with triplets¡ªtwo boys and a girl. During her delivery, her baby girl was born without any signs of life due to ack of oxygen, and only the boys survived. She nicknamed her sons Archie and Benny. The thought of her genius sons gave Roxanne utter bliss. However, she slumped her shoulders when she recalled she was about to get reprimanded, thanks to their actions. Chapter 2 Chapter 2 Roxanne hurried to Harvey¡¯s office. After pushing the door open, she spotted the little rascals inside. They were sitting on the couch in the office and swinging their legs nonchntly. The boys lit up at the sight of Roxanne. Scrambling off the couch, they ran toward her excitedly. ¡°Mommy, you¡¯re finally done! I thought you¡¯d be staying in theboratory forever!¡± ¡°Mommy, you¡¯ve worked hard! Are you tired? Sit down. I¡¯ll give you a massage.¡± They led Roxanne to the couch so she could take a seat. As Roxanne took in their concern, she suddenly felt it was worth it to get yelled at. ¡°Look at how obedient you are. You weren¡¯t like this when you hacked into myputer earlier!¡± Harvey huffed angrily behind his desk. Archie dered, ¡°It was all your fault, Professor Lambert! You kept asking Mommy to work overtime. Look, she¡¯s getting malnourished!¡± ¡°That¡¯s right! Mommy¡¯s an ordinary human being. How could you ask her to work day and night?¡± Benny chimed in as he kneaded Roxanne¡¯s shoulder. His temper spiking, Harvey gave a bark ofughter and responded, ¡°You¡¯re too overprotective of her! Everyone in the research institute does the same!¡± With that said, he shook his head and turned to Roxanne. ¡°How did your research go?¡± Roxanne shot him a grin. ¡°It went smoothly. I¡¯ll send the data to youter.¡± She paused before asking, ¡°Have you restored the data in yourputer?¡± Harvey ran a hand through his hair in frustration. ¡°It has been an hour, but I still can¡¯t restore anything.¡± Amused, Roxanne patted Benny¡¯s hand. ¡°Benny, go restore Professor Lambert¡¯sputer. Don¡¯t be naughty. What if he loses some important data?¡± Benny immediately replied, ¡°That won¡¯t happen. I prepare a backup and various security levels every time. He won¡¯t lose a thing!¡¯ As he said that, he trotted over to Harvey and restored thetter¡¯sputer. The little boy¡¯s fingers typed on the keyboard furiously and produced lines of codes. A few minutester, theputer screen blinked and returned to normal. Harvey took one look at hisputer in admiration. He had to admit his mentee¡¯s sons were geniuses. At a young age, Archie was already a medical genius. He was capable of differentiating thousands of herbs and showcased his talent in medicine. He also had a sharp eye for investments. Benny, on the other hand, was interested in programming. He was now a little hacker who was very sensitive to numbers. Like his brother, he also did great in investments. Besides, both of them were adorable, mature, and cheeky. Thus, he couldn¡¯t bring himself to yell at them whenever they kicked up a fuss. Instead, he could only vent his frustrations on Roxanne. Roxanne immediately offered an apology. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Professor Lambert. Please don¡¯t me the kids for their naughty acts.¡± Please don¡¯t yell at me, too. I can¡¯t always be their scapegoat, can I? Harvey chuckled at her reaction. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I didn¡¯t summon you here to yell at you. I have a task for you. Listen, I¡¯ve been nning on setting up a research institute back in the country. It will be focusing on traditional medicine. However, I¡¯m still busy here and can¡¯t leave for now. After careful consideration, I¡¯ve decided to send you back!¡± Roxanne had no idea he would say that. She froze and hesitated. Go back home? She never thought of going back to that ce again after leaving six years ago. After all, she didn¡¯t have a family or someone she cared about back there. Besides, she had grown to love Yartran. Her first reaction was to reject the offer. ¡°Professor Lambert, I¡ª¡± Harvey interjected, ¡°Roxanne, I know you don¡¯t want to head back, but I hope you¡¯ll consider my suggestion. You¡¯ve been my student for years, so I believe you know how wide and profound traditional medicine is. There aren¡¯t enough herbs here for you to research. In Chanaea, you¡¯ll have all the herbs you want. You can use and research them freely. Most importantly, many hidden and prestigious families are in possession of ancient medical skills in Chanaea. I remember you¡¯re interested in that, right? That was why I made the suggestion for you to return to Chanaea. You have a bright future ahead of you. Besides, you¡¯re different now. No matter what happens, or who you run into, I believe you can handle everything calmly, right?¡± At his words, Roxanne fell silent. He¡¯s right. I¡¯ve changed into apletely different person now. I can face all obstacles without fear. Besides, it has been six years. Perhaps that man is already married to his first crush. Why am I afraid? With that thought in mind, Roxanne took a deep breath and nodded solemnly. ¡°All right, then. Professor Lambert, I¡¯ll listen to you and return to Chanaea.¡± Harvey beamed. ¡°I¡¯m d you made up your mind quickly. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll ask Linda toe with you. I¡¯ll also arrange a team to help you out there.¡± ¡°Great. Thank you, Professor Lambert!¡± Roxanne gave a curt nod. As they were conversing, Archie and Benny shared a look. They could sense each other¡¯s excitement. Mommy¡¯s finally returning to Chanaea! In fact, the two of them had been dying to head back for ages. After all, their father was back there. They wanted to see him in person. Of course, they also wanted to teach him a lesson for deserting his wife and children. Two dayster, Roxanne and the boysnded at the international airport in Horington. Roxanne was finally back in Chanaea after six years. After disembarking the ne, they walked out of the hallway. Just then, Benny squeezed his legs together and tugged at the corner of Roxanne¡¯s skirt. ¡°Mommy, I need to pee now.¡± Roxanne and Archie giggled at the sight of his urgent expression. ¡°Okay. Let¡¯s go, then.¡± She reached out to ruffled Benny¡¯s hair. At once, Benny trembled violently. ¡°Stop it, Mommy. I¡¯m going to pee my pants!¡± With a chuckle, Roxanne led him to the restroom. Archie then brought him into the restroom while Roxanne waited outside with their luggage. She didn¡¯t forget to send her professor a text to inform him about their arrival. Suddenly, a familiar voice rang out. ¡°Idiots! How could so many of you fail to keep an eye on a little girl? What use are you if you can¡¯t even There was a hint of fury in the man¡¯s melodious, deep, and rich voice. It was pleasing to the ears. Roxanne¡¯s hands, which were initially typing out a message on her phone, froze instantly. Six years had passed since shest heard this voice, but she still found it eerily familiar. Looking up, Roxanne spotted the tall figure some distance away. Standing not far off was a tall man. His ck suit entuated his long legs and added a touch of elegance to his figure. Even in the crowd, he was eye-catching. Roxanne could see his perfect side profile from her line of sight. His tall nose and sculpted features were the envy of many. In fact, he looked so handsome that other N?velDrama.Org content. men paled inparison to him. Lucian Farwell! Roxanne¡¯s heart clenched at the sight of him. She had no idea she¡¯d run into him on the day of her arrival. The feelings she had buried deep in her heart emerged temporarily, but she quickly put a lid on them. Her gaze turned frosty. She could finally appear calm before him. Right then, the boys emerged from the restroom. ¡°Mommy, we¡¯re done!¡± they dered cheerfully. Roxanne snapped out of her reverie and nearly had a heart attack. The first thought that popped up in her mind was that she needed to leave right away. I can¡¯t let Archie and Benny see him. They bear a resemnce to him. If they bump into each other, he¡¯ll definitely realize something¡¯s wrong! Roxanne refused to get involved with him yet again. Flustered, she urged, ¡°You¡¯re done? Come, let¡¯s go. You don¡¯t want your godmother to wait, do you?¡± Without waiting for a reply, she dragged her luggage away. Halfway through his phone call, Lucian heard a familiar voice and turned at his shoulder. From the corner of his eye, he spotted a familiar female figure. Roxanne Jarvis? Is that her? She¡¯s back? Lucian ran after her immediately, but her figure had already disappeared into the crowd. As his gaze turned dark, Lucian was about to explode with rage. She left the country so resolutely and even Leaving The Country After Divorce Chapter 2abandoned the kid. There¡¯s no way she¡¯s back! Chapter 3 Chapter 3 Roxanne¡¯s heart lurched to her throat and remained there as she hurried out of the airport. She kept turning at her shoulder to confirm he didn¡¯te after them. Fortunately, his figure remained nowhere to be seen even after they exited the airport. Roxanne could finally heave a sigh of relief. The kids found it strange that she kept turning her head to nce behind them. As Roxanne seemed anxious, they knew it wasn¡¯t the time to ask questions. Without a word, they allowed her to drag them out obediently. ¡°Roxanne! Archie! Benny!¡± A woman called from afar. The three of them lifted their heads and saw ady dressed in a suit, waving at them happily as she made their way to them. Roxanne rxed gradually at the sight of the woman. shing a smile, she said, ¡°Madilyn, it¡¯s been so long!¡± Madilyn Xander was her best friend back in university and was currently working as a doctor in her own family¡¯s hospital. Shortly after, Madilyn came to a stop before them and flung her arms around Roxanne. ¡°You¡¯re finally back home. I¡¯ve missed you so much!¡± she said in a friendly manner. Roxanne chuckled and replied, ¡°I¡¯ve missed you, too.¡± They¡¯ve been in touch over the years online but rarely got the chance to meet each other in real life. After giving her a hug, Madilyn squatted down and pulled the boys into a hug. ¡°My babies, do you miss me?¡± Archie and Benny giggled adorably before answering in unison, ¡°Of course we do! Aunt Madilyn, we even dreamed of you. You¡¯re still as pretty as ever!¡± ¡°How sweet of you!¡± Madilyn beamed happily after hearing their praise. Roxanne¡¯s guard was still up. She nced at the gate of the airport and said calmly, ¡°Let¡¯s go. We can talk back home.¡± Madilyn gave the boys a peck each on their cheeks before getting to her feet. After cing the luggage in her car truck, she ushered them into her car and sped away. At the same time, Lucian appeared at the gate of the airport. ¡°Cancel my schedule overseas,¡± he told his assistant, Cayden Lawson. Cayden gave a brief nod in acknowledgment. ¡°Mr. Farwell, we¡¯ve widened the search for Ms. Este. She¡¯s young and can¡¯t go far. Don¡¯t worry.¡± Ms. Este is Mr. Farwell¡¯s darling daughter. It¡¯s more crucial to find her. His work overseas isn¡¯t as important in this situation. Lucian¡¯s gaze turned dark as he strode toward the Maybach parked by the road. Soon, the car drove away. An hourter, Madilyn¡¯s car arrived in Durwest Garden. It was a residential area full of mansions. Roxanne had asked for Madilyn¡¯s help to rent a ce, and this was the house that Madilyn had gotten her. The four of them hopped out of the car and entered the new house under Madilyn¡¯s lead. ¡°The surroundings seem nice. I like this ce.¡± Satisfied, Roxanne turned to look at Madilyn. ¡°You¡¯re quite efficient, huh?¡± Madilyn arched a brow. ¡°I¡¯m your neighbor. The owner of this house moved to the capital and wanted to rent this ce out. I happened to stumble upon it. Whenever we¡¯re free, we can visit each other¡¯s ces.¡± Roxanne¡¯s lips curved as she bobbed her head in agreement. After she unpacked their stuff briefly, it was time for dinner. Hence, Madilyn brought them out for dinner. She had just driven into the restaurant¡¯s parking lot and was about to park her car when a little girl Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. ran out of a dark corner. Madilyn mmed on the brakes before her car could hit the little girl. In shock, she stared at the little girl who had copsed to the ground. Roxanne¡¯s heart was racing at the near ident, too. She turned to make sure her boys were fine before opening the door to get out. There was a young girl around five years old mere inches away from the car. She sat on the ground, clearly in a state of shock. Roxanne felt her heart soften at the sight. She made her way to the girl carefully before asking, ¡°Hey, are you hurt?¡± The young girl had a fairplexion and looked sweet with her hair braided up. She had a tall nose, huge eyes, and delicate features. Dressed in a pink fluffy dress, she hugged an expensive doll in her arms. Hearing Roxanne¡¯s voice, the little girl regained herposure and shook her head shyly. She didn¡¯t forget to eye Roxanne warily. Roxanne¡¯s heart stirred as she observed the little girl silently. After confirming that the little girl was unharmed, she heaved a sigh of relief inwardly and reached out to help the little girl up. She had just stretched her hand out when the little girl cowered back in fear. Roxanne¡¯s hand paused midair. shing an assuring smile, she exined, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I just want to help you up.¡± ncing around, she asked doubtfully, ¡°Where are your parents? Why are you alone?¡± The young girl hugged her doll tightly and shook her head without uttering a word. Roxanne¡¯s brows snapped together, for she had no idea how tomunicate with the girl. Madilyn and the boys soon got out of the car. Archie and Benny shared a curious look when they noticed the little girl remaining silent the entire while. She looks cute. Why isn¡¯t she talking? Could she be a mute? Chapter 4 Chapter 4 The same thought popped up in Roxanne¡¯s mind. Is this little girl a mute? Her sympathy for the little girl increased. In a gentle voice, she asked, ¡°Can you give me your hand?¡± With that, she stretched her hand outward. Despite staring at her timidly, the little girl seemed to be less rigid after hearing her words. Roxanne waited patiently for the little girl to ept her hand. After a long hesitation, the little girl finally reached out to take Roxanne¡¯s hand cautiously. Seeing that, Roxanne held her hand gently and helped her up. She didn¡¯t forget to check the little girl again for any injuries. Because of her action, they got physically closer to each other. The little girl felt soft and fluffy. She even smelled like milk. Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but recall her daughter, who was a stillborn baby. If she were to grow up well, she¡¯d be around this little girl¡¯s age. As that thought surfaced in her mind, Roxanne was ovee with heartache and regret. As if sensing her emotions, the little girl stayed put and gazed at her quietly. I know I shouldn¡¯t talk to strangers, but thisdy is really pretty. Strangely, I feel the urge to get close to her. At that moment, Madilyn remarked, ¡°Oh, what an adorable young girl. She¡¯s as adorable as our boys!¡± Roxanne nodded in agreement. ¡°I believe she got lost. Let¡¯s send her to the police station and see if we can get in contact with her family.¡± Right after she said that, the young girl gave her a slight tug. Roxanne looked down in confusion. The little girl was shaking her head profusely, her eyes turning red. She seemed like she was about to dissolve into tears any minute. Clearly, the little girl didn¡¯t want her to do that. Seeing the girl¡¯s distraught expression really tugged at Roxanne¡¯s heartstrings. She had no other choice, though. If she didn¡¯t send the little girl to the police station in time, she might be used of kidnapping thetter. Roxanne was in a dilemma. ¡°All right. We don¡¯t have to go to the police station.¡± She squatted down and tried to negotiate with the little girl. ¡°Do you have your parents¡¯ phone number? I can call them so they cane here to pick you up.¡± The little girl stopped shaking her head, but she slumped in dejection instead. As she didn¡¯t respond, Roxanne assumed she didn¡¯t have her parents¡¯ number. She was about to send her to the police station when the little girl moved. Roxanne watched as she pulled out a pencil and a post-it note. She then scribbled a phone number with the word ¡°Daddy¡± behind it before handing the note to Roxanne. After taking the note from her, Roxanne punched in the number belonging to the little girl¡¯s dad. ¡°Oh, she¡¯s indeed mute,¡± Archie and Benny muttered under their breaths. Roxanne stiffened and shot her sons a warning look. ¡°Don¡¯t be rude to her.¡± The boys straightened their backs and gave the little girl guilty smiles. ncing at them, the little girl inched nearer to Roxanne instinctively and reached out to grab the corner of Roxanne¡¯s dress. However, Roxanne didn¡¯t notice that as she was busy double-checking the phone number before making the call. Back in the Farwell residence, Lucian strode into the mansion angrily. ¡°Is Essie back?¡± The butler came to wee him. Wearing a worried expression, he said, ¡°No. I didn¡¯t see Ms. Este around.¡± After saying that, he realized the temperature surrounding his employer had dropped drastically. Lucian¡¯s lips thinned as he furrowed his brows. I¡¯ve searched everywhere I could. Where could she be? Did something happen to her? As that possibility urred to him, a faint gleam of malice shone in his eyes. It appeared as if he wanted nothing more than to destroy the entire world. Right then, ady d in thick makeup hurried into the mansion and asked anxiously, ¡°Lucian, I heard Essie went missing? Is it true? Did you find her?¡± Thedy was none other than Aubree, the one whom Lucian wanted to marry previously. Nevertheless, Lucian kept his authoritative aura before her. ¡°She¡¯s still missing. Now that you¡¯re here, I¡¯d like to know what you told Essie this afternoon. Why would she run away from home for no reason?¡± Aubree seemed surprised to hear his question as she stared at him incredulously. ¡°Lucian, what are you saying? Are you saying I did something to Essie?¡± Seemingly hurt, she added, ¡°I did nothing to her! Never mind if someone else misunderstands me. You¡¯ve seen how I treated her dearly over the years! Even though Essie treated me coldly, I didn¡¯t mind and took good care of her. I never yelled at her. No way would I do something to make her run away from home!¡± With her red-rimmed eyes and innocent expression, she was trying hard to convince Lucian that she had nothing to do with Este¡¯s disappearance. Deep down, she wanted nothing more than for the mute little girl to disappear forever. Indeed, she was harsh to Este that afternoon. She also told the little girl that she would give birth to more adorable children after she married Lucian. By then, Lucian would no longer adore Este. As Este couldn¡¯t talk, Aubree wasn¡¯t afraid that the former wouldin about her behavior to Lucian. However, she had no idea that Este would end up running away from home.Property ? N?velDrama.Org. This is great! It will be better if she can¡¯t return. That way, I won¡¯t have to see her again! Chapter 5 Chapter 5 Lucian red at her silently for a few seconds. Meanwhile, Aubree dug her nails into her palm to stop herself from revealing her real emotions. ¡°You¡¯d better not be lying.¡± Lucian averted his gaze a whileter and turned to Cayden. ¡°Did the police get back to you?¡± Cayden¡¯s voice was grim. ¡°Not yet.¡± He nced at Lucian carefully and asked, ¡°Could someone has kidnapped Ms. Este?¡± Concern was evident in his voice. The girl was Lucian¡¯s darling daughter. She was well-adorned in the Farwell family and thus became the target of many of Lucian¡¯s rivals. Previously, she was nearly kidnapped. Now, she was nowhere to be found, and even the police couldn¡¯t find her anywhere. Hence, Cayden couldn¡¯t help but think of the worst¡ªsomeone had kidnapped her. Lucian¡¯s gaze turned as dark as thunder. ¡°Increase the manpower and expand the search area. I want to see her by the end of today!¡± ¡°Got it!¡± Cayden responded loudly. He felt a chill go down his spine when he realized his employer was about to blow his top. Lucian had just spun on his heels to leave when his phone rang. Right now, he wasn¡¯t in the mood to talk on the phone. Pulling out his phone, he was about to reject the call when he realized it was from an unknown number. Recalling Cayden¡¯s earlier words, Lucian scowled and answered the call. A female voice rang out. ¡°Hello.¡± Hearing that, Lucian narrowed his eyes suspiciously. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Why does this sound just like her voice? The figure he spotted that afternoon at the airport shed across his mind. ¡°Hello? Is anyone there?¡± Roxanne repeated dubiously after a while. Lucian came back to his senses and replied curtly, ¡°Yeah.¡± His answer was only one syble, so it was too short for Roxanne to recognize his voice. Roxanne heaved a sigh of relief after hearing his response. ¡°Hello. I¡¯ve run into a little girl who gave me your phone number. You must be her father, right? Are you free to pick her up now?¡± Her voice rang in his ear clearly and resonated in his mind. The more she spoke, the colder Lucian¡¯s gaze became. When she stopped talking, Lucian¡¯s eyes were practically blocks of ice. It¡¯s her! It has been years since west met, but there¡¯s no way I¡¯d have mistaken her for someone else! Roxanne Jarvis, you¡¯re finally back! Gritting his teeth forcefully, Lucian lowered his voice deliberately and asked, ¡°Where are you?¡± ¡°We¡¯re at Drunken Fairy. We¡¯ll wait here with her. Will youe to the restaurant to pick her up?¡± Roxanne answered at once. ¡°Yes. I¡¯ll head there right away.¡± With that said, Lucian cut the line and ordered, ¡°Get the car. We¡¯re heading to Drunken Fairy.¡± Not knowing why his employer grew furious all of a sudden, Cayden replied in the affirmative hastily. Roxanne stared at her phone as the screen dimmed. Strangely, she felt nervous for no reason. The man¡¯s voice sounded hoarse. Why does it sound familiar? As Roxanne couldn¡¯t figure out an answer, she stopped deliberating over the matter. ¡°Aren¡¯t you hungry?¡± Madilyn asked. After all, they had been waiting outside for some time. She continued, ¡°I¡¯m starving. Let¡¯s head in for dinner. We can bring her out when her father arrivester.¡± Roxanne shot her a grin. ¡°All right. Let¡¯s go in.¡± She squatted down again to the little girl¡¯s height to meet her gaze. ¡°Are you hungry? Do you want me to bring you in for dinner? Your daddy should be on the way here. When he arrives, I¡¯ll bring you out. Will that do?¡± she asked. The little girl stared at her for a few moments, seemingly reluctant. ¡°If you don¡¯t want toe in, I¡¯ll wait here with you,¡± Roxanne added patiently. Hearing that, Archie and Benny chimed in, ¡°We¡¯ll wait with you too, Mommy!¡± Madilyn pped her forehead in exasperation. ¡°Am I the only one starving here? Little girl, we¡¯re not bad people. No bad person will treat you to a meal in an expensive restaurant! You must be hungry, too. Come on in with us. There¡¯s no need to be stubborn.¡± Everyone¡¯s gazes fell on the young girl. As Archie and Benny were also hungry, they stared at the little girl expectantly. Biting her lip, the little girl came closer to Roxanne and reached out to tug at her sleeve. She then gave a careful nod. ¡°You don¡¯t have to force yourself,¡± Roxanne told her gently, seeing through the girl¡¯s thoughts. The little girl shook her head yet again. Seeing that, Roxanne patted her head affectionately. She took the little girl¡¯s hand and led her into the restaurant. Madilyn held the boys¡¯ hands and watched as the little girl trotted beside Roxanne obediently. She teased, ¡°She was wary of us just a while ago, but she¡¯s gotten close to you now.¡± With a sigh, shemented, ¡°Indeed, good-looking people are always favored.¡± In response, Roxanne grinned and held the little girl¡¯s hand tightly without responding to Madilyn¡¯s teasing words. Chapter 6 Chapter 6 The Drunken Fairy was one of the best private restaurants in Horington. Every dish served was exemry, and the ce only epted the most high-profile clients. Reservations also had to be made at least one month in advance. Madilyn had managed to book a table yesterday using her connections. The restaurant¡¯s interior was exquisite; a screen separated every table, each room¡¯s entrance was made of wood, and the building didn¡¯t have a roof. When night fell, the chandelier above gave off a very antique and quintessential vibe, and one would feel as though they were dining under the moonlight. The small group made their way into the building and seated themselves at a corner table. It wasn¡¯t long until the waitstaff arrived with their food. Worried that the little girl would feel ufortable, Roxanne gave her all her attention, feeding her and wiping her mouth at every opportunity. Archie and Benny sat next to them. Seeing Este indulge in the food melted their hearts, and they tried their best to peel as much shrimp as they could for her. Este never stopped chewing as she kept her focus on the growing pile of food before her. ¡°Did you hear what happened? The Farwell family¡¯s princess has gone missing! The family¡¯s scoured the entire city for her, but they still can¡¯t find her.¡± Suddenly, a voice could be hearding from the table next to them. The next person to speak sounded warier. ¡°She couldn¡¯t have been kidnapped, could she? Whoever¡¯s done it sure has nerves of steel. Who would ever darey their hands on her? She¡¯s Lucian Farwell¡¯s precious little girl! They must be tired of living.¡± Roxanne¡¯s movements slowed down visibly at the mention of Lucian¡¯s name, and she began to space out. The conversation resumed anyway. ¡°Right? The little princess might be mute and has never said a single word, but she still gets to live the best life. How lucky of her!¡± Mute? A look of suspicion shed in Roxanne¡¯s eyes as she stopped moving. Lucian¡¯s precious little girl is mute? This child I picked up hasn¡¯t spoken a word. Judging from her behavior and clothes, she does look like someone from the Farwells. And that man over the phone! His voice¡­ At the thought of this, Roxanne suppressed her astonishment as she turned to the child on her left. Seemingly having noticed her gaze, the girl nced up at her with eyes full of puzzlement. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. As soon as their eyes met, Roxanne felt as though she had been struck by lightning. ¡°This kid¡­ She can¡¯t be Lucian¡¯s daughter, could she?¡± Madilyn put down her cutlery and stared at the child for a few seconds. ¡°That¡¯d be too much of a coincidence, wouldn¡¯t it?¡± she asked hopefully. As Roxanne¡¯s best friend, she knew everything the former had gone through for the past six years. This girl looks like she¡¯s around five or six, which means she¡¯s about Archie and Benny¡¯s age. If she really were Lucian¡¯s daughter, that means he would¡¯ve had a child with that first crush of his right after Roxanne divorced him. That guy just couldn¡¯t wait, huh? Roxanne really deserves someone better than him. Not knowing what her friend was thinking, Roxanne recalled all the events that had ensued after she met this child. The more she thought about it, the more certain she was that the little girl seated next to her was Lucian¡¯s daughter. ¡°I¡¯d say we¡¯ve hit the jackpot this time,¡± she remarked with a grimace. Seeing how sure the woman looked, Madilyn felt her heart sink as she gazed at the confused- looking child. ¡°What should we do, then? Lucian¡¯s probably on his way now!¡± she whispered. Roxanne began to panic. A brief momentter, she handed her phone to Madilyn. ¡°Take my phone and act like it¡¯s yours. I¡¯ll get Archie and Benny out of here. We¡¯ll be waiting for you at the parking lot.¡± Madilyn nodded in understanding. Still, seeing the little girl remain perplexed made Roxanne¡¯s heart ache. ¡°I¡¯ll leave this little one to you.¡± She then turned to her own two children. ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± The two boys followed her obediently without question. Upon walking past the little girl, Roxanne felt a soft tug on her sleeve. Looking conflicted, she turned to the child, only to see thetter gripping onto her sleeve tightly, looking extremely flustered. Seeing the girl¡¯s distraught expression really tugged at Roxanne¡¯s heartstrings. Regardless of whatever had happened between her and Lucian, she knew this child was never to be med. Eventually, sheforted the little one, ¡°I have to go now. Thisdy here will take good care of you, so wait right here, okay? Your daddy will be here soon.¡± With that, she forced the child¡¯s grip off of her and strode out of the private room, never looking back. At the same time, Madilyn hastily instructed the staff to take the three used sets of tes and cutlery away. Not long after the waitstaff had done as told, the wooden door was pushed open. A group of bodyguards dressed in ck stood in two rows, making a path in between them. Seeing that, Madilyn instinctively straightened her back and gazed at the entrance, trying her best to appear calm. Then, she watched as a frosty-looking Lucian made his way into the room. Chapter 7 Chapter 7 There were now only two people inside the room. Lucian scanned his surroundings before his gaze fell on his daughter. The little girl was still upset by Roxanne¡¯s sudden departure, so upon seeing her father, not only was shepletely unafraid, but she even turned away with a huff. A faint scowl appeared on Lucian¡¯s face. Well aware that Este was just as enigmatic and difficult to handle as her father was, this was a Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. job for Lucian¡¯s assistant, Cayden. ¡°Are you okay, Ms. Este?¡± The little girl merely nced at him before furiously turning away once more. Cayden observed her. Noticing that she was safe and sound, he sighed with relief and turned to report to his boss. With narrowed eyes, Lucian turned to the woman beside his daughter. Madilyn¡¯s chest tightened as she met his gaze, and she secretly squeezed her own hands to ¡°Where¡¯s Roxanne?¡± Lucian¡¯s expression darkened as he took a good look at Madilyn¡¯s face. He could actually tell it was her? Madilyn fretted internally while at the same time feeling relieved that her best friend had left in time. This guy¡¯s energy is so unbearable! I feel like I could suffocate. Who knows what might happen if Roxanne were still here? ¡°I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re talking about! Who are you guys? You sure are rude to barge in without even knocking.¡± Concealing her emotions and unleashing her best acting skills, Madilyn pulled the little girl into her arms while staring cautiously at the men in front of her. The crease between Lucian¡¯s brows deepened. ¡°That¡¯s my daughter you¡¯re holding. Were you the one who called me?¡± Madilyn stilled briefly. ¡°Yes, it was me,¡± she answered rigidly. Lucian stared at her expressionlessly before scanning every detail inside the room. She does sound like the woman over the phone. But does she think she can fool me? Besides, the state of this room is an obvious attempt to hide something. Sure, there are only two sets of tes and cutlery on this table, but three of the chairs look like they¡¯ve been moved. There¡¯s no way the workers at Drunken Fairy would make such a mistake. There must¡¯ve been people sitting there before I came. Also, all this food definitely isn¡¯t meant for just a woman and a child. After ncing around, he set his eyes on Madilyn again. The woman suddenly had a bad feeling. The next second, she watched as Lucian took a phone from his assistant and swiped on the screen before peering up at her. Soon, the phone Roxanne had passed to her began to ring. Having been caught off guard, Madilyn nearly jumped in fright, but she hurriedlyposed herself and nced at the phone for a moment before lifting it up and rejecting the call. ¡°Since you¡¯re her father, you can take her with you,¡± shemented, meeting the man¡¯s gaze. Then, she caressed the little girl¡¯s head, ced her on the ground, and nudged her in Lucian¡¯s direction. Lucian¡¯s brows furrowed slightly as he took two steps forward. Thinking he wasing over to retrieve the child, Madilyn was about to let out a sigh when she suddenly heard the man speak to her in a skeptical tone. ¡°You seem to have quite the appetite, miss. To think you ordered a whole table of food just for yourself and a little girl.¡± The man casually stopped next to the table, his words seemingly implying something. Madilyn fell silent. After holding her breath for a moment, she forced a smile. ¡°My appetite isn¡¯t any of your concern. Besides, I ordered this much food because I¡¯ve invited my friends over. They just haven¡¯t arrived yet.¡± Lucian raised an eyebrow. ¡°And you¡¯ve begun digging in instead of waiting for them to show up?¡± As his words fell, the man nced at every dish on the table. Madilyn felt like she was about to die. It took her yet another while to collect herself before shing him another distant smile. ¡°I¡¯m really close with these friends, so they don¡¯t mind me eating first. They¡¯re used to it.¡± Not waiting for him to speak again, she took a deep breath. ¡°Look, sir, I found your daughter and kindly informed you about it. I even made sure she didn¡¯t go hungry. It¡¯s fine if you don¡¯t thank me, but why are you interrogating me like I¡¯m a criminal? What have I ever done to deserve this?¡± Despite sounding indignant, the woman was screaming at the top of her lungs deep down. Please stop asking me questions. I¡¯m going to end up spilling the truth at this rate! Who could ever put up with this guy¡¯s presence? Meanwhile, Roxanne waited in the parking lot, holding hands with a child on each side as unsettlement swirled within her. She knew Lucian too well to understand that even the smallest clue would be enough to rouse his suspicions. I wonder how long Madilyn can hang on. If our cover gets busted¡­ What should I do if that happens? The woman couldn¡¯t seem to find an answer no matter how hard she tried. Suddenly, she pursed her lips and scoffed at herself. What am I even scared of? He probably never wants to see me again after what I did to him back then. Even if he saw me, he¡¯d probably pretend not to know me or just think of me as an eyesore. And look at me scaring myself like this before even seeing his face. Seriously? Chapter 8 Chapter 8 Seeing how restless their mother looked, Archie and Benny asked deliberately, ¡°Who¡¯s Lucian, Mommy? Why are we hiding from him?¡± Roxanne slowly returned to her senses and stroked their heads, smiling as if everything was fine. ¡°He¡¯s no one important. I just have a bit of a personal grudge against him. I want you both to hide if you ever hear his name, okay?¡± The two boys nodded. ¡°Okay, Mommy.¡± After Roxanne looked away, they nced at each other curiously. What could¡¯ve happened between Mommy and Daddy? It all seems like a huge misunderstanding. As Roxanne continued to ponder over what could be happening on Madilyn¡¯s side, the boys spoke again. ¡°Mommy, we left in such a rush back there. If that guy bes suspicious, he might check the surveince cameras and find us easily,¡± Archie reminded. The woman tensed up instantly. ¡°Oh, God. I totally forgot! What do I do?¡± I was so focused on running away that I forgot about the cameras! Lucian might already be here. I can¡¯t stay here. I have to take the kids home right now. Seeing the way their mother reacted made the boys turn away to conceal their smiles, and they only consoled her after they had suppressed the smiles on their lips. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mommy. I¡¯ll handle this.¡± Benny took hisptop and began tapping away on the keyboard. It only took a while for him to hack into the restaurant¡¯s surveince cameras and wipe out every footage of them. ¡°I¡¯m done!¡± After deleting all the footage, the boy nced up at his mother with twinkling eyes, eagerly waiting for her to praise him. Heaving a long sigh of relief, Roxanne pulled the two children into an embrace. ¡°Thank goodness I have you. You¡¯ve just saved me!¡± Aware that she was still nervous, the boys let her hold them a little longer. ¡°Are we leaving now, Mommy? Or should we wait for Aunt Madilyn toe outside?¡± asked Archie after Roxanne had let go. Having calmed down, the woman gazed at the entrance of the empty parking lot. ¡°Let¡¯s wait a little longer.¡± The boys nodded in response. Back inside the restaurant, failing to force a confession out of Madilyn, Lucian could only quash the hostility that surged within him. ¡°Pardon my rudeness. Thank you for helping me find my daughter. Well, then, we¡¯ll be off now. Enjoy your meal with your friends,¡± he stated coldly. Then, he turned to the little girl. ¡°Come, Essie.¡± With a reluctant pout, Este waved at Madilyn politely before walking toward her father. Lucian arched his brow slightly but said nothing more, leaving with the little girl and his group of N?velDrama.Org content. subordinates. Upon walking out of the building, he tried to carry Este into the car, but the child avoided him with a huff. Seeing that, Cayden hurriedly stepped in and did the job. The car began to move. Seated at the back, Lucian reached out to his daughter and ced her on hisp. With nowhere else to run, Este could only let herself be carried like a doll, although she continued her silent tantrum and refused to look at the man. ¡°Tell me, Essie, was there anotherdy apart from the one from just now?¡± the man asked gently. The little girl nced at him and grew more infuriated at the thought of that prettydy having left her because of him. Seeing her scowl deepen, Lucian pinched her cheek in amusement. ¡°I¡¯m not even mad at you for running away from home, but you¡¯re here getting all mad at me? Don¡¯t you know how worried I was? Will you tell me why you ran away?¡± Yet, the child shoved his hand away and turned her head to one side again, ignoring him. Looks like she¡¯s really upset. The man pursed his lips in frustration, feeling at a loss as to what to do. ¡°You don¡¯t have to answer me if you don¡¯t want to, but promise me that you won¡¯t run away from home again.¡± He then turned to Cayden, who was seated in front. ¡°Get the restaurant¡¯s surveince cameras.¡± He clearly hasn¡¯t given up. ¡°Yes, Mr. Farwell,¡± Cayden responded helplessly. Chapter 9 Chapter 9 Twenty minutester, the car slowly stopped at the Farwell residence. Este did not want anyone to carry her. She quietly got down from the car by climbing down slowly. Lucian followed right behind and did not utter a word. The moment the father and daughter stepped into the house, they heard someone calling Este. ¡°Essie!¡± Aubree, who was ying on her phone in the living room, eximed when she lifted her head and saw them entering the house. The moment she saw the child from a distance, she ran toward her and gave her a hug. ¡°Essie, you¡¯re finally home! How could you run away and not tell us? I got the shock of my life when you went missing, do you know that? Are you okay? Are you injured?¡± She started inspecting Este¡¯s body to make sure thetter was all right. Este froze for a bit, as she was taken aback by Aubree¡¯s actions. But the cold look soon returned to the little one¡¯s gaze when Aubree¡¯s voice kept ringing in her ear, expressing her insincere concern. Does she not know why I ran away? I wouldn¡¯t have run away if she hadn¡¯t told me Daddy wouldn¡¯t care about me anymore. Feeling disgusted after seeing the hypocrite¡¯s face, Este recalled the gorgeous woman she had met today. There was a world of difference between these two women. Este absolutely despised Aubree¡¯s pretentious behavior. She started struggling and pulled herself away from the woman. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Essie? Stay still, okay? Let me check if you¡¯re all right.¡± Aubree could feel Este wanted to avoid her. She tightened her grip on the little girl and sighed helplessly in front of Lucian. Este started reacting more aggressively, as she was in pain. Aubree was running out of patience. When she punished Este in the past, the little girl would tremble in fear and not make any noises. This was the first time she fought back! Aubree would have acted more harshly if Lucian were not around. But since Lucian was there to observe their interaction, she had to be more cautious not to arouse his suspicion. A hard glint shed across her eyes, and an idea popped up in her mind. Instead of continuing with this tug of war, she decided to release Este and fall to the ground. Aubree then looked at Este in disbelief. ¡°Essie, I know you dislike me. But I¡¯m really worried about you. How could you¡­¡± N?velDrama.Org content. She choked on her words as she looked at the little one with red-rimmed eyes. Upon noticing Aubree lying on the ground after removing his coat, Lucian frowned and pulled Este aside. ¡°Essie, I know you¡¯re not happy, and you can take it out on Daddy. But you can¡¯t vent your anger like this to others. It¡¯s rude, do you know that?¡± Este refused to admit she was at fault, but at the same time, she felt helpless. Daddy always sides with that evil woman! She pulled her hand away from his grip, hugged her doll tightly, and ran upstairs. Now that Este was gone, Aubree gradually crawled up from the ground and said gently, ¡°Don¡¯t be too harsh on Essie. We don¡¯t know what she had been through when she was wandering in the streets-¡± Lucian interrupted her, ¡°You should go now. Essie is still mad, and she wouldn¡¯t want to see you.¡± Aubree¡¯s expression turned stiff for a moment, but she responded with an awkward smile. ¡°All right then. I¡¯lle and visit her on another day.¡± She then lowered her head and walked out of the Farwell residence. After she stepped out of the residence, Aubree¡¯s expression instantly turned grim. How did he manage to find that little b*stard! And how dare she behave like this in front of me? Why isn¡¯t she dead! Damn it! Meanwhile, Madilyn stayed back at Drunken Fairy even after Lucian had left. When it was about time, she came out of the restaurant and quickly ran to the car. ¡°Are you all right?¡± Roxanne asked while opening the door for her. ¡°He left?¡± Madilyn heaved a long sigh. ¡°Yes. If only you could see how he stared at me. It¡¯s as if he could see through me! I nearly cracked under the pressure and gave you away.¡± Roxanne smiled and expressed her gratitude. ¡°You must have had it hard. Let¡¯s go elsewhere and grab something to eat, shall we? My treat.¡± Madilyn waved her hand and turned her down. ¡°No, thanks. I¡¯ve packed all the leftovers. I must enjoy all these dishes from this exquisite private restaurant.¡± Chapter 10 Chapter 10 The four of them then returned to the mansion. Roxanne and the two children were so hungry that they gobbled up all the leftovers Madilyn brought from the restaurant. After dinner, the children went upstairs to take a shower. Madilyn cast a doubtful look at her best friend. ¡°Why are you running away from him? I don¡¯t get it. I thought you two had a divorce agreement? Why are you so afraid of him? And you didn¡¯t tell me why you divorced him. What exactly happened in thest few years?¡± After meeting her gaze, Roxanne lowered her eyes and hesitated for a moment. She decided to roughly tell Madilyn the story. ¡°Oh, my God! No, you didn¡¯t!¡± Never in a million years did Madilyn think Roxanne would drug Lucian and give birth to his children. So that¡¯s why she ran away when she heard his name! Roxanne bit her lower lip and looked agonized. ¡°I don¡¯t want him to know about Benny and Archie. Besides, I¡¯m still worried that he would still hold grudges against me for drugging him. People with an identity like his can easily take revenge against me as long as he wants to. I wouldn¡¯t be afraid of facing the consequences if I were alone. But now that I have two kids, I have to act responsibly.¡± She shed a self-deprecating smile and continued, ¡°Maybe it¡¯s just me overthinking. He might not even give a damn about it. I¡¯m just a nobody anyway.¡±N?velDrama.Org content. ¡°That¡¯s what you thought!¡± Madilyn knitted her brows. ¡°I think he recognized your voice. When he went in just now, he asked where you were. It seems he wasing after you!¡± Roxanne was stunned for a bit upon hearing that. She felt a prickly pain in her heart. He must have hated me for what I did that night. I bet that¡¯s the only feeling he has for me. Upon seeing how upset her best friend was, Madilyn consoled her. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Roxanne. I¡¯m sure you won¡¯t bump into him so easily since Horington is a big city, and your jobs aren¡¯t really rted either.¡± Roxanne nodded, hoping luck would be on her side. ¡°Mommy!¡± Suddenly, Roxanne heard Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s voices from behind. Roxanne and Madilyn immediately stopped their discussion and looked toward the stairs. Archie and Benny had just taken their shower. There was still moisture in their hair, and their fair skin was dewy. The two little ones, who wore pajamas printed with cow spots, came downstairs. They walked up to the women, tilted their heads upward, and gazed at them with wide eyes. ¡°What are you two talking about?¡± Madilyn squatted down and carried both cuties in her arms. ¡°You two are so adorable! I like you so much! Come, let¡¯s go home with Aunt Madilyn!¡± Archie and Benny could not utter a word as Madilyn kept squishing their cheeks. Roxanne could not help but giggle. She went up and rescued her two boys from Madilyn¡¯s clutches. Suddenly, she remembered something. ¡°Oh, before I forget. Since I came back here in haste and would be busy working, I can¡¯t take Archie and Benny with me all the time. Can you rmend me a kindergarten for these boys? And oh, I¡¯ll need to find a nanny too.¡± The boys did not say anything upon hearing what their mother said. With their level of intelligence, they would not need to go to a kindergarten at all. But since Mommy is busy, we can only try our best to lessen her burden. Madilyn thought about it for a while. ¡°Yes! I do have a kindergarten in mind!¡± Roxanne looked at her. ¡°Tell me about it.¡± Madilyn said, ¡°There¡¯s a kindergarten for children from the elite families, and it¡¯s pretty well-known in Horington. The sses are exciting, kids will get to learn multiplenguages, and the teachers are highly qualified. A lot of wealthy families would fight for a spot for their children. You won¡¯t have to worry about big bullies in that school.¡± Roxanne instantly responded, ¡°Really? Let me find out more about this kindergarten on the inte. If everything goes well, I wish to enroll Archie and Benny in the school right away!¡± Chapter 11 Chapter 11 In the middle of the night, Lucian tiptoed into Este¡¯s room in the Farwell residence and tucked her in. He watched the little girl sleeping soundly in bed for quite a while before he turned and stepped out of the room. The moment he came out of the room, Cayden stepped forward to update him, ¡°Mr. Farwell, I¡¯ve dropped by the restaurant to investigate the matter. However, I didn¡¯t discover anything as the surveince cameras there were broken.¡± ¡°So coincidentally?¡± Hearing that, Lucian knitted his brows. The moment my suspicion was piqued, the surveince cameras were broken as well? Looking troubled, Cayden replied hesitantly, ¡°It could be mere coincidence. After all, we haven¡¯t received any news about Mrs. Farwell- I mean, Ms. Jarvis, since she left years ago. I don¡¯t think she¡¯d appear out of the blue in this city.¡± Right after he said that, he noticed his boss¡¯s expression darkening. Cayden¡¯s heart skipped a beat. He cast his head down and dared not utter anything more. ¡°I got it,¡± Lucian responded ambiguously before he turned and headed toward his room. The following morning, after breakfast, Roxanne took her two boys to the premium kindergarten Property ? N?velDrama.Org. rmended by Madilyn. As someone of high efficiency, Roxanne had stayed upte to sort things out after finalizing her option for the kindergarten the night before. She nned to enroll them in it right away. As notified by Madilyn, the entry requirements for the particr kindergarten were rtively strict. All the students there were from wealthy and prominent families. On top of that, the kindergarten was stringent in screening their students¡¯ parents. Right after Roxanne reached the office of the head of the kindergarten, she was requested to provide the details of her upation and worth with rted documentation. Fortunately, she had made the necessary preparation, as reminded by Madilyn earlier. Even though Roxanne was neither a CEO nor a director, she had made a lot of money over the past few years with her expertise in the medical field. Thus, her worth was a lot higher than the kindergarten¡¯s minimum requirement. After going through her documentation, the head of the kindergarten uttered courteously. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, I¡¯ll proceed to enroll your kids now. Could you please sign here?¡± Roxanne ced her signature on the document as requested. Shortly after, the head of the kindergarten summoned a teacher with a pleasant look. She instructed thetter to lead the two boys to their ssroom so they could familiarize themselves with the environment and their ssmates. The two boys waved at Roxanne nonchntly and walked away with the teacher. Roxanne retracted her gaze after their figures were out of sight. Then, she nodded at the head of the kindergarten and left. Unlike the other parents, she had nothing to worry about when it came to her two boys. She had started bringing them along to the research institute years ago. In other words, they were not easily shy as they had gotten used to mingling with others and could adapt to the environment well. Apart from that, the sybus in the kindergarten was a piece of cake for the two little geniuses. Instead of being bullied by the other kids in the kindergarten, Roxanne was even more worried that her two boys would pick on the others. After all, almost all the talented members of the research institute had fallen victim to their tricks before. On the other hand, the two boys looked around curiously along the way as their teacher led them to their ssroom. The moment they stepped into it, their teacher introduced them gently to the other kids. ¡°Everyone, they¡¯re our newly joined ssmates. Put your hands together to wee them, okay?¡± All the other kids stared at the two boys with intrigue. Meanwhile, the duo also introduced themselves graciously. Their adorable looks and cheerfulness were indeed irresistible to the other kids. After their introduction, everyone apuded excitedly. Benny scanned one round before someone among the kids caught his eye. Pulling the hem of Archie¡¯s shirt, he whispered to thetter, ¡°Archie, look! Isn¡¯t that our paternal sister? She¡¯s in the same ss as us!¡± Chapter 12 Chapter 12 When Archie looked in the direction where Benny was staring, the little girl they met the day before came into sight. Subsequently, he furrowed his brows. In the meantime, Este was staring at them as she pped her hands with the other kids. When she realized Archie and Benny were fastening their gazes on her, a hint of inexplicit excitement flickered in her crystal-clear eyes. Never had she expected that she would meet them here. Even though she had only met them once, she could not fathom why she tended to take a fancy to them. Even so, Archie and Benny had retracted their gazes as she kept her eyes glued to them. ¡°Okay! You may take your seats now. Oh, there are two empty seats over there. I¡¯ll arrange for you two to sit together, okay?¡± Their teacher pointed at the two empty seats next to Este. Archie and Benny were momentarily stunned. Nevertheless, they nodded obediently and walked over to sit down without uttering any words. Este¡¯s eyes lit up at the two boys walking toward the empty seats next to her. She gazed at them in anticipation but was soon ovee by a wave of disappointment. They¡¯re seated right next to me, but why don¡¯t they greet me? It¡¯s as though they didn¡¯t recognize me. Down in the dumps, Este cast her eyes down, toying with her fingers. In actuality, the two boys were observing her reaction discreetly. Sensing thetter¡¯s sheer disappointment, they could not help feeling guilty. Clenching his fists, Archie reminded himself and his brother at the same time, ¡°Daddy abandoned us and had another child with another woman. He even bullied Mommy! We mustn¡¯t talk to her because she¡¯s his kid with another woman! Otherwise, we¡¯ll surely hurt Mommy¡¯s feelings!¡± Benny nodded solemnly at the former¡¯s words. ¡°Yeah! We should ignore her!¡± Hence, the two boys sat upright throughout the ss and did not even nce obliquely at Este. Sensing the duo¡¯s aloofness, Este dared not steal any nce at them again. After ss, quite a few girls huddled over to y with the two boys. They not only gasped admiringly at the two brothers¡¯ good looks but also shared their toys willingly with them. The outgoing Benny got along well with the others,ughing cheerfully. On the contrary, Archie was polite, mature for his age, and friendly. Catching sight of the two boys¡¯ bright smiles, Este suddenly had the courage to go over and greet them again. However, all the other kids surrounded the two boys and squeezed her out of her seat. One of the girls even grimaced as she pushed her aside and scoffed, ¡°Little Mute, get lost! You can¡¯t even talk, so what¡¯s the point of you squeezing with us here? Don¡¯t rain on our parade, okay?¡± Caught off guard, Este lost her bnce and fell backward. All the others behind her dodged immediately. None of them stretched out their hands to help her. Startled, Este thought of bncing herself by grabbing the side of the desk next to her. Even so, she missed it and fell. The next second, she knocked her hand on the side of the desk. Ouch! It hurts! Este ended up slumping on the floor. She knitted her brows in pain. At the same time, Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. tears started to well up in her eyes. Meanwhile, the other kids around her only watched without taking any action. A few girls cupped their mouths to stifle their giggles. Este had been unsociable in the ss all the while. Since she was mute, she hardly had any friends. Nevertheless, she was as sweet as a doll. Even though girls disliked her, she was well-liked by most of the boys. They even treated and served her well like a princess. In fact, the boys, who were usually as agile as monkeys, tended to practice self-discipline in front of her. Needless to say, the girls were green with envy because of that. Tammy, who shoved her away moments ago, never failed to grab the chance to bully her. Chapter 13 Chapter 13 No words could describe the pain on Este¡¯s hand and the grievance surging from within her after the fall. She massaged her little hand instinctively, almost breaking into tears. After a while, she sniffled and got up to her feet. Then, she took out a notebook from the desk and started writing something in it. All the other kids were not surprised by that. Since Este was mute, she usuallymunicated with them by writing in her notebook. However, it seldom appeared as there was scarcely anyone to y with her. A whileter, she flipped her notebook toward Tammy after she finished writing. cing her hands on her hips, thetter snorted at the word ¡°apologize¡± in it and questioned sardonically, ¡°How could you have the cheek to request me to apologize to you? Este, you¡¯re asking for it!¡± With that, she advanced toward Este with her nose in the air and stretched out her hand, thinking of giving the poor girl another shove. It never urred to Este that Tammy would strike at her again. Standing rooted on the spot, she was unable to react. In the meantime, Archie and Benny had been keeping their eyes on them. Nobody was aware when Tammy suddenly gave Este a hefty shove a while ago. The realization only dawned on Archie and Benny when Este fell to the floor. Now that Tammy was going to shove Este again, they could not hold back any longer. ¡°Enough of that! How could you bully her!¡± Archie stood in her way swiftly, glowering at her with a look of sheer grimness. Tammy was stunned at his sudden emergence in front of Este. Archie stated sternly, ¡°Didn¡¯t your mother teach you to apologize after making a mistake? Since you¡¯d shoved her just now, you must apologize to her!¡± Irked by Tammy¡¯s domineeringness, the young boy exuded an imposing aura surprisingly. An intimidated Tammy looked around apprehensively, hoping the other kids would back her up. Momentster, when nobody stepped forward to do so, she could only retort guiltily, ¡°I-I¡­¡± Nevertheless, she was at a loss for words to speak up for herself. At the sight of Tammy blushing crimson, Benny advanced toward her resignedly. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t hurt anyone as you like. It¡¯s bad behavior! We¡¯re not supposed to fight among ourselves. Apologize to her, okay?¡± Benny¡¯s voice was not as authoritative as Archie¡¯s, but there was still an unmissable hint of sternness in his tone. On the verge of tears, Tammy shed him a nce timidly. Seeing that, Benny blinked a few times and relented. ¡°Don¡¯t cry. You¡¯ll look ugly if you cry. Bad kids tend to look ugly, too. Not to mention, only bad kids hurt others. If you don¡¯t wish to be one of them, apologize to her sincerely. You¡¯ll automatically be a good kid again after she forgives you!¡± Tammy sniffled hard, restraining herself from bursting into tears. No way! I don¡¯t want to be an ugly girl! But bad kids tend to look ugly¡­ After much hesitation, she snuffled and apologized to Este, ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I shouldn¡¯t have pushed you just now. Could you please forgive me?¡± Este looked at Tammy for quite a while before nodding. Benny grinned blissfully. ¡°That¡¯s right! We¡¯re all ssmates and should get along well with each other!¡± Tammy nodded awkwardly at Este¡¯s willingness to forgive her. The other kids shared the same sentiments as Benny and echoed his words. Meanwhile, Archie turned to look at Este. ¡°Are you all right? Did you get hurt just now?¡± Hiding her injured hand behind her back, Este put up a front and shook her head. The next moment, Benny leaned closer and stared at her suspiciously. ¡°I saw you knock onto the desk just now. How¡¯s it possible that you¡¯re not hurt at all? Let me have a look!¡± Without any waste of time, he grabbed hold of Este¡¯s injured hand. Thetter shrunk away, trying to Property ? N?velDrama.Org. pull her hand out. Nevertheless, the tiny red patch on the back of her hand was utterly visible against her fair skin. When the unsightly redness came into view, Archie questioned her again, ¡°Do you really not feel any pain?¡± Wearing a look of earnestness, Este shook her head. Even so, her eyes were red-rimmed. Archie and Benny furrowed their brows in unison. The part of her skin has turned rtively red! How¡¯s it possible that it¡¯s not painful? It has even started to swell. There might be a bruiseter! ¡°We¡¯ll bring you to see our teacher now and let the school nurse attend to it.¡± Archie sounded determined. Este wanted to withdraw her hand, but Benny gripped it. He dragged her and went after Archie, heading straight for the staffroom. At the sight of the wound on Este¡¯s hand, their teacher asked about the event that had transpired earlier before leading them to the school nurse¡¯s room in a hurry. Este¡¯s injury was not severe, but the school nurse did not dare to dawdle. After spraying some medicine onto her wound, she massaged it for a while gently. When it was done, she looked at the two boys waiting aside. Impressed by their good looks, she asked their teacher, ¡°Are these two boys your new students? I¡¯ve never seen them before. Look at how adorable they are! I bet girls will fall head over heels for them when they grow up! Look, this little girl resembles them too. Could they be siblings?¡± Hearing that, Archie and Benny exchanged gazes intuitively and turned to look at Este alongside them simultaneously. The duo was not surprised. After all, Este was their paternal sister. It was nothing unusual for paternal siblings to look alike. Furthermore, people tended toment that their eyes did not resemble their mother¡¯s. Este also gazed at the two boys and could not help wondering, Do we look alike? After the school nurse attended to Este¡¯s injury, their teacher left together with them. Back in the ssroom, Este followed behind Archie and Benny closely like a small tail attached to their backs. Soon, they walked back to their seats and sat down. Initially, Archie and Benny thought that their mission was aplished. It never came to them that Este would tag along with them wherever they went during ss activities. My goodness! We can¡¯t seem to shrug her off! She even keeps stealing nces at us during ss! After a few times, Archie could not take it any longer. Furrowing his brows, he looked intently into Este¡¯s eyes. ¡°Why are you following us so closely?¡± His tone was not harsh, but he sounded emotionless and aloof. Intimidated by his abrupt query, Este looked away hastily. Even so, she cast a look in his direction again secondster. Archie¡¯s forehead creased into a frown. Undeniably, he had a soft spot for the adorable Este. How nice would it be if she¡¯s not rted to Daddy! If so, Benny and I would treat her like a little princess and protect her well. However, this Little Mute is Daddy¡¯s daughter with another woman. If we treat her well, we¡¯ll be betraying Mommy! He wanted to get a grip of himself to pay no heed to the girl, but he was speechless when he saw the Just when he was about to ask Este to stay away from them, he noticed that thetter started writing something in her notebook again. This round, she wrote: I want to be friends with both of you. Shortly after, she lifted her notebook, covering the lower half of her face and only revealing her bright eyes. Chapter 14 Chapter 14 Roxanne was clueless about the incident at the kindergarten. After leaving the kindergarten, she headed straight to the research institute set up in the country by her professor. The moment she stepped into the building, she saw a charming man dressed in a suit approaching her. ¡°Wee back, Roxanne. I¡¯m excited to be your colleague again.¡± Colby Galloway stood before her and extended his hand. Roxanne nodded and shook his hand, quickly retracting it. Previously, Colby was abroad. He was also in Harvey¡¯s team and was involved in many types of research and development. During that time, Colby had been her assistant. After all, he was a graduate of a famous school, and his capabilities were acknowledged by Roxanne and Harvey. Though Roxanne¡¯s attitude was impassive, Colby did not mind it. He smiled and offered, ¡°Come on. I¡¯ll bring you to the office.¡± With that, he turned around and led the way, introducing the structure of the research institute and the key personnel along the way. Upon reaching the office, Colby grinned at Roxanne, saying, ¡°I¡¯ve specially instructed someone to decorate this ce. It¡¯s based on your preferences in the past. Linda¡¯s workce is right outside.¡± Roxanne studied the area and responded with a satisfied nod. ¡°That¡¯s really thoughtful of you. Thank you so much.¡± Colby was momentarily stunned. He then put on a gentle smile. Even his voice sounded warm. ¡°It¡¯s nothing much. You don¡¯t have to be so polite with me.¡± As he was saying that, he could not conceal his liking for her that poured out from his gaze. Despite knowing she was a mother of two, it did not decrease his adoration for her. After all, Roxanne was an excellent woman in every aspect. In fact, she was so excellent that her qualities could cover up her shorings. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. However, Roxanne did not notice the gaze he was giving her. After briefly scanning the office, she said to Colby, ¡°My purpose foring here today is to understand the operations of the research institute. Could you bring me around the facility?¡± Colby was still smiling brightly. ¡°Okay.¡± Roxanne nodded slightly and gestured for him to lead the way. When Colby returned to his position in front of her, his smile turned bitter. It was true that he liked Roxanne. Sadly, she only viewed him as an ordinary subordinate. This is so¡­ frustrating! Soon, both of them left the office area and went straight to the main region of the research institute. They arrived at the testing area. Several researchers wearingboratory coats and masks could be seen busy working at their respective workbenches. Roxanne did not want to disturb them. Hence, she asked Colby to briefly introduce all the projects and their progress. By the afternoon, Roxanne already had a clear idea of the research institute¡¯s situation. At the same time, she discovered an important problem. When they were visiting the testing area earlier, there was a foundation work area where no work was being carried out. Roxanne asked the researchers about it, only to find that the drugs they needed were finished, and they were still waiting for the research institute to distribute them. Many other areas were facing the same situation. Due to the dy in the distribution of drugs, the research of several projects had no choice but to be put on hold temporarily, leading to an increase in cost and time needed for the projects. Gradually, it led to a major loss to the research institute. After stepping out of the testing area, Roxanne frowned and gave Colby a stern look. ¡°The dy of drug distribution has caused many types of research to be put on hold. What¡¯s going on here? Didn¡¯t you find a way to solve this?¡± Chapter 15 Chapter 15 Hearing her words, Colby stopped smiling and answered seriously, ¡°I¡¯m already looking for a solution for this problem.¡± Roxanne frowned as she looked at him, waiting for his next sentence. ¡°Recently, I¡¯ve met with a medicinal ingredients supplier and have talked to them about a long-term coboration. All that¡¯s left is to sign the contract. The agreed time to sign the contract would be tomorrow afternoon. The reason things did not go smoothly previously is that the research institute was still in the construction phase. Manyplicated and misceneous affairs had to be dealt with, and the employees were still getting used to the system. It was only recently that they had begun to adjust themselves. Moreover, Horington¡¯s medicinal ingredients are mostly monopolized by a few major suppliers, and the supply was not enough to cover their demand. On top of that, our research institute is fairly new to the industry, causing many suppliers to intentionally increase their prices. It cost us a lot of time to negotiate for a lower price. That was why things were dyed until now.¡± Colby gave her a brief summary of what had happened. Though it sounded simple, he was just a researcher. Hence, he suffered a lot when he negotiated with the cunning suppliers. Even if he did not reveal much detail, Roxanne could imagine how difficult things were. As the person in charge of the research institute, he naturally had to manage everything. It was normal to face challenges everywhere. In fact, she encountered some herself when she was abroad. After she listened to Colby¡¯s exnation, Roxanne¡¯s expression rxed. ¡°Things must¡¯ve been very difficult for you.¡± The corners of Colby¡¯s lips lifted. ¡°Not really. It¡¯s my job, anyway.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the name of this medicinal ingredients supplier?¡± Roxanne brought the conversation back to the topic of business again. ¡°If it¡¯s possible, I¡¯d like to go with you to the signing of the contract. Since I¡¯m going to take over the future matters of the research institute, I think I should go over and have a few conversations with them.¡± Colby simply responded, ¡°Sure. You coulde along tomorrow.¡± Roxanne nodded. After that, both of them returned to Roxanne¡¯s office. When she saw the person behind her had no intentions of leaving, she was perplexed. ¡°Is there anything else?¡± Colby smiled politely. ¡°Actually, I have something to ask you. Are you free tonight? It¡¯s your first day at work, and I¡¯ve arranged a dinner to wee you. At the same time, you can get to know the people in the institute.¡± Hearing that, Roxanne rxed her brows. ¡°Thank you. Tonight¡¯s dinner is on me, then. We¡¯re going to be working closely together in the future. I should show my sincerity as the person in charge.¡± Seeing that she had agreed toe, Colby did not haggle over such details. He nodded with a Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. smile. ¡°Okay. See you after work, then.¡± With that, he turned around, intending to leave. Right then, Roxanne called out, ¡°Could you please bring over all the documents I need to deal with ¡°Sure. I¡¯ll get them now,¡± he answered. Soon, Colby brought all the documents to her office. After cing them down, he excused himself politely and helped her to shut the door. Atst, Roxanne was the only person left in the office. She pulled out her phone and dialed Madilyn¡¯s number. ¡°Maddy, are you free tonight? Could you help me pick Archie and Benny up? I¡¯ve got something to attend to tonight, and I might be home Madilyn did not question further and gave her a brief reply. ¡°Okay.¡± After making the arrangements for the children, Roxanne started looking through the documents. It was not until Colby knocked on her door that she stopped working. It was time to get off work. ¡°Time goes by really fast¡­¡± Roxanne muttered, picking up her coat and walking out of the door. Colby grinned. ¡°You¡¯re very focused when you work. It¡¯s normal to not notice time passing by.¡± Both of them continued chatting along the way. After exiting the research institute, they got into Colby¡¯s car and went straight to the restaurant. After around ten minutes, Colby gestured for her to look ahead. ¡°That¡¯s the one.¡± Roxanne lifted her gaze and spotted a vintage-looking building with exquisite carvings on the exterior. Moreover, it was located in front of a river. Hence, it looked really charming. The restaurant was named The Waterfront. Colby parked the car, and they walked toward the entrance of The Waterfront. Just as they were about to enter, a Rolls-Royce stopped slowly by the roadside in the dark. Cayden got off the car and went to open the door to the passenger seat. Lucian¡¯s slender figure appeared in the dark, and his dark, narrowed eyes were fixed on the entrance of The Waterfront. When he was in the car earlier, he had distinctly seen a figure that resembled Roxanne¡¯s. Chapter 16 Chapter 16 Lucian furrowed his brows, and a look of annoyance shed through his eyes. Am I seeing things again? I wouldn¡¯t bother about it if it¡¯s just once or twice, but this has been going on for two days straight. I¡¯ve been seeing her figure in different ces. But the silhouette only shes past my eyes without leaving any traces behind. He could not help but snort coldly before retracting his gaze. I must be going mad. That¡¯s why I¡¯m thinking of her again. Meanwhile, Cayden had been waiting by the side for some time. Seeing Lucian not moving his feet, he asked carefully, ¡°Mr. Farwell, our client has been waiting for a long time. Aren¡¯t we going in?¡± Lucian shut his eyes for a while and recollected himself before replying calmly, ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± With that, he strode into the building with his long legs. Cayden followed closely behind him. When Roxanne and Colby arrived in the private room, all the employees of the research institute were already there. Colby let her sit in the main seat, while he took the one beside her. After getting themselves settled, he introduced her to the crowd, ¡°I¡¯m sure many of you have met Dr. Jarvis today, but I¡¯d still like to introduce her to all of you.¡± Everyone turned to look at Roxanne, who nodded as a form of greeting. ¡°This is Roxanne Jarvis. You may address her as Dr. Jarvis. Perhaps you might not be familiar with this name, but I¡¯m sure everyone is familiar with the name she used abroad. She¡¯s Professor Lambert¡¯s greatest student, J.¡± Everyone in the room was stunned to hear the name. It took them a while toe back to their senses, and their eyes were instantly filled with respect. J was a name everyone in the medical industry was aware of. In fact, it would be safe to say that her name was well known abroad. After all, she possessed great medical skills from a young age. Rumor had it that she inherited eighty percent of Harvey¡¯s skills. She was basically a role model for the younger generation. All that while, the employees thought J was a serious-looking, bespectacled academician with short hair. To their surprise, she was a beautiful woman. After returning to their senses, some of her admirers quickly stood up. ¡°Are you really J? I really admire you. I¡¯ve read every thesis you wrote when you were abroad. You¡¯re really my idol!¡± ¡°It¡¯s our honor to be colleagues with you, J!¡± The crowd started givingpliments, all of them looking extremely sincere. After exchanging nces with everyone, Roxanne smiled. ¡°Thank you for thepliments, everyone. Here¡¯s to a fruitful coboration.¡± With that, she raised her ss. The others, too, raised theirs and downed their drinks in one go. Roxanne acted extremely friendly without any arrogance, causing all the employees to admire her even more. It was a pleasant and cheerful meal. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Many of them toasted Roxanne, and she epted them all. She had a high alcohol tolerance, but there were too many people who approached her for a toast. Before she knew it, she was already feeling tipsy. Seeing the dinner was about to end, Roxanne excused herself to the toilet to wash her face and freshen up. As she walked out of the restroom and was on the way back to the private room, her phone vibrated. Roxanne nced at her phone to find a message from her children, asking her when was she going home. Seeing the text put a heartwarming smile on her face. When she was about to stop in her tracks to reply to their text, someone bumped into her shoulder harshly, and her phone almost flew out of her hands. Roxanne gripped her phone tightly and apologized to the other person. ¡°I¡¯m sorry¡ª¡± Before she could even finish, the man questioned angrily, ¡°Are you blind? D*mn it. What a mood killer for such a night!¡± As he spoke, a stench of alcohol entered her nostrils. Roxanne knitted her brows and backed away discreetly, putting some distance between them. When the drunkard saw her face clearly, he stopped scolding her and gaped at her beautiful face. Chapter 17 Chapter 17 Roxanne put up her guard when she realized the man was a drunkard. Hoping to avoid unnecessary trouble, she apologized again, ¡°I¡¯m really sorry. Are you okay?¡± When she finished speaking, the man in front of her suddenly smiled maliciously. Even his voice sounded excited. ¡°Hello, pretty babe¡­ I¡¯m fine. You¡¯ll find out after having a few drinks with me. I¡¯ll forgive you for today¡¯s matters once you make me happy.¡± Roxanne frowned. She knew the person in front of her had lost all sense of rationality due to his drunkenness. Hence, she ignored him and lowered her head, wanting to walk past him. Just as she arrived beside the drunkard, his voice rang out again. ¡°Don¡¯t leave, pretty babe. I¡¯m really rich. If you agree to be with me, I promise you¡¯ll livefortably for the rest of your life.¡± He then let out a pervertedugh, scanning Roxanne from head to toe. This beauty has such a pretty and delicate face. And her body has all the right curves. She¡¯s so fair that even her skin glows under the light. I bet she must be satisfying to touch! The more he looked at her, the more excited he got. He reached out, wanting to touch her face. Seeing his hand nearing her, Roxanne put on a cold expression, took one step backward, and kicked him in the stomach. Since it was her first day at the research institute, she was dressed formally. Thanks to her heels, the kick was even more powerful. The person was so drunk that he was already swaying on his feet and was rather woozy. Before he could even react, he had already been given a hard kick in his stomach. His face paled, and he clutched his stomach, staggering backward andnding heavily on the ground. ¡°You little b*tch! How dare you disrespect me? You should be feeling honored that I¡¯m attracted to you. How dare you kick me?¡± he yelled. After squirming on the ground for a long time, he gritted his teeth and lifted his head. His eyes were bloodshot. Roxanne cast him a disgusted nce before making her way past him. Suddenly, he roared into a corner, ¡°Someone, get here! That woman attacked me! Get her into the private room now! I¡¯d like to see how she can continue putting up that attitude with me tonight.¡± Right after he finished speaking, two burly bodyguards dashed out from the corner. When they saw the drunkard in such a pathetic state, they hesitated for a moment. ¡°Boss¡­¡± ¡°Don¡¯t bother about me! Just get her!¡± the drunkard roared. The bodyguards immediately walked toward Roxanne. When she heard the sound of footsteps approaching her from behind, her heart skipped a beat, and she reached into her bag to grab a bag of powder. If they get near me, I¡¯ll let them have a taste of this medicine. As she turned around with the bag in her hand, the bodyguard that was about to touch her suddenly screamed and flew past her. In the next second, the other bodyguard disappeared from her sight in the same manner. Roxanne was dumbfounded. It was only then that she realized there was another silhouette behind her. She turned around and spotted a slender figure standing a few steps away from her. Her heart sank, and she felt as if her mind was about to explode. She spun around instantly, wanting to flee from the scene. Lucian, who wore a grim expression, was dressed in a tailored suit. His sleeves were rolled up to his forearms, and a few buttons around his cor were unbuttoned. He stood in the corridor while looking at the woman in front of him with a burning gaze. In fact, he was in the middle of a social event. He found the air rather stuffy and decided toe out to get some fresh air. Never did he expect to meet Roxanne out there. It¡¯s really her! The longer he stared at her, the darker his gaze became. He wanted to say something before seeing the woman attempting to flee. Frowning, he dashed forward and grabbed her wrist. Meanwhile, Roxanne was so nervous that she could hear her heart pounding. She had no idea when he managed to catch up to her, and his grip caught her off guard. She froze on the spot, and all kinds of thoughts raced through her mind. ¡°Roxanne!¡± The man¡¯s furious voice rang out beside her ears. ¡°Stop hiding from me!¡± Roxanne finally came to her senses and struggled subconsciously. Sensing her movements, Lucian exerted more force into his grip. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. ¡°Let me go!¡± Roxanne gave up struggling and turned around stubbornly, meeting his gaze. ¡°Let go?¡± Lucian¡¯s words sounded as if they were forced out of his gritted teeth. He stared at her intently with his dark eyes. It had been six years since theyst met. Roxanne¡¯s face had traces of maturity, yet she looked as beautiful as ever. However, she was no longer the obedient and gentle person he remembered. Unlike in the past, when she was submissive to him, she was currently more imposing and fiercer. There was even a distant look in her eyes. Anger brewed in Lucian¡¯s heart when he realized all that. He stared coldly into Roxanne¡¯s eyes and enunciated each syble clearly as he spoke. ¡°Do you think I¡¯ll let you escape again?¡± Roxanne¡¯s heart trembled. She wanted to say something, but Lucian would not give her the chance to do so. His voice had a dangerous tone when he instructed Cayden, who stood behind him, ¡°Get rid of all these scums!¡± Without giving Roxanne time to react, he grabbed her by the arm and marched into the private room beside them. Roxanne had a sense of uneasiness, but she could not break free, no matter what she did. Just like that, she was dragged into the room, stumbling along the way. Chapter 18 Chapter 18 The private room was empty. Once Lucian entered the room, he shut the door right away. At that moment, the room fell into pin-drop silence. Only the sound of their breathing could be heard. Roxanne scanned the area. For some reason, she felt a sense of danger, and she started struggling fiercely. ¡°What are you trying to do? Let me go!¡± In the next second, Lucian pinned her against the wall effortlessly. Both their bodies were pressed so tightly together that Lucian¡¯s warm breathnded on her ears. Roxanne suddenly stopped struggling and leaned against the wall, straightening her body stiffly. Without realizing it, she even slowed down her breathing. They were so close that her chest would touch the person before her if she breathed slightly harder. The room fell into dead silence. Roxanne gritted her teeth as her mind raced. No matter how much time had passed, the oppressive feeling he gave her was still as strong as before. However, their rtionship had changed long ago. Roxanne clenched her fists and forced herself to calm down. We¡¯re already divorced. Lucian and I have absolutely nothing to do with each other now. We¡¯re people of different worlds. At that thought, Roxanne took a deep breath and said calmly, ¡°Lucian, let me go. We can talk this out if you¡¯ve got something to say.¡± Lucian was slightly stunned to hear her calm tone. After some time, he took a step back, but he did not release her. Roxanne secretly sighed with relief, and her expression became calmer. ¡°Do you have nothing to say to me?¡± Lucian narrowed his eyes upon seeing the change in her expression. Perhaps it was because Roxanne had thought things through that her heart did not tremble at his words. With a distant tone, she said, ¡°Mr. Farwell, we¡¯ve been divorced for six years already. I think there¡¯s nothing I have to say to you.¡± When she ended her sentence, Lucian pinched her chin hard. She was forced to meet his gaze. ¡°What did you just call me?¡± Lucian¡¯s eyes burned with rage as if they could shoot fire at any time. Roxanne endured the pain and avoided his gaze, not uttering a single word. Lucian was even more infuriated at her act of silence. Mr. Farwell? That form of address sounds really distant! Well, it makes sense though. It¡¯s been six years, after all. Hasn¡¯t this woman always been heartless? She¡¯s so heartless that she could even leave her daughter behind and act like a stranger. I bet no one¡¯s more heartless than her. ¡°Roxanne, why are you acting like a stranger in front of me?¡± Lucian gripped her chin harder. Roxanne winced, frowning as she met his eyes with a look of resistance. Lucian smirked. ¡°Weren¡¯t you the one who shouted how much you liked and loved me back then? And now, you¡¯re acting like we¡¯re strangers? Have you forgotten what you did to me in the past? You might¡¯ve forgotten, but I haven¡¯t!¡± Roxanne froze for a few seconds. She never expected him to bring up the matter of six years ago. It was impossible for her to forget what happened that night. That night, she had approached him like a sacrificial animal, all for a tiny moment of intimacy with him. As she thought of her emotions from that night, Roxanne¡¯s heart turned cold, and she balled her fists that were hanging by her side. Unwilling to back down, she responded, ¡°I remember it. What¡¯s wrong? Do you feel like you¡¯d been taken advantage of? Do you want to get back your dignity? Tell me. How should Ipensate you, Mr. Farwell?¡± Lucian trembled with rage, causing the atmosphere in the private room to be filled with terrifying tension. The pain in her chin was getting more intense. Still, Roxanne endured it and continued calmly, ¡°To be honest, you weren¡¯t conscious that night, and I didn¡¯t feel anything. Now that I think about it, it was just so-so. But it¡¯s true that I drugged you. So, I won¡¯t object if you want to bepensated.¡± Very well. Now that so many years have passed, this woman knows how to use her words to anger Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. me. Lucian¡¯s eyes narrowed dangerously. Indeed, he was unconscious that night, and he barely remembered any details. However, any man would be angered when they heard Roxanne¡¯s words. After several seconds of silence, Lucian lifted her chin slightly and said coldly, ¡°So-so? Since I¡¯ve caused such a misunderstanding, I don¡¯t mind being at your service again.¡± Panic shed through Roxanne¡¯s eyes as she watched the man lean toward her. She wanted to escape, but she had nowhere to run. Chapter 19 Chapter 19 Chapter 19 Passionate Kiss The man¡¯s hot lips pressed against hers, and the two breathed on each other¡¯s skin. At that very second, Roxanne¡¯s mind went nk. She never thought that Lucian would take it all the way there. The man was even tightening his grip on her chin, seemingly trying to force her to open her mouth. Right then, Roxanne came back to her senses and began thrashing. ¡°Let go of me, Lucian Farwell! Have you lost your mind? We¡¯re in a restaurant! Anyone mighte in anytime!¡± Lucian moved a little further from her because of her struggles. When his mind registered her words, he frowned. ¡°So what? Weren¡¯t you the one who said you were going topensate me? I¡¯m just taking what you owe me once, but you¡¯re already afraid?¡± Roxanne¡¯s eyes twitched. A wave of disgust washed over her when she thought about what she went through the other night. Perhaps it was because he had been drugged that night, Lucian was barely aware of what he was doing. Still, he had been taking action instinctively, and he had been rough. Hence, she remembered nothing but the pain from that incident. Now that the man¡¯s scent and the faint smell of alcohol were wafting across her nose again, and after hearing what he said, Roxanne began shaking. When Lucian saw no response from her, his eyes darkened, and he leaned over to kiss her again. It was a kiss rougher than the previous. Roxanne could not move at all under his grasp, and the panic in her heart was growing more and more intense. It had been six years, but her body still could not resist that man. If he notices my reaction, to him, I would still be the same person I was six years ago. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. With that thought in mind, Roxanne sobered up instantly. When she sensed the man trying to enter her, she quickly bit down hard on his lip. The metallic tang of blood soon flooded their mouth. The man froze. In the next second, he moved with even more vigor. Roxanne could barely take in any breaths from his continuous kisses, and she was slowly losing strength in her body. The only reason she didn¡¯t slump down was that the man was still pressing down on her hand. A beatter, Lucian stopped and¡ªwith his lips still on hers¡ªasked, ¡°I thought you said you feel nothing toward me. Why have you gone so weak? Roxanne, your body is far more honest than your mouth is!¡± The man¡¯s voice was hoarse. Roxanne panted. Just as she was about to refute him, she suddenly felt arge hand wandering toward her chest. Once she sensed his action, Roxanne somehow mustered up the force to shove him away and p him. ¡°Lucian, weren¡¯t you the one who said you were going to marry Aubree? I¡¯ve let you go, so what are you doing now? Are you taking revenge on me? If you are, then you¡¯ve done it! I was foolish to have targeted you with such an extreme trick, but just as you wanted, I stopped clinging to you. I won¡¯t appear in your life anymore! So, this is the end of us.¡± With that said, Roxanne shot him a re and rushed out of the room, never once looking back. Meanwhile, after Cayden cleaned up the mess, he went to the private room they were at to guard the door for Lucian. All of a sudden, he saw Lucian¡¯s ex-wife rushing out of the room. He froze for a few seconds beforeing back to his senses and running into the room to check on Lucian. Right as he entered the room, he was greeted by a dim scene. His employer was standing in a nearby corner with his head tilted to the side. His cheek was a little red, and there was blood on his lips. At the same time, it seemed like he was fuming. ¡°Mr. Farwell, are you¡­ okay?¡± Cayden¡¯s heart skipped a beat as he tentatively walked over to ask a word of concern. Lucian¡¯s expression was dark. He reached up to touch his cheek before brushing his thumb across the corner of his lip. It came back wet. That woman bit down rather hard. She¡¯s as ruthless as usual. As he looked at the blood on the tip of his thumb, Lucian gritted out, ¡°I¡¯m fine.¡± At that, he turned to leave the room. Go on. Keep running, Roxanne. You¡¯re already back at Horington. I¡¯d like to see where else you can run to! When he stepped out of the private room, he spotted the drunkard and his subordinate still crying out in misery on the ground. After a cold nce at the people on the floor, Lucian turned around to order Cayden, ¡°Break whichever hands they used to touch her.¡± Sensing the tense atmosphere, Cayden hung his head and replied without hesitation, ¡°Yes, sir!¡± Lucian said nothing else before he left. Chapter 20 Chapter 20 Chapter 20 Her Rtionship With That Man Roxanne had nowhere to go after fleeing the room, so she hid in the stairwell. As she leaned against the wall and panted, she reached up to touch her aching lips. It felt as if the man¡¯s warmth was still lingering on them. A momentter, Roxanne lowered her eyes self-deprecatingly. It had been many years, and she thought she had no feelings for Lucian anymore. Yet, after just one meeting with him, the man was wreaking havoc in her mind again. After a while of rposing herselfter, Roxanne returned to the room. The workers inside were still partying away, and they only became a little quieter when she entered. Noticing that her mood seemed to have changed since she left the room, Colby furrowed his brows. ¡°Why did you leave for so long? Did something happen? It¡¯s¡­ like something¡¯s off with you.¡± Roxanne gave him a nonchnt smile and shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I gave my son a call.¡± With that, she took a seat, not letting Colby ask her anything else. Roxanne had left for quite a while. Not long after she returned, most were almost done with their partying. Roxanne was not in the right mood, so she decided to end the party. They all went downstairs together, and everyone bid goodbye to Roxanne and Colby. Soon, only the two of them were left. Colby softly suggested, ¡°I¡¯ll send you back if you don¡¯t mind. You¡¯ve drunk quite a lot tonight, and I¡¯m worried about you.¡± Roxanne inclined her head, not disagreeing with his offer. ¡°Thank you.¡± She had yet to buy a car after returning to the country. It seems like I have to hurry up and get a car soon. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. ¡°It¡¯s my pleasure.¡± Colby opened the car door for her. After thanking him again, Roxanne went into the car. In the meantime, by the entrance of the restaurant, Cayden was fearfully looking at his employer¡¯s back. H-How can things be so coincidental? I can¡¯t believe we¡¯re watching Roxanne entering another man¡¯s car. As Cayden watched the car slowly drive off, he cautiously raised his head to observe his employer¡¯s expression. Lucian had a grimace on his face as he fixed his gaze on that car. A beatter, he looked away and gritted out, ¡°Check who that man is and what kind of rtionship he has with her.¡± Cayden hastily said yes to him. By the time Lucian returned to the Farwell residence, it was already nine. After sweeping his gaze across the living room, he realized Este was nowhere to be found. A slight frown crept onto his face at that. ¡°Where¡¯s Essie?¡± Catalina, who took care of Este, was on her way down the stairs. ¡°Mr. Farwell, Ms. Este is done with her shower and is now in her room. Would you like to go upstairs to see her?¡± Lucian gave her a slight nod and began walking toward the stairs. ¡°Mr. Farwell, there¡¯s something else I¡¯d like to tell you about¡­¡± Catalina hesitantly continued, ¡°When Ms. Este came home tonight, she had a bruise on her wrist. I asked her about it, but she refused to tell me anything. I¡¯m not sure if she has been bullied at kindergarten. I think this is something important you should look into. Lucian narrowed his eyes. ¡°I understand. I¡¯ll go upstairs and take a look at her.¡± With that said, he quickened his footsteps to Este¡¯s room before knocking on the door. Soon, Este opened it for him. She did not have much reaction after realizing that Lucian had Lucian followed her. Then, he saw the girl going back to her table and returning to her drawing. He did not disturb her, for he noticed how focused she was. A while of waiting by the sideter¡ª when he saw her put down her pencil¡ªhe uttered, ¡°Catalina said that you¡¯re hurt. Let me take a look at you.¡± Chapter 21 Chapter 21 Este obediently reached out her injured hand to him. When he saw the wound on her hand, he knitted his brows. ¡°What happened? Were you bullied by the other kids?¡± Este stiffened for a second before shaking her head vigorously. She wasn¡¯t bullied? Lucian was confused. ¡°Then what happened?¡±Este then picked up her pencil and slowly wrote a few letters on her book-¡°treeped¡±. She then cocked her head to the side, a little dubious of what she had just written. It was too difficult for her to spell it out. Whenever she could not spell out a word, she would usually try to spell it ording to how it sounded, or she would just skip the word. However, she did not often write out that word, so she was unsure if she actually spelled it right or not. ¡°Did you trip?¡± Lucian asked after looking at the word she wrote. Este nodded. Lucian then let out a sigh of relief and gently touched the spot she hurt herself at. ¡°Did the teacher treat your wound?¡± Este nodded again. Lucian nodded before his eyes drifted toward her fair little hands again. ¡°This will take days to heal, and you need to treat the wound. I¡¯ll help you, okay?¡± Este did not reject him. Immediately, Lucian crouched down and lifted her into his arms before going down the stairs. Once they reached the living room, he ced her on hisp and sat on the couch. At the same time, he said to Catalina, ¡°Bring the medical kit over.¡± Catalina nodded in response. It did not take her long before she brought the kit over. Lucian then took out a spray from inside and sprayed it at her bruise. Then, he massaged the area for a while. It was quite a bad bruise. Even though it had been hours since the initial impact, it still hurt. Nevertheless, Este did not kick up a fuss. She just pursed her lips as her brows furrowed. Lucian turned to study her expression every once in a while to see if he was hurting her. He lost himself in his thoughts when he saw her frowning face. Saw She looks a little like that woman when she¡¯s solemn. Sensing her father¡¯s gaze, Este looked up at him, baffled. Instantly, she spotted his injured lips,¨C and she pointed at them with a look of confusion. It was easy to understand what she meant. She was asking him how he had gotten hurt. Lucian held her hand and replied, ¡°It¡¯s fine. A wild kitty bit me.¡± A wild kitty? Este became even more confounded. She grabbed the pencil and paper on the coffee table and wrote: Where did the cate from? Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened a little. ¡°From overseas.¡± That was all he was willing to say. He was afraid that he would not be able to suppress his fury around his daughter. When he noticed the perplexed look on her face, he reached out to take away the pencil and paper in her hands. ¡°Let¡¯s not talk about this anymore. It¡¯s almost time. I¡¯ll bring you to bed now.¡± Este was still curious about the matter, but she decided not to prod further at her father¡¯s words. Obediently, she let her father carry her upstairs. The two children were still awake when Roxanne went home. Madilyn was keeping thempany as they watched the television. The moment she entered, the two children looked away from the screen and ran over to her. ¡°Mommy!¡± Roxanne smiled and patted their heads. ¡°Did you drink?¡± Archie smelled the alcohol on her and scrunched up his nose. ¡°I¡¯ll make a hangover remedy for you now. That way, your head won¡¯t hurt when you wake the next morning.¡± Property ? N?velDrama.Org. With that said, he turned and went into the kitchen. Benny brought her all the way to the couch and made her sit before he climbed onto his mother¡¯s won¡¯t feel that bad.¡± Madilyn could not help but feel jealous at how sensible the children were despite their young age. ¡°Why are my godsons so sweet?¡± Roxanne smiled and looked at her. ¡°Do you like them? Have one yourself.¡± Hearing that. Madilyn quickly shook her head. ¡°Forget it then. The one I give birth to might not be as sensible as Archie and Benny. I just want to steal the ones from you.¡± As Benny continued to massage his mother¡¯s temples, he consoled his godmother, ¡°Aunt Madilyn, there¡¯s no need to steal us. If you¡¯re drunk, Archie and I will surely take care of you in this way too!¡± Hearing that, Madilyn wanted to carry the boy up and kiss him. However, the two boys were busy, and she could only squeeze out, ¡°You boys are the best! I love you two to death!¡± Roxanne shuddered from the cheesiness. She then took the hangover remedy that Archie gave her and slowly sipped on it. By the time she was done with the concoction, it was alreadyte at night. ¡°All right, I¡¯m fine now. Hurry upstairs to rest.¡± Roxanne kissed the foreheads of her two sons. The two boys nodded and bid Madilyn good night before they went up the stairs. Chapter 22 Chapter 22 : Once the two boys were upstairs, the smile on Roxanne¡¯s face slowly faded. Madilyn turned off the television and inched over to ask in concern, ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Something on your mind?¡± After a moment of hesitation, Roxanne told Madilyn a lighthearted version of what happened earlier. ¡°I met Lucian when I was having dinner just now.¡± There was no one but Madilyn who Roxanne could talk to about what happened six years ago. Upon hearing that, Madilyn froze. Then, she whispered, ¡°What kind of fate is tying you both together? Horington is such a big city, and I thought the chances of the two of you meeting would be close to zero if you¡¯re not actively seeking each other out.¡± Roxanne lowered her eyes, seemingly deep in her thoughts. ¡°So, what are you thinking about after meeting him?¡± Madilyn continued querying. The corners of Roxanne¡¯s lip turned down. ¡°What can possibly be on my mind? My rtionship with him has ended six years ago. We¡¯re nothing but strangers now. I won¡¯t be affected by him anymore. All I want to do for the rest of my days is to take care of Archie and Benny and have a good life with them.¡± It seemed like she had thought things through. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Madilyn sighed in relief before patting her good friend¡¯s shoulders. ¡°That¡¯s good. You¡¯re an excellent woman, and there are plenty of people courting you. Take your time to make your pick. Let¡¯s leave that douchebag in the past.¡± Roxanne gave her a slight nod, not wanting to continue with the topic. She then said, ¡°By the way, I haven¡¯t had the chance to buy a car aftering back here. I had to get rides from my coworkers for the wee party today, and it seems rather inconvenient. Are you free next morning to pick a car with me?¡± Madilyn¡¯s attention was shifted to the next topic, but she was confused as to why Roxanne wanted to buy a car. ¡°Why do you want to buy a car? I have a few in the garage. Just pick one.¡± Roxanne chuckled as she arched a brow. ¡°Are you really that generous?¡± After sharing a look, Madilyn wrapped her arm around Roxanne¡¯s neck and uttered, ¡°Of course. After all, you¡¯re my godsons¡¯ mother! What¡¯s mine is yours!¡± ¡°Thank you, then,¡± Roxanne said to her. The two chatted away for a while longer. When they nced at the time again, it was already quite After Roxanne washed up, shey on the bed. However, she could not sleep. It took her a long while of tossing and turning before she entered the dreands. In her dream, she returned to the empty room at The Waterfront. In the room. Lucian was pinning her against the wall. He was narrowing his eyes anding closer and closer to her. Just as their lips were about to touch, Roxanne jolted awake,pletely drenched in sweat. After waking from that dream, she could no longer sleep. Thus, the next morning, Roxanne had obvious dark eye circles as she sat by her children¡¯s side at the dining table while they were having breakfast. ¡°Mommy, did you not sleep wellst night?¡± Archie asked in concern as he stared at his mother¡¯s dark circles. Roxanne tensed up a little as she thought about that dream. A few secondster, she shed them a leisure smile. ¡°Yes. I lost track of time reading documentsst night.¡± Her children were observant individuals, and Roxanne was afraid that they would prod her for more information. Hence, she quickly lowered her head and pretended to focus on eating breakfast. At that, the two boys exchanged a look but asked nothing else. All they said was, ¡°Don¡¯t tire yourself out too much, Mommy. You have to take good care of yourself.¡± Roxanne¡¯s lips curved as she bobbed her head in agreement. After breakfast, she brought the boys to Madilyn¡¯s ce again. ¡°Choose anything you like. Don¡¯t worry about anything.¡± Madilyn brought them to her garage as she held onto the whole bunch of car keys in her hands. The boys were young, but they could recognize quite an amount of luxury cars. Therefore, once theyid eyes on the cars in the garage, they apuded and cried out, ¡°Aunt Madilyn, you¡¯re amazing!¡± After walking around the garage, Roxanne chose a mid-ranged priced Mercedes-Benz that was worth over a million. Madilyn gave her the keys without any trace of hesitance. Once Roxanne got the car, she drove the two to their kindergarten. ¡°Bye, Mommy! Don¡¯t overwork yourself!¡± the two said to her after they went down from the car. Roxanne ruffled their hair. ¡°You too. Be good at school. I¡¯lle and pick you up at night.¡± The two boys nodded obediently and walked into the kindergarten together. Roxanne only left after watching the two disappear from her line of sight. She then started the car and slowly drove away from the kindergarten¡¯s gate. ¡®I wo minutester, a Rolls-Royce rolled up in front of the kindergarten¡¯s entrance. Cayden came down from the car before opening the door to the backseat. Then, he carefully carried Este down. Once Este¡¯s feet were on the ground, she turned to wave at her father. ¡°Go in now,¡± Lucian softly said to her as he patted her head. Este nodded in response before turning to leave. Suspicion crept into Lucian¡¯s eyes as be watched Este leave the car. Este seemed much happier than usual. Maybe she¡¯s letting down her guard after interacting with the kids in the kindergarten. It seems like the psychiatrist was right. Her autistic symptoms will improve if I let her interact more with her peers. Chapter 23 Chapter 23 Lucian only took his gaze off Este after the teacher picked her up. He then said to Cayden, ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± Cayden bobbed his head and drove toward Farwell Group¡¯s office. Once Lucian arrived at his destination, he hurriedly went to join the executive meeting. By the time the meeting was over, more than an hour had passed. Lucian went straight back to his office. ¡°Lucian, you¡¯re back.¡± Just as he stepped into the room, he was greeted by Aubree¡¯s voice. Hearing her made him knit his brows. Then, he saw that Aubree, who was in a ck suit, was standing in front of his office desk with a Property ? N?velDrama.Org. smile. It seemed like she had been waiting for a while. ¡°When did youe?¡± Lucian strode to the other side of his desk before letting his eyes drift past the documents on the table. Finally, hended his gaze on Aubree¡¯s face. Aubree sat down when she saw him sit, the smile on her face never once wavered. ¡°Not long ago. I heard from Cayden that you were in a meeting.¡± ne Just then, she spotted the scab by the corner of Lucian¡¯s lips, and her heart lurched. ¡°Did you¡­ hurt your lips?¡± A sh of displeasure danced across Lucian¡¯s eyes at the reminder of the incident the night before, and his tone turned colder. ¡°I identally bit it. There¡¯s no need for you to freak out over it.¡± Aubree nodded with slight hesitance. She consoled herself by telling herself that there were no other women around Lucian but her for all those years. Therefore, her suspicion was just paranoia. With that thought in mind, she finally felt a little more at ease. ¡°So why are you here?¡± Lucian asked in a t tone. Hearing that, Aubree rposed herself and smiled again. ¡°I have some work matters. The project our families were working on is only missing thest step of signing the contract. So I¡¯vee to ask if there are any other terms. Also, my parents were asking if they can invite you for a meal tonight. Your parents will be there too, so I was wondering if you¡¯re free for that.¡± They invited my parents too. Without a doubt, they must want to urge us to hurry up with our wedding Lucian nced at her before muttering icily, ¡°Please tell your parents that I need to meet someone tonight, so I won¡¯t be free.¡± The smile on Aubree¡¯s face froze. For a moment, she did not know how to respond to him. Indeed, their aim for the dinner was to urge them to quicken their marriage. WAS It was something that should have been done a few years ago. She finally managed to hold out until Roxanne was gone, but Lucian kept dying the matter with work matters. After that, he used Este as an excuse to dy the wedding further. By then, six years had already passed. SN Aubree had been waiting for so long, but the conclusion had yet toe. How could she possibly not feel anxious? Even now, Lucian was still postponing the matter. The corners of Aubree¡¯s lips tilted downward as she looked bitterly at the man in front of her. ¡°Lucian, I¡¯ve been waiting for six years. How many six years can a woman have? I don¡¯t mind waiting for you, of course, but if it¡¯s fated that the two of us will be together, why do you still not want to do the wedding? At the very least, the elders in our families will feel reassured. As she spoke, Aubree carefully watched Lucian¡¯s expression. When she noticed that he seemed unfazed, she steeled herself and added, ¡°We¡¯ve been nning for the wedding since the start, so why¡­¡± ¡°I did make a promise to wed you,¡± Lucian coldly interrupted her. ¡°But you, of all people, should know why I ended up promising you that.¡± Fear pulsed through Aubree when she registered his expression. ¡°I think the Farwell family has made more than enoughpensation to the Pearson family throughout all these years. As a matter of fact, thepensation made has far exceeded the worth of this engagement. Even if we did not proceed with this engagement, no one will say anything about it.¡± Lucian¡¯s voice was neutral the entire time. Evidently, it was a speech he had long prepared. When Aubree heard that, she widened her eyes in disbelief as fresh terror reared up within her. Clearly, Lucian wanted to break off the engagement. Chapter 24 Chapter 24 After Lucian said those words, he looked away from Aubree¡¯s face. He had decided to marry Aubree back then to repay the favor her grandfather had done for them. That was why he interacted with the Pearson family so closely. That was also why he had agreed to marry Aubree when the elders of the families suggested it. In fact, for a while, Lucian was sure that Aubree was his first crush. Thatsted until six years ago when that woman left without saying anything. It was then he realized that the feeling he had for Aubree was not love as he initially assumed. After that, the elders of both families kept urging him to marry her, but he had found all kinds of excuses to dy the wedding. In those six years, he had also done everything he could to assist the Pearson family and agreed to all kinds of business requests they made to repay them for the kindness back then. Now, it seemed like he had done more than enough to repay them for that favor back then. At the very least, it was enough for him not to proceed with the wedding. ¡°Lucian¡­¡± Aubree¡¯s voice trembled as she looked at his expressionless face. She wanted to find out if her guesses were right. Lucian lifted his hand to massage the bridge of his nose. Then, he cut her off, ¡°Put down the file. I¡¯ll look at itter. I still have work to do, so if there isn¡¯t anything else, you can leave.¡± Aubree bit her lip and stared at him for a moment. When she realized that he was not going to change his mind, her eyes slowly reddened. Still, she forced the upset and sorrow down her throat, put down the file, and left. Aubree¡¯s mood was grim as she exited the Farwell Group¡¯s office. She had been waiting for six years, but Lucian never once gave her a proper answer. Now, he was telling her that he was nning to call off the wedding. Fortunately, Aubree was certain that there were no other women around Lucian. In other words, she still had a chance with him. With that thought in mind, Aubree¡¯s grave expression lightened up a little. Yes, I still have a chance. The wedding is only unsalvageable if I make Lucian frustrated with me. I have to stay calm. As Aubree consoled herself, she entered the car. ¡°Are you heading back to thepany?¡± Her assistant, Charles Lampton, was tentative as he spoke to his employer, for he noticed the look on her face. Aubree nced at him. ¡°No, I¡¯ll be having lunch outside. Haven¡¯t we agreed to meet VR Research Institute to sign the contract in the afternoon? We¡¯re going back only after signing the contract.¡± Charles nodded. At two in the afternoon, Roxanne and Colby departed from the research institute to the destination where they had agreed to meet the crude drug supplier. On their way there, Roxanne abruptly recalled that she had yet to find out the details about their Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. business partner. Thus, she asked Colby, ¡°Can you tell me the details about the crude drug supplier that we¡¯re about to sign with?¡± She was the person in charge of the research institute. If she knew nothing about the crude drug supplier, the other party might think that she was not serious enough about the deal when they met Knowing what was on Roxanne¡¯s mind, Colby exined in detail, ¡°This crude drug supplier is massive in Horington. Their family established itself by running crude drug businesses. Moreover, the prices that this crude drug supplier has are reasonable. Furthermore, after they found out that our research institute has a certain level of influence in the market abroad, they became interested to work with us. They seem sincere, so don¡¯t worry about that.¡± Hearing that, Roxanne inclined her head in understanding. Simultaneously, she breathed out an inaudible sigh of relief. ¡°I know the few major crude drug suppliers in Horington. ording to your exnation, the one we¡¯re signing with should be one of them. I wonder which one is the one we¡¯re about to meet with.¡± Colby replied, ¡°The Pearson family.¡± Chapter 25 Chapter 25 Roxanne stiffened immediately. The Pearson family? As far as she knew, there was only one Pearson family in Horington who was in the crude drug industry Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Coincidentally, that was the family she had some issues with. At that though, Roxanne creased her forehead and prayed that she would not be unfortunate enough to encounter the one she did not want to meet the most. Soon, they arrived at their destination-a caf¨¦. The people from the crude drug supplier had yet to arrive. Colby and Roxanne took a seat first. They then ordered two cups of coffee and waited for the other party to arrive. Dozens of minutester, someone knocked on the door of the private room. Colby straightened up and said to Roxanne, ¡°They¡¯re here.¡± Roxanne gave him a quick nod. Rising to her feet, she then said, ¡°Pleasee in.¡± Soon, someone pushed the door open, and a male voice traveled into their ears. ¡°Sorry that we¡¯rete.¡± The moment Roxanne lifted her head, she locked eyes with Aubree. Instantly, Roxanne sighed in her mind. Speak of the devil. Unlike her, Aubree widened her eyes in shock. As she was overwhelmed by surprise, she screeched out, ¡°You¡ª Roxanne? Why is it you?¡± Didn¡¯t you disappear a long time ago? Why are you here now? Colby and Charles were baffled by Aubree¡¯s response. Colby then asked in a curious but friendly tone, ¡°Ms. Pearson, do you know Dr. Jarvis?¡± Aubree¡¯s eyes flitted toward Colby. ¡°Dr. Jarvis?¡± ¡°Roxanne Jarvis is the person in charge of our research institute. When she found out that we¡¯re signing a contract with you, she has asked toe along as a sign of our sincerity,¡± Colby introduced However, Aubree¡¯s expression only turned even darker. All she wanted to know was when Roxanne had returned. It¡¯s Lucian¡¯s first time telling me that he¡¯s thinking of calling off the wedding this morning. Is this because of Roxanne? Has he¡­ found out that Roxanne¡¯s back? Have they met each other? The more Aubree dwelled on it, the more anxious she became: As she stared at Roxanne, her expression darkened and paled. On the other hand, Roxanne was much calmer. It was as if it was her first time seeing Aubree. She nced at her and frowned before straightforwardly asking, ¡°Ms. Pearson, are you not nning to continue with our coboration?¡± Hearing her, Aubree swiftly tucked away her emotions and looked at her for a moment. As her expression turned icy, the look in her eyes changed into an amused one as well. ¡°Of course I¡¯m nning to continue. Dr. Galloway has been working on this contract for such a long time. I won¡¯t let his efforts go to waste.¡± With that, she summoned the waiter and ordered another four cups of coffee. While they were waiting for the coffee, Aubree¡¯s darkened gaze lingered on Roxanne. Despite her unwillingness to admit it, Roxanne had changed a lot after six years. in the past, she had a cautious demeanor, but now, all she needed to do was sit there, and anyone could feel how intimidating she was. Her looks and presence were overpowering Aubree. On the other hand, six years had gone by, and Aubree had never changed. The man she nearly had was now getting further and further away from her. When she realized that, Aubree¡¯s hands under the table tightened into fists as jealousy coursed through her veins. ¡°I truly wish to work with your institute, but I don¡¯t think the price we negotiated previously is a suitable one. Since Dr. Jarvis is here, I think we can discuss the price again.¡± Even though Aubree had a professional smile on her face, the look in her eyes was a cial one. Upon hearing her, Colby parted his lips, about to speak, but Roxanne stopped him. She calmly asked, ¡°Ms. Pearson, what you mean¡­¡± ¡°I hope we can have an increment of two percent of the original price,¡± Aubree uttered. Chapter 26 Chapter 26 ¡°An increment of two percent?¡± Colby stiffened. ¡°Ms. Pearson, haven¡¯t wee to an agreement the other time? We¡¯re now about to sign the contract, so why are you increasing the price all of a sudden;¡± At his shocked response, Aubree folded her legs and replied, ¡°Indeed, we¡¯ve agreed on it, but almost everything in the crude drug market has risen in price this year. If we were to sign the contract with the price we previously agreed on, we¡¯ll be suffering a loss too great. Dr. Galloway, please forgive us.¡± She made it seem so rational. Colby¡¯s expression tensed. Just as he frowned and was about to say something else, Roxanne stopped him again. ¡°Ms. Pearson, you must want to suddenly raise the price because you saw me. I know the prices in the crude drug market well. We can have a negotiation if you want to increase prices, but raising it by two percent right here and now is far too unreasonable.¡± Roxanne wanted to be professional, but clearly, Aubree did not. Hence, there was no need for her to endure her antics. Aubree knitted her brows in displeasure. She then coldly asked, ¡°Regardless of what the reason is, that is our current price. If you don¡¯t think that¡¯s suitable, we won¡¯t mind letting this business deal go.¡± Roxanne agreed to it. ¡°In that case, let¡¯s take this as time wasted. Apany that doesn¡¯t stick to its words isn¡¯t apany we¡¯ll be at ease working with.¡± With that said, Roxanne stood up and said to Colby, ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± Colby nodded, and the two exited the caf¨¦. ¡°Is there something between you and Aubree?¡± Colby could not help but ask when they left the ce. He could sense Aubree¡¯s clear hostility toward Roxanne during their meeting earlier. Not wanting to dwell on what happened back then, Roxanne simply said, ¡°In a way.¡± Noticing that she did not want to talk much about the topic, Colby did not prod her for more. Instead, he began talking about the crude drug supplier matter. ¡°If we¡¯re not going to work with Pearson Group, Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. we¡¯ll have to find another crude drug supplier.¡± Roxanne bobbed her head. ¡°Then that¡¯s what we¡¯re going to do. Horington is a big ce. I¡¯m sure there are other crude drug suppliers who will work with us.¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Colby answered with a nod. He would rather deal with the trouble of looking for a new crude drug supplier than to see Roxanne targeted by someone. Meanwhile, in the caf¨¦, once Roxanne was gone, a cold look crept onto Aubree¡¯s face. She ordered Charles, ¡°Tell all of the crude drug suppliers in Horington that, if they dare to work with VR Research Institute, they¡¯ll be enemies of Pearson Group!¡± Charles did not know what happened between his employer and the doctor carlier, but he could sense that his employer was in an exceptionally foul mood after meeting Roxanne. A shudder wracked his body upon hearing Aubree¡¯s tone. Without daring to dy any further, he replied, ¡°Of course. I¡¯ll work on it right away.¡± With that said, he stood up and left. Soon, Aubree was the only one left in the caf¨¦. When she thought about the attitude Lucian had earlier in the morning and the frightening demeanor Roxanne had a while ago, Aubree panicked. Regardless of whether or not Lucian had rejected her because of Roxanne, it was a fact that Roxanne and Lucian were married in the past. Aubree could not be certain what Lucian thought about Roxanne. If things continued to be dyed, she dared not imagine what else would happen. I can¡¯t wait any longer. Meanwhile, at Farwell Group¡­ ¡°Mr. Farwell, I¡¯ve found out information about the man Ms. Jarvis was withst night.¡± Cayden entered the room and stood in front of Lucian. Chapter 27 Chapter 27 Lucian immediately put away his work and asked worriedly, ¡°Who is he?¡± Images of Roxanne leaving with a strangerst night started shing before his eyes. ¡°The man¡¯s name is Colby, and he¡¯s the person in charge of the VR Research Institute. Previously. Mr. Farwell went to him for medical treatment.¡± Cayden instinctively picked up the sudden change of ambiance in the room, and he became extremely wary with his words. ¡°Besides, I also found out that Colby is still single. But by the look of things, Ms. Jarvis is not in any way rted to him. The other possibility is that they knew each other when they were studying medicine in the same university.¡± Being made aware of the possibility, Lucian¡¯s facial expression softened. ¡°Besides this, did you manage to find out about anything else?¡± Cayden appeared to be in a dilemma. ¡°This is the extent of my investigation. Regarding Ms. Jarvis, we only know that she returned to the country recently. As to what she did and where she was overseas, we have not been able to find anything at the moment.¡± Lucian furrowed his brows, displeased by the answer. However, knowing that it would be futile to pry further, he decided to change the topic of the conversation. ¡°How is Old Mr. Queen now?¡± Cayden was about to apologize for his ipetence but heaved a sigh of relief when Lucian started asking about Old Mr. Queen. ¡°It doesn¡¯t look good for him. They¡¯ve consulted all the famous doctors from inside and outside of the country, but they were helpless.¡± Lucian nodded slightly. ¡°Reschedule my agenda nned for tomorrow night. I want to pay a visit to Old Mr. Queen.¡± ¡°Understood,¡± replied Cayden. Cayden, upon being certain that there were no further instructions, left after waiting for a while. When they just arrived at the research institute, Roxanne and Colby sprang into action and hurriedly contacted all the medical ingredient suppliers in Horington. Due to theck of supplies, many projects in the research institute had to be held in abeyance. If this were to continue, the losses would spiral out of control. Hence, time was of the essence for them to coborate with a medical ingredient supplier. Before this, Colby tried contacting the suppliers in Horington, but his proposal was rejected instantly. However, since they ran out of options, they were forced to test their luck once again. ¡°VR Research Institute? I thought we had this conversation before? Your asking price is too low! We are not interested to coborate with you!¡±. Just as Roxanne mentioned the name of the research institute, the rejection from the other end of the phone call was instantaneous. Roxanne gritted her teeth. ¡°We can increase the price from our original offer. What about an increase of half a decimal point? Let¡¯s try to work out a feasible n, and there¡¯s always room for negotiations-¡± The person interiected and said, ¡°It¡¯s still too low. We need to increase at least 3 decimal points, or else there¡¯s no room for negotiation.¡± Hearing such bold demand, Roxanne hung up promptly. Meanwhile, Colby¡¯s expression didn¡¯t look pleasant either. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry, Dr. Galloway. All of our supplies have been booked by someone else. We do not have any extra at the moment. The answer was obviously an excuse, which indicated the other person¡¯s unwillingness to coborate. Colby simply responded, ¡°All right, I understand.¡± He then hung up the phone after that. After an entire day of cold-calling, there was no positive news even until the next afternoon. Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Though the suppliers responded differently, some courteous and the others impatient, the conclusion that resulted from the phone calls was that none of the suppliers were willing to coborate. Even worse, one of the suppliers made it expressly clear to Roxanne that they would never coborate with the VR Research Institute. But the reason for that was not disclosed. It was clear as daylight that they were sabotaged by someone in the dark. As such, the culprit could be none other than Aubree. Chapter 28 Chapter 28 Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but feel irritated. Ultimately, she was being sabotaged and the projects in the research institute could not proceed because of this. She never expected that Aubree¡¯s vengeance toward her persisted even after 6 years. Even worse. Aubree resorted to such atrocious tactics to get back at her! However, it was not the time for her to be bothered by emotions. Roxanne clenched her fists in an attempt to calm herself down. She then looked toward Colby and said, ¡°It¡¯s okay. If Horington is not the solution to our problem, then we can try other cities. Surely, someone must be willing to coborate with us.¡± Be that as it may, it also meant that the costs and time needed to achieve it would be higher. While Roxanne did not mention it, she was very much aware of the consequences. She too hoped to find a suitable partner in Horington. However, the prospect of doing so seemed quite bleak. ¡°No, there¡¯s no need to head to other cities,¡± Colby uttered. He appeared to have thought of something, and his tone rxed. Roxanne arched a brow. ¡°Are you saying that there¡¯s someone in Horington that is willing to coborate with us? The small suppliers are definitely out of the picture, and we need someone with Colby nodded. ¡°I know. However, this might require you to personally attend to it.¡± Roxanne was perplexed. Colby then said, ¡°I heard it from you actually. But first things first, have you heard of the Queen family?¡± Colby continued, ¡°The Queen family supplies medicine and built an empire out of it. The Queen family is a prominent family in Horington, and Old Mr. Queen has a good reputation in the has been looking for doctors to cure him, but to no avail. They invited me to try out, but I couldn¡¯t do much. However, you might stand a chance in this.¡± ¡°Is that so?¡± Roxanne replied. She understood what he meant but was nevertheless hesitant. ¡°The Queen family are in the big leagues. When ites to the pricing, it will not necessarily be lower than what we are being offered right now.¡± Colby replied, ¡°Before this, the Oueen family offered expensive medicines as a reward for whoever can cure Old Mr. Queen of his condition. In the future, they can alsoe up with an arrangement to supply medicine at half the price!¡± . Roxanne¡¯s eve¡¯s glistened with hope and she felt the boulder being lifted off her shoulders. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you say this earlier? That¡¯s a great thing!¡± Colby beamed. ¡°I thought about it, but admittedly I¡¯m not good enough. Besides, you were not bere back then. Hence, I gave up and never thought about it until now. Perhaps you can give it a try. What do you think?¡± ¡°Of course! Not a problem at all!¡± Roxanne confidently stood up to urge him. ¡°Please help me contact the Queen family and help me make an appointment with them.¡± Looking at Roxanne¡¯s passion for matters that concerned the research institute, Colby¡¯s heart Property ? N?velDrama.Org. surged with a sense of relief. He smiled and said, ¡°I¡¯ll do that now. Wait for me here.¡± Then, he exited the office and pulled out his phone. Meanwhile, Roxanne sat quietly in the office and waited. Irrespective of howplex the treatment would be, Roxanne was determined to cure old Mr. Queen. Soon after, Colby returned. ¡°How did it go?¡± Roxanne eagerly asked. Colby nodded. ¡°We still have a chance. the Queen family has yet to find a doctor that can cure Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition. Knowing that I have someone to rmend, they agreed to let you visit without any hesitation.¡± ¡°When are we heading there?¡± Roxanne continued asking. ¡°Tonight,¡± replied Colby. Roxanne agreed immediately. The timing was perfect, as she too wanted to go there as soon as possible. ¡°I need your help. Please let me know all the symptoms that Old Mr. Queen has. I will need to make the necessary preparations.¡± Roxanne became serious the moment she spoke about medicine. Colby obliged. Chapter 29 Chapter 29 Alfred¡¯s condition was quiteplicated. It was why the famous doctors weren¡¯t sure what to do. Just describing his illness alone took Colby a long while to finish. At six in the evening, after Roxanne got off work, she went to the Queen residence alone ording Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. to the address given to her by Colby. The person who opened the door was a middle-aged man dressed in a butler¡¯s outfit. He looked at Roxanne and politely asked, ¡°Greetings. May I ask who are you?¡± Roxanne smiled. ¡°Hello, I¡¯m the doctor who¡¯s here to treat Old Mr. Queen. I called during the afternoon,¡± The butler scrutinized her suspiciously because she looked pretty young. Is someone as young as her that capable? Still, he didn¡¯t show his doubts on his face. After two seconds, he invited, ¡°Since you¡¯re a doctor, please follow me inside.¡± He turned and guided Roxanne in. She didn¡¯t mind that he doubted her. One of her principles was that before she treated a patient, she would ept any form of distrust. She followed the butler into the courtyard. The structure and decor of the courtyard looked elegant. It clearly showed the Queen family was a family that cared a lot about appearances. After they entered the mansion, the butler gestured for her to take a seat on the couch. ¡°A visitor came by earlier, and Mr. Queen is apanying them to meet Old Mr. Queen. I¡¯ll let them know you¡¯ve arrived. Please wait here.¡± Roxanne nodded. ¡°All right.¡± She then sat on the couch. Soon after, a housekeeper served coffee to her. A few minutes passed, and she heard footsteps descending the stairs. She put her cup down and turned to the staircase. A young couple strolled down the stairs. At first nce, both of them looked quite familiar. The man was handsome, and the woman was beautiful. It was likely they were a pair of siblings. As they walked, they were speaking to someone behind them. It must be the visitor the butler mentioned earlier. Roxanne¡¯s line of sight followed them until she could see the visitor. It was a tall, handsome man. In his embrace was a child. He was currently talking to the siblings in front of him with a rxed expression. The man slowly turned his sight toward her, as though he noticed she was staring. Her heart thumped uncontrobly when their eyes met. Lucian! I didn¡¯t expect to see him here! Memories of what happened that night rushed into her mind. Roxanne¡¯s eyes trembled as she almost couldn¡¯t bear to look straight at him. She only calmed down after clenching her fists forcefully. Upon taking in a deep breath, she pretended as though nothing happened and stared at the siblings. On the stairs, Lucian paused and narrowed his eyes at the woman sitting on the couch. His gaze was fixed on her face as though he was trying to confirm something. When she looked away, his gaze darkened. It really is Roxanne! I thought she was someone else. Why is she here? He was a little puzzled, but he didn¡¯t show it on his face. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Lucian?¡± The man in front of him turned back to ask when he stopped moving. Lucian looked away upon hearing that and answered emotionlessly, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. Let¡¯s go.¡± The man in front nodded puzzledly as the trio continued to descend the stairs. Chapter 30 Chapter 30 Soon, the trio arrived in front of Roxanne. In Lucian¡¯s arms, Este stared at the beautifuldy in front of her. A rare expression of joy appeared on her face. Roxanne wasn¡¯t sure how to react to being stared at by the father and daughter duo. Thankfully, the man in front of Lucian spoke first to break the silence. ¡°Are you the doctor rmended by Dr. Galloway to treat Old Mr. Queen?¡± Roxanne adjusted her expression and smiled. ¡°Yes. My name¡¯s Roxanne Jarvis.¡± ¡°Dr. Jarvis.¡± The man stretched his hand out. ¡°I¡¯m Jonathan Queen. This here is my sister, Frieda Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Queen.¡± When he finished, he turned to Lucian. ¡°This is¡­ Well, we regard him as our elder brother. Hisst name is Farwell.¡± Roxanne tried to nod calmly and greeted, ¡°Mr. Queen, Ms. Queen, Mr. Farwell.¡± The moment she finished speaking, Lucian¡¯s crisp and meaningful chuckle rang out. There was a mocking tone in theughter. Roxanne lowered her head to hide the emotions in her eyes. Frieda studied her briefly before furrowing her eyebrows. She questioned, ¡°You¡¯re the one who said you can treat my grandpa¡¯s condition, right? You look about as young as us, though. I doubt you have been working as a doctor for long. Are you sure you can do it?¡± Her attitude mirrored the one the butler had earlier. However, since it came from the patient¡¯s family member, Roxanne didn¡¯t mind her doubt. Before she could exin, Jonathan smiled apologetically. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. My grandpa¡¯s condition has been getting quite serious. We¡¯ve hired all sorts of famous doctors in and out of the country, yet none of them could do anything. Our sister is simply worried that our grandfather will suffer ¨C even further. After all, a lot of doctors had given us false hope. It has happened enough times that we can¡¯t help but be cautious. I hope you don¡¯t mind, Dr. Jarvis.¡± He then shot a re at Frieda. ¡°Dr. Jarvis is here to treat Grandpa. How can you be so rude toward her? Apologize to her right now.¡± Frieda unwillingly looked away and muttered in a small voice, ¡°I¡¯m sorry.¡± Roxanne didn¡¯t mind that at all. When she heard the apology, she smiled. ¡°It¡¯s fine. After all, you two are his family members. I understand that you have concerns. However, I assure you I¡¯m capable. I may be young and, I might not look like a doctor with years of experience under my belt, but I¡¯ve researched manyplicated diseases abroad. My experience isn¡¯t as plenty as doctors who had been in the profession for decades, but I¡¯m confident in my abilities.¡± When she finished, she pulled out a document from her bag and handed it to Jonathan. ¡°This contains my achievements over the years. You can take a look jourself before deciding if I¡¯m qualified to treat Old Mr. Queen.¡± Jonathan didn¡¯t expect she would be that prepared. When he reprimanded Frieda earlier, he himself didn¡¯t trust Roxanne that much either. However, after seeing how confident she appeared and spoke, it was enough to convince him that she was capable even without looking at her credentials. Still, his responsibility for taking care of Alfred and curiosity about Roxannepelled him to grab the documents to take a look. Before he could touch the document, a chiseled hand suddenly reached out and snatched the document away. Chapter 31 Chapter 31 Everyone present was taken aback. As Roxanne stared at the big hand grabbing her credentials, she panicked. Ever since she saw Lucian, she had been trying to avoid looking at him at all. Since he had suddenly taken away her credentials, she had no choice but to focus on him. I wonder what he¡¯s trying to do. Lucian held the document and nced at Roxanne beforementing, ¡°A lot of people nowadays will fake their credentials to make themselves look better. Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition is already in a critical stage, so you two mustn¡¯t let people like that fool you.¡± As he spoke, he casually flipped through the credentials and read them extremely slowly. It looked as though he was really trying to discern if it was fake or not. All details about her life, including the school she went to and the ce she was working at, was absorbed by his eyes. The life she had lived over the past years started to take form in his mind. As she said, her achievements during her time abroad were quite impressive. Each of those credentials was so excellent that it would make people widen their eyes. Roxanne stared anxiously at him reading through her credentials. She saw that the more Lucian read, the more obvious the hint of mockery at the corners of his lips. Since she had no idea what he was thinking, all she could do was wring her fingers tightly and hope for the best. After a long while, Lucian slowly closed the cover of her credentials. At that moment, her body tensed up. ¡°This looks¡­ real enough.¡± He coldly swept his gaze past her and suggested, ¡°However, I think you better double check her info on the inte, Jonathan. It¡¯s best to make sure if she really is who she ims to be. After all, these credentials could be bought.¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t hold back anymore. He¡¯s messing with me on purpose and trying to make them doubt my medical skills! On a normal day, she might have been able to tolerate it. However, because this had to do with the Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. research institute, she had to obtain the chance to treat Alfred. Thinking of this, she stared at him seriously and answered coldly, ¡°Yes, those can be bought, but you can¡¯t buy medical skills! If I¡¯m not capable, then you¡¯ll know when I treat Old Mr. Queen, Mr. Farwell.¡± Things were getting pretty tense between them. It was as though a conflict was brewing. Jonathan found the situation quite odd. Do they know each other? They have to, right? Why else would he say things like that to her? ¡°Do you two know each other?¡± Frieda asked. Roxanne didn¡¯t hesitate at all before denying it. ¡°Nope! How can I possibly know someone as mighty as Mr. Farwell?¡± Then she turned to Jonathan. ¡°I¡¯m here to treat Old Mr. Queen, Mr. Queen. If you don¡¯t mind, will you let me take a look at him?¡± She was trying to avoid interacting with Lucian directly. Her change of topic was so sudden that Jonathan¡¯s reaction couldn¡¯t catch up with it. Roxanne¡¯s expression turned even more serious. ¡°I am a doctor, and I¡¯m just here to understand Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition. Even if I can¡¯t treat him, he won¡¯t get hurt. Please let me take a look at him. If I can treat him, then he¡¯ll have a chance to survive. If not, I¡¯ll leave right away and wont disturb you any longer!¡± Chapter 32 Chapter 32 Jonathan was somewhat moved by Roxanne¡¯s determination, but he still turned to see what Lucian thought. Lucian was merely staring at her coldly and silently. Upon seeing that, Jonathan nodded at her. ¡°Then I¡¯ll take you to my grandfather. Please follow me.¡± She secretly let out a sigh of relief and tried her best to ignore Lucian¡¯s gaze. She passed by his side as she followed Jonathan. Frieda was still worried after seeing her brother bringing the young doctor upstairs, so she followed them too. The three of them soon vanished at the corner of the stairs. When Este saw Roxanne leaving, she pulled her father¡¯s cor to gesture for him to follow the woman. Lucian looked away from the staircase and stared at the child in his arms. His lips twitched before he headed upstairs too. Roxanne almost had a heart attack when she saw him suddenly appearing as she arrived at Alfred¡¯s room. ¡°We¡¯ve arrived,¡± Jonathan announced. She quickly forced herself to calm down and followed him into the room Upon entering the room, a strong smell of medicine rushed into her nose. She swept a nce across the room and saw a big bed sitting in the middle of it. Standing next to the bed were a couple of people in white outfits. It would appear that they were the medical team specially prepared for Alfred. The room was likely a dedicated medical room to treat the old man. Just as the rumors suggested, the Queen family cared a lot about Alfred¡¯s condition. Jonathan brought her straight to Alfred¡¯s bed. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, if you will.¡± Roxanne lowered her head and examined the patient on the bed. Alfred looked pretty weak on the bed. He was so thin that he was almost just bones, and his cheeks were sunken. If he wasn¡¯t lying down in a medical room, people would¡¯ve thought he was a corpse. The look in Roxanne¡¯s eyes turned stern as her eyebrows furrowed tightly. His condition is as severe as Colby described. She examined him without dy. First, she held the old man¡¯s wrist to check his pulse. Jonathan was taken aback when he saw that. If she¡¯s doing that, it means she practices traditional medicine. It¡¯s hard to believe she¡¯s using such a simple diagnostic method on him. The Queen family had hired medical practitioners of all kinds to treat Alfred¡¯s condition, so he had personally seen different medical techniques being applied to Alfred. That was the reason he was shocked by Roxanne¡¯s action. It was a very simple technique to diagnose Alfred¡¯s condition. Still, he didn¡¯t say anything. She sat next to the bed, holding Alfred¡¯s wrist. Her eyes were lowered as she focused entirely on the Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. activities of his pulse. The more she observed his pulse, the more she was shocked. She thought his condition was severe enough when Colby described it. However, Alfred¡¯s actual condition turned out to be even worse. During her diagnosis, she noticed Alfred¡¯s breathing was so weak that any breath could be hisst. After a while, Roxanne let go of the old man¡¯s hand with a heavy expression and approached Jonathan ¡°What¡¯s the result, Dr. Jarvis? How¡¯s my grandpa¡¯s condition? Can you treat him?¡± Hope glimmered in Jonathan¡¯s eyes. However, Roxanne furrowed her eyebrows and questioned, ¡°Why wasn¡¯t Old Mr. Queen sent to the hospital, even though he¡¯s in such a critical condition? Why is he being kept inside the house even though he¡¯s on the verge of dying?¡± Chapter 33 Chapter 33 The expression on the Queen siblings¡¯ faces instantly changed. ¡°What are you saying?¡± Frieda red at Roxanne furiously. ¡°Can yo¨´ treat him or not? If you can¡¯t, then just say so! Don¡¯t curse my grandpa like that!¡± Roxanne stared at her coldly. ¡°I¡¯m already putting things very mildly. After the dy and not getting his treatment in time, your grandfather is suffering malfunctions in many of his organs. His immune system is rapidly deteriorating. Normally, cases like this require the patient¡¯s body to be taken care of in a timely, healthy manner. However, the medical team you hired didn¡¯t care about the patient¡¯s health condition and just pumped his body full of drugs! This isn¡¯t treating his condition; it¡¯s killing him even quicker!¡± The leader of the medical team was pretty unhappy at the usation. He approached them and justified his actions in front of Roxanne. ¡°If you don¡¯t understand the situation, then don¡¯t spit out nonsensical judgments, miss. Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition was getting pretty serious. If we hadn¡¯t given him the medicine in time back then, he wouldn¡¯t have survived! Please don¡¯t question our professionalism. Besides, we¡¯re hired by Ms. Pearson. Why would we hurt him?¡± Roxanne instantly caught the name of his employer. Ms. Pearson? Does he mean Aubree? I can¡¯t believe she hired this medical team. Where the hell did she find this team of buffoons? Not only do they suck, but they¡¯re also arrogantly confident. Heh, does he think I¡¯ll be afraid just because she¡¯s the one who hired them? Roxanne¡¯s expression was getting pretty cold as she retorted, ¡°Professionalism? Forgive me for being candid, but I cannot see a shred of professionalism in this team! If you have even the tiniest bit of professionalism, the patient¡¯s condition wouldn¡¯t have be this severe!¡± The doctor was stumped. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. When he thought about how sick Alfred looked at that moment, his eyebrows furrowed tightly. No words came out of his mouth. When she saw how the doctor was gettingmbasted, Frieda¡¯s expression changed as she stepped forward. ¡°Since you¡¯re acting so high-and-mighty, does this mean you¡¯re certain you can cure my grandpa? If not, stop wasting time and talking nonsense here. Aubree had introduced many good doctors over the years to help treat my grandfather. Lucian is doing the same as well. But now you¡¯re saying their years of hard work amounts to nothing?¡± Roxanne furrowed her eyebrows and nced at Lucian¡¯s emotionless face. She then looked away and replied resolutely, ¡°I¡¯m simply speaking the truth. It¡¯s not my ce to say if their hard work has gone to waste. I just think everyone should know about the truth.¡± ¡°You!¡± Frieda didn¡¯t expect her to be that sharp-tongued. Seeing how a fight was about to erupt, Jonathan red at his sister. Frieda unwillingly shut up upon meeting his eyes. He spoke sincerely after reprimanding his sister. ¡°I apologize on my behalf for my sister. However, right now, I don¡¯t care about how the treatment was handled before. I just want to know if you¡¯re confident that you can treat my grandfather¡¯s condition. If you do, then please hurry. As you said, my grandpa¡¯s condition is so severe that we can¡¯t afford any dys anymore.¡± Frieda spat out sarcastically as well, ¡°Yeah, aren¡¯t you so good? Quickly treat our grandfather. then. I want to see how capable you are.¡± Roxanne ignored her attempt at provocation and returned to the bed. ¡°I¡¯m going to treat him now. Please help me take off Old Mr. Queen¡¯s clothing.¡± Chapter 34 Chapter 34 When they heard that, they were shocked. They had met many famous doctors who attempted to treat Alfred, yet that was the first time they heard someone asking them to take off Alfred¡¯s clothes. Jonathan was the first to react as he asked cautiously, ¡°Is it necessary?¡± Roxanne nced at him weirdly. ¡°I¡¯m about to treat Old Mr. Queen, and his shirt will prevent me from treating him more easily. Can someone help? Please do it quickly.¡± Everyone in the room, including the medical team, exchanged looks with each other. They had no idea why it was necessary to take the patient¡¯s shirt off for the treatment. Jonathan hesitated before gritting his teeth and stepping forward. Seeing that her brother had relented, Frieda was panicking, ¡°What kind of treatment is this? Why Before she could finish, she saw Roxanne pulling out a quaint wooden box from her medical kit. There was a scroll-like item inside. After she unrolled it, hundreds of big and small silver needles could be seen arranged neatly inside. Frieda was shocked by what she saw and swallowed her words. Roxanne focused on taking out the needles she needed before disinfecting them with alcohol. She didn¡¯t at all pay attention to what Frieda was saying. In front of her, Jonathan was pulling Alfred toward himself with great difficulty. One of his hands was stabilizing the old man¡¯s body while the other was taking off the shirt. Since Alfred waspletely unconscious at that moment, he wasn¡¯t going to cooperate. It made Jonathan¡¯s actions even more difficult. Lucian stared at Roxanne¡¯s actions as the look in his eyes darkened. When he saw how much Jonathan was struggling, he put Este on the ground and ordered, ¡°I¡¯ll be helping Jonathan out. Stay here and don¡¯t move, okay?¡± She nodded obediently as she watched her father walk through the crowd and stood next to the bed. He then silently helped Jonathan remove Alfred¡¯s shirt. ¡°Thanks, Lucian.¡± Jonathan stared at him gratefully. Lucian nodded silently, When Roxanne noticed Lucian was there, her eyshes quivered, though she quickly returned to her calm self as she focused on the needles. Soon, Alfred¡¯s shirt was removed, and everyone was able to see how thin his body was. Roxanne had expected that. She asked the two men to hold the old man steadily. ¡°Stabilize him. I¡¯m going to start the treatment now.¡± Jonathan nodded with a serious expression. Then she looked at Lucian, who didn¡¯t react at all. She took in a deep breath and began to poke the needles onto Alfred¡¯s body. After the first needle was ced, an exmation rang out. ¡°What are you doing? How could you stab that acupuncture point?¡± Frieda was the one speaking. While she had a medical background, she wasn¡¯t familiar with acupuncture. Despite that, she could tell what Roxanne was doing was very dangerous. It was possible even for normal people to die because of what Roxanne was doing, so the risk was greater for the sickly Alfred. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. Frieda¡¯s expression tensed up as rage and panic filled her eyes. ¡°If you don¡¯t know how to do it, then don¡¯t do it! What are you doing? Are you trying to kill my grandfather?¡± When she finished speaking, she violently pushed Roxanne away. Roxanne heard her doubts, but she ignored them as she nned where to ce the second needle. That was why she didn¡¯t expect Frieda would suddenly push her. She was caught off guard being pushed like that, and so she lost her center of gravity for a moment. It almost caused her to fall to her side and into Lucian¡¯s arms. Chapter 35 Chapter 35 Before Roxanne could react to the situation, Lucian supported her by the waist and stabilized her body. When she raised her head, she saw his dark eyes. As their gazes met, Roxanne¡¯s body stiffened. Then she quickly looked away before standing back up by propping her hand on the bed and supporting herself. He had grabbed her subconsciously when she fell. However, when he saw her avoiding him like the gue, the look in his eyes darkened. And so, he quickly withdrew the hand from her waist. ¡°How dare you say you researchedplicated diseases before! Is this the result of your research? I think those credentials of yours were bought!¡± Frieda didn¡¯t notice what was going on between the two of them and was still angry at Roxanne. She stared at Jonathan furiously. ¡°I think she¡¯s a liar, Jonathan! We need to kick her out right now!¡± When Roxanne heard that, she quickly snapped back to her senses and mocked, ¡°No wonder Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition became so severe. It seems like someone¡¯s been interfering with his treatment. Since you insist I¡¯m wrong, I¡¯m leaving right now.¡± She then started to put the needles back into her bag. No one expected she would back off so easily after she disyed a steeled determination to treat Alfred earlier. Jonathan was stunned for a few seconds before snapping out of his daze and apologizing, ¡°I¡¯m really sorry, Dr. Jarvis. To be honest, our family consists of many doctors, so we know a little bit about acupuncture. My sister is angry probably because she thinks it¡¯s dangerous for you to jab a needle at that acupuncture point and is worried about our grandpa. Please forgive her.¡± Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Roxanne ignored him and continued to pack her things. ¡°I don¡¯t need to stay here and get scolded by someone who doesn¡¯t know what I¡¯m doing. I came here because I genuinely wanted to help Old Mr. Queen, but since Ms. Queen doesn¡¯t believe me, forget about it!¡± The moment she finished speaking, she picked up her medical kit and headed to the door. In a panic, Jonathan carefully put Alfred down before chasing after her. ¡°We can talk things out, Dr. Jarvis. My sister did go too far with her words, so I¡¯ll ask her to apologize to you right now. Please continue your treatment on my grandfather.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need for that. I can¡¯t ept Ms. Queen¡¯s apology.¡± Roxanne¡¯s tone was cold. Lucian¡¯s eyebrows were furrowed tightly as he stood at the side of the bed, staring at the back of her figure with a heavy expression. He could tell she was really angry. On the side, Este was also able to tell Roxanne was angry. Panic filled her eyes. I didn¡¯t even get the chance to say hello to Ms. Jarvis yet, but now she¡¯s leaving because she got angry¡­ Thinking of that. Este got angry as well. To express her fury, she walked over to Frieda, wrote a word in her notebook, and then showed it to Frieda. Many people¡¯s attention was shifted to her sudden appearance and the word written in her book. which was ¡°Apologize!¡± Este stared at Frieda with wide eyes. Frieda was too embarrassed to back down then. Her line of sight casually shifted away from the notebook, and she pretended to not see Este. Then she turned to her brother. ¡°If it doesn¡¯t work out, we can just find another doctor. I really can¡¯t trust this person.¡± When she saw how Frieda was still acting stubbornly, Roxanne¡¯s expression turned colder as she mocked, ¡°Then I hope you can find a doctor you like before Old Mr. Queen takes hisst breath, Ms. Queen.¡± She turned around and stepped out. The moment she did that, however, someone grabbed her wrist. Her eyebrows furrowed as she turned back unhappily to see who it was. Lucian¡¯s expressionless, handsome face appeared in front of her. Shock filled her heart. What is he¡­ What is the meaning of this? Chapter 36 Chapter 36 Lucian nced at Roxanne and turned her around by pulling her wrist. Then he stared at Frieda coldly. ¡°Apologize.¡± Frieda was bbergasted when she heard that. ¡°W-What did you say, Lucian?¡± Lucian looked at her loftily, radiating an intimidating aura. ¡°Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition is extremely severe right now. If there anyone could save him, that person would¡¯ve shown up by now since you¡¯d invited every famous doctor from inside and outside of the country. But no, that person has never shown up.¡± Stunned by his fierce aura, Frieda lowered her head in a panic. ¡°This¡­¡± Lucian paused, nced at Roxanne, and continued, ¡°Ms. Jarvis has no rtion to the Queen family. She¡¯s only here to treat Old Mr. Queen. It¡¯s fine if you don¡¯t believe her, but there¡¯s no reason for you to hurt her. Did the Queen family teach you manners like this? Apologize to her now!¡± Jonathan was a little shocked too as he stared at Lucian in disbelief. I can¡¯t believe it. Lucian is defending a stranger he doesn¡¯t know? He¡¯s not wrong, though. After all, Frieda had been trying to chase Dr. Jarvis away and even hit her. Why is she acting so rashly today? Since Lucian had lectured Frieda, Jonathan also added, ¡°Lucian¡¯s right, Frieda. Apologize to Dr. Jarvis immediately! As worried as you may be, you shouldn¡¯t have treated her like that! You¡¯re too rash!¡± Frieda gritted her teeth and stared at everyone. Lucian¡¯s protecting that woman behind him and making me apologize. Not only that, my brother¡¯s defending her, too. Even Essie is demanding I apologize! There¡¯s no other way out for me! She hesitated for a long while before lowering her head unwillingly. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Dr. Jarvis. I was acting too rashly. My apologies. I shouldn¡¯t have hit you.¡± Her tone was very rigid and insincere. Roxanne didn¡¯t want to care about what was going on, but at the same time, she was staring at Lucian absentmindedly. What is he thinking? Why is he helping me again? Before I started the treatment, he was the one who Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. was trying to stop me from advancing. But when I was treating Old Mr. Queen, he helped out, and now he¡¯s even defending me. His intentions are so unclear¡­ ¡°Frieda has admitted her mistake, but I don¡¯t expect you to forgive her that quickly, Dr. Jarvis. However, as you said, my grandpa¡¯s condition is worsening. Can you please treat him first. We can discuss how we can make up for my sister¡¯s misdeed in the future.¡± Jonathan¡¯s voice rang in her ears. Roxanne was still pretty upset, but when she thought about the research institute, she suppressed her displeasure. Besides, Jonathan was right. Alfred did need a doctor quickly, and he was innocent. When she thought about that, she calmed down and swept her gaze past the crowd in the room before ordering coldly, ¡°I hope unrted persons will leave this room before I restart my treatment.¡± Frieda was about to say she was family before Roxanne added, ¡°That includes Ms. Queen.¡± Frieda¡¯s expression darkened, but Jonathan agreed and asked everyone else to leave. The only people left were Jonathan, Lucian, and a clingy Este. Roxanne sat next to the bed and prepared her treatment. Chapter 37 Chapter 37 With no one disturbing her, Roxanne¡¯s treatment went much more smoothly. After a while, a dozen of silver needles were poked onto Alfred¡¯s chest. Throughout the entire process, Roxanne focused all her attention on treating him calmly and steadily In fact, she was so focused that she didn¡¯t realize Lucian was staring at her the whole time. When they were downstairs, he had already read through her credentials. It was absolutely wless. That was enough for him to imagine how exciting her life had been for the past six years. However, it was his first time seeing this side of her. When she was doing her job, she was absolutely focused and didn¡¯t reflect any hesitation in her movements. It was something Lucian had never seen in Roxanne before. An indescribable feeling surfaced in his heart when he saw that. At the side, Jonathan had been observing her poking the needles on his grandfather and her expression as she was doing so. After a dozen needles were poked onto Alfred¡¯s body, he joyously found out that perhaps she would be able to save Alfred. Like everyone else, he thought it was ridiculous when she stabbed her first silver needle. However, recalling her expression as she was doing so, he somehow felt as though he could trust her. So, he insisted that she stayed. The more he watched her administer the needles skillfully andposedly, the more he was certain she was capable of treating his grandfather. He also noticed that the spots she stabbed with the needles were very dangerous acupuncture points. If she made even the tiniest mistake, not only would her effort be for nothing, but Alfred might also lose his life. It was his belief that Roxanne wouldn¡¯t risk Alfred¡¯s life unless she was confident. It looks like her research on acupuncture and acupuncture points had indeed reached the level of a master¡¯s! Thinking of that, Jonathan felt joyful and respected her from the bottom of his heart. Even though she looks younger than me, she¡¯s already much more capable than I am. Indeed, one shouldn¡¯t judge a book by its cover. The room remained silent for nearly twenty minutes before Roxanne stabbed onest needle onto Alfred. Her expression rxed as she lifted her sweaty forehead. ¡°All right, that will be enough. He¡¯ll be much better after I remove the necdles an hourter.¡± She nced at the two men beside the bed. Jonathan let out a long sigh of relief and carefully approached Alfred. Then he asked, ¡°When will he wake up?¡± ¡°He should wake up when I remove the needles.¡± Roxanne stood up and attempted to grab tissue papers to wipe her forehead. Just as she was about to do that, someone tugged the hem of her shirt. She paused and lowered her head in confusion. That was when she met up with Este¡¯s sparkling eyes. Even though she knew it was a child Lucian had with another woman, she still couldn¡¯t steel her heart in front of such an angelic and cute face. Seeing how she was looking at her, Este pulled out a neatly folded handkerchief and stood on her toes. Then she handed the handkerchief to Roxanne with anticipation in her eyes. Roxanne hesitated for a few seconds before smiling, ¡°Thank you.¡± Sec Then she epted the handkerchief and wiped her forehead with it. Este smiled brightly and left to pour her a cup of water. Lucian stared silently at how Este was walking around excitedly. His eyes turned dark. This is the first time she¡¯s taking the initiative to get closer to someone. Although¡­ I suppose it¡¯s only natural, considering their rtionship. Jonathan didn¡¯t know that, so he was surprised. ¡°Looks like Essie likes you, Dr. Jarvis! It¡¯s my first time Property ? N?velDrama.Org. seeing her being willing to get close to another person!¡± Previous Chapter Next Chapter Chapter 38 Chapter 38 Roxanne was slightly stunned before she turned to Lucian with a worried expression She hadn¡¯t been honest with him the incident when Este was lost back then. I doubt I can hide it from him, though: And so, she hesitantly exined, ¡°It¡¯s probably because I found her when she got lostst time.¡± Jonathan didn¡¯t know that happened. His line of sight shifted between Este and Roxanne. ¡°I guess you two are destined to meet each other, then.¡± Destined? Roxanne thought about Este¡¯s identity and pursed her lip self-deprecatingly before replying inly, ¡°I suppose so.¡± Jonathan didn¡¯t notice anything strange about her, so he stood up and suggested, ¡°Since my grandpa still needs an hour, we should wait downstairs and drink some water. Thanks for your help, Dr. Jarvis.¡± Roxanne secretly sigh with relief when he changed the topic and quickly agreed to his suggestion. Lucian walked away from his side of the bed, responding to the invitation through his actions. When he tried to hug Este, the girl wasn¡¯t at all interested. After Este handed the handkerchief to Roxanne, she had been staying at thetter¡¯s side. Upon hearing that they were heading downstairs, she immediately reached her hand out and grabbed Roxanne¡¯s hand, much like how they did itst time. Right before her hand touched Roxanne¡¯s, a phone rang. Roxanne promptly turned around to take the phone in her bag, and her fingertips brushed past the little girl¡¯s. It wasn¡¯t easy for Este to build up the courage to hold Roxanne¡¯s hand, yet she failed at thest second. She blinked slowly as disappointment colored her expression, and she started fiddling with her fingers. Lucian saw how they almost held each other¡¯s hand. His eyes darkened in response. Roxanne picked up the phone and saw it was a call from Madilyn. Vas She handed her kids to Madilyn tonight because of her appointment at the Queen residence. So, when she saw the call, she thought something happened to the children and speedily answered. As her finger swiped across the screen, she identally pressed the speaker icon. ¡°Hello?¡± Roxanne spoke without noticing her mistake. In the next second, she heard two cute voices ringing through the air. ¡°When are youing back, Mommy?¡± It shocked her and she quickly turned off the speaker mode.. The children¡¯s voices vanished in an instant. Despite that, she could feel her heart beating like crazy. She worriedly and subconsciously shot a side nce at Lucian. Her first reaction was that she was afraid he would learn of her children¡¯s existence. Lucian¡¯s face was currently as dark as the sky before a thunderstorm. There was an icy look in his eyes. I heard the voicesing from the phone. It was a boy¡¯s voice calling her ¡°Mommy.¡± Did she get married again? When he realized that, rage flooded into his mind and heart. He gritted his teeth and forced himself to calm down. That was the only way he could resist the urge to pin her to the wall and question her. Jonathan didn¡¯t detect anything wrong between the both of them and smiled. ¡°Are you married, Dr. Jarvis?¡± Roxanne¡¯s mind was in so much chaos that she just nodded. When Jonathan saw that, he smiled. ¡°I couldn¡¯t tell you already have kids.¡± Say Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. She apologized, ¡°I¡¯m sorry. Please excuse me while I take a call.¡± Chapter 39 Chapter 39 When Roxanne walked out of the room, she lowered her voice and spoke to the children. ¡°I¡¯m still treating a patient right now, so I¡¯ll be back muchter. Go y with Aunt Madilyn first.¡± The children were used to her returning homete, so they agreed. Concurrently, inside the room, Lucian¡¯s expression was so cold that it was reaching the freezing point. Rage was boiling in his heart. Este¡¯s attempt to reach Roxanne¡¯s hand and the ¡°Mommy¡± he heard on the phone kept echoing in his mind. No wonder she acts so coldly toward Este. It turns out she had already married someone else and given birth to new children! That¡¯s why she abandoned Este back then! He stared at his daughter, who was still standing in her original spot. was Despite her obvious disappointment, she still stared at the door, waiting for Roxanne to return. Watching her like that made his heart ache. So what if she has returned? She still doesn¡¯t want to take care of her child! The look on Lucian¡¯s face was terrifyingly dark as he approached Este and carried her into his arms. The girl stared at him with confusion and tugged his cor, indicating that she didn¡¯t want to be carried Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Of course, he didn¡¯t notice it as he coldly announced, ¡°It¡¯s gettingte, so I¡¯ll be taking Essie back home now. If Old Mr. Queen wakes up, give me a call. I¡¯ll stop by another day.¡± Before Jonathan could reply, he left with Este. Roxanne had just ended her call and was about to head back in. When she arrived at the doorway, she saw Lucian walking out expressionlessly. Her heart clenched, but just as she wondered what to do, he walked past her and left without ncing at her. She was a little stunned at his sudden departure, though when she returned to her senses, she It seems like he didn¡¯t care about the call at all. Six years ago, he didn¡¯t care about me either, not to mention I did that sort of thing to him when I left. Of course, he won¡¯t care about me now, nor would he care about the two children. To him, we¡¯re all strangers. Roxanne knew they lived in different worlds. She thought about the emotional roller-coaster she had just gone through earlier and felt like a joke. She stood outside the door for a long while before sighing gently. Upon tidying up her thoughts, she entered the room. Only Jonathan was left in the room. He had witnessed their interaction earlier. For some reason, I feel like their rtionship isn¡¯t as simple as it seems. Lucian, especially, seems weird. It¡¯s the first time he showed so many emotions toward a woman. He was really curious about their history, but because it was their private matter, he didn¡¯t inquire further about it. Instead, he started talking about Alfred¡¯s condition with her. Este was panicking as Lucian brought her out of the mansion and into the car. She quickly wrote a sentence in her notebook and tugged the hem of his shirt before showing it to him. The sentence read: I haven¡¯t talked to Ms. Jarvis yet. Can we stay a little longer? Seeing that, Lucian felt a surge of mixed feelings, and his eyebrows furrowed. Este noticed her father looked kind of down, and a caring look appeared in her eyes. She then wrote two more sentences: What¡¯s wrong, Daddy? Why aren¡¯t you happy? Chapter 40 Chapter 40 Lucian¡¯s expression turned grim when he saw what happened. ¡°What¡¯s there to talk to her about? Pretend that you don¡¯t know her the next time you see her and don¡¯t ever interact with her again.¡± Since she has no intention of acknowledging her daughter, I might as well go along with her wishes. Taken aback by Lucian¡¯s tone, Este was briefly stunned before she pouted and wrote in her notebook: Why? Before he could reply, she quickly wrote: I like her very much, and she is kind and gentle to me. I want to be together with her! Despite Lucian¡¯s sympathy for her when he saw how much she liked Roxanne, they had no choice but to face reality. He replied indifferently, ¡°That¡¯s because she has children of her own and doesn¡¯t need another child.¡± Este was confused by his reply. I know that the two boys are her sons, but she has still been very nice to me. However, Daddy seems to hate her. Este couldn¡¯t help but feel disappointed. When he saw her fall silent, Lucian instructed his assistant to drive. After leaving the Queen residence, he felt a tug on his sleeve, causing him to look over at Este with knitted brows. She wrote: In that case, where is my mommy? She gave him a pitiful look, while her eyes were filled with confusion. As the prettydy is the boys¡¯ mommy, I cannot be with her. In that case, where¡¯s my mommy? Her question tore into Lucian¡¯s heart. Recovering his gaze painfully, he had no idea how to respond to her. She¡¯s asking me where her mommy is, and I do know the answer. However, how am I going to exin the cruel truth to her? That woman has a new family now. Even with her own daughter standing right before her eyes, she had no intention of acknowledging her. The more he thought about it, the gloomier he became. Consequently, a long silence was his only response to her. When she didn¡¯t obtain an answer. Este continued to stare nkly at him, yearning for an answer. Finally, Lucian replied through gritted teeth, ¡°I don¡¯t know. I don¡¯t know where she is, and don¡¯t ever Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. ask me this question again! Just having me is enough. There¡¯s no need for you to have a mommy at all!¡± After looking at him in shock, Este gradually put her notebook away before hanging her head in silence. For the rest of the journey home, neither father nor daughter spoke another word. Back at the Queen residence, Roxanne felt out of sorts after Lucian was gone. Jonathan could sense that she was unsettled but didn¡¯t bring it up. Instead, he led her downstairs where they made idle chatter over coffee. From the outside, both of them seemed to be getting along very well. After Frieda was chased out, she returned to her room. Subsequently, she came out to see for herself what the situation was. When she saw her elder brother sitting with Roxanne on the couch, she let out an inaudible snort. From the very beginning, she never believed in Roxanne¡¯s capability, and her opinion of thetter hadn¡¯t changed. Despite noticing Frieda¡¯s contemptuous expression, Roxanne didn¡¯t hold it against her and just pretended to be oblivious of the former. One hourter, Roxanne changed the subject. ¡°It¡¯s time. We can remove the needles now.¡± She got up and headed upstairs with Jonathan following closely behind. At the same time, Frieda, too, got up skeptically and went along with them. Even though she didn¡¯t have faith in Roxanne, she was still concerned about her grandfather. Furthermore, she intended to see for herself whether Roxanne was as capable as she imed to be. Chapter 41 Chapter 41 Compared to inserting needles, removing them was a lot easier. All the needles on Alfred¡¯s body were cleared in less than ten minutes. After checking his condition, Roxanne began to pack her things. In the meantime, Jonathan and Frieda stood anxiously by the bedside. Previously, all the famous doctors they had sought failed to produce any results. Therefore, they weren¡¯t sure if Alfred was able to wake up this time. Under their attentive gaze, Alfred¡¯s fingers began to curl slightly. In the next second, his eyes gradually opened, and he began to grimace while coughing weakly. ¡°Grandpa!¡± As Jonathan sat down to help Alfred regain his breath, the former¡¯s eyes were filled with both shock and delight. Frieda, too, was so stunned that she was at a loss for words. Despite herck of faith in Roxanne, her grandfather had woken up due to Roxanne¡¯s treatment. ¡°Grandpa, how do you feel?¡± Jonathan asked with concern once Alfred had stopped coughing. Alfred nodded slightly and replied in an extremely hoarse voice, ¡°How long have I been asleep for?¡± Just when Jonathan was about to answer, Roxanne walked over after she was done packing. ¡°It would be better if Old Mr. Queen doesn¡¯t speak too much now, for he needs a lot more rest.¡± Nodding in response, Jonathan carefully helped Alfredy back down. After that, he got to his feet and expressed his gratitude. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, I couldn¡¯t thank you enough. Also, I would like to apologize for our ignorance over doubting you previously. The mistake was ours, as you¡¯re clearly an extraordinary doctor.¡± After epting his gratitude and apology, Roxanne reminded, ¡°Even though Old Mr. Queen has woken up, his prognosis still looks bleak. He needs at least six to seven more treatments before he can truly turn the corner.¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Jonathan nodded repeatedly. ¡°Also, I¡¯ll prescribe some medicine for him to supplement his health, as it will help with the treatment. After all, the damage that Old Mr. Queen¡¯s body has suffered is significant. As future treatments require him to be strong enough, I¡¯m worried that he might not be able to withstand it,¡± Roxanne continued. Jonathan naturally had no objections as he nodded in agreement. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. We willply with all your instructions regarding Grandpa¡¯s treatment.¡± Nodding slightly, Roxanne retrieved a bottle of pills from her bag. ¡°Here, take two pills three times a day after meals.¡± Subsequently, she took out a piece of paper and wrote a prescription for him. ¡°Based on the quantity I¡¯ve written here, get ten batches of them. Every day, add them into a soup for Old Mr. Queen to drink. This way, it will hasten his recovery.¡± Jonathan acknowledged, ¡°All right. We¡¯ll follow your instructions.¡± After going into the details a little more, Roxanne realized it was gettingte when she checked the time. Thinking of her two sons waiting for her at home, she got up to leave. ¡°I think it¡¯s time for me to go, but I¡¯ll being back tomorrow. In the meantime, call me if Old Mr. Queen has any problems.¡± With that, she headed to the door with her medical bag in hand. ncing at Roxanne¡¯s leaving silhouette, Jonathan called out to her, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, other than treating Grandpa, I¡¯m sure you have some other reason for being here.¡± Stopping abruptly in her tracks, Roxanne suddenly remembered her objective foring over. But Old Mr. Queen hasn¡¯t recovered fully yet. So, Jonathan¡­ When Jonathan saw her stop, he softened his tone. ¡°Don¡¯t you want to talk about it first before leaving?¡± Chapter 42 Chapter 42 Jonathan¡¯s intentions couldn¡¯t be more obvious. Even though she didn¡¯t bring up the matter of medicine supply, he was cognizant of her agenda. In fact, he was also interested in exploring the matter with her. However, Roxanne hesitated at being rewarded for a task she had yet toplete. After all, the Queen family had initially dered that they would only supply medicine at half price to whoever that cured Alfred. When she didn¡¯t say a word, Jonathan simply stared at her with a grin. Roxanne smiled back. ¡°To be honest, I dide here to treat Old Mr. Queen after a friend told me that your family was willing to sell medicine at half price to whoever cured him. But now that he has only just awakened and his condition hasn¡¯t stabilized, I don¡¯t think it¡¯s appropriate to talk about the reward. At the very least, we can wait till his situation makes a turn for the better.¡± Jonathan¡¯s smile broadened upon hearing Roxanne¡¯s answer. He then replied with even greater sincerity, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, the fact that Grandpa is awake is already a miracle to us. As for his follow-up treatment, we have the utmost confidence in you. Consequently, you have earned the right for us to discuss your reward.¡± Surprised at how much faith he had in her, Roxanne was briefly stunned. When she finally regained her senses, she took a seat on the couch. ¡°You were rmended by Dr. Galloway. When he came to see Grandpa back then, he did bring up the situation at the research institute. However, since he was unable to help Grandpa, the matter ended up in limbo.¡± Jonathan exined further, ¡°Now that he has sent you here, I¡¯m sure it has something to do with the research institute. Is my guess spot on?¡± Roxanne nodded slightly before rting the research institute¡¯s situation to him. ¡°The research institute is currently working on a few projects. Unfortunately, progress is being held back by theck of medicines. As a result, we¡¯ve been searching for a medicine supplier whom we can work with. Unfortunately, we ended up being rejected by everyone in Horington. With no other choice, Colby thought of the Queen family and figured that I should give it a try.¡± Looking at Jonathan, Roxanne exined earnestly, ¡°Of course, even without the reward, I would still do my best to treat Old Mr. Queen. The reward is nothing more than a bonus to me.¡± When Roxanne¡¯s serious expression earned Jonathan¡¯s further respect, he repeated, ¡°I would like to apologize again for the doubt I¡¯ve shown you earlier. You truly are an exceptional doctor.¡± Acknowledging his praise, Roxanne stared intently at Jonathan while waiting for him to discuss the medicine supply. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. With no time to waste, Jonathan jumped right into it after gaining an understanding of the situation, ¡°Now that Grandpa has awoken after receiving your treatment, we hope that you will continue taking good care of him. As for the reward promised by our family, I have the authority to make a decision. As a start, I will provide the research institute with its first batch of medicine free of charge as a sign of our gratitude. Subsequently, our family will sign a long-term contract with the institute to supply medicine at half price.¡± Roxanne gradually understood the situation. After watching Alfred regain consciousness from her treatment, Jonathan was thoroughly convinced that she could cure him. As for the first batch of free medicine, it was both a gift and also an effort to reassure her. After all, that batch would solve the urgent shortage at the research institute, allowing her to concentrate on curing Alfred without any distractions. Needless to say, Jonathan¡¯s proposal was extremely tempting. ¡°All right. Please rest assured that I will do my best to cure Old Mr. Queen.¡± Chapter 43 Chapter 43 Upon hearing her promise, Jonathan replied with a smile, ¡°Your words have put my mind at ease. Anyway, I¡¯ll get the contract drafted tomorrow. When the timees, all you need to do is sign it.¡± Roxanne nodded in acknowledgment. With the matter of the reward settled, Jonathan personally escorted her to the door and watched her drive away. Only when her car disappeared from sight did he return to the house and give Lucian a call. ¡°How is Old Mr. Queen?¡± The moment the call connected, Lucian¡¯s voice rang out with the sound of water flowing in the background Jonathan answered with a grin, ¡°He¡¯s already awake. Dr. Jarvis is amazing.¡± Recalling how awkward Lucian and Roxanne behaved earlier, he asked curiously, ¡°Lucian, are you acquainted with Dr. Jarvis prior to this? I just feel as if something is amiss between both of you. Furthermore, I¡¯ve never seen you behave that way with another woman before.¡± Even though he made things difficult for her, he stood up for her at the same time. In the beginning, Jonathan really thought that Lucian didn¡¯t take Roxanne seriously. However, after watching Lucian help her and even insisting that Frieda apologize to her, he had no idea what to think. His hunch told him that both of them knew each other, but it was impossible for him to guess what sort of rtionship they had. Lucian¡¯s concern for Alfred was the only reason why he took Jonathan¡¯s call. Hence, the question caused his expression to darken. ¡°I don¡¯t know her. If I did, I would already have gotten her to treat Old Mr. Queen.¡± Before Jonathan could reply, Lucian hung up, triggering the former¡¯s curiosity, Somehow, Lucian¡¯s tone just now was really awkward. Do they really not know one another? By the time Roxanne reached home, it was alreadyte at night. Madilyn was ying Lego with the boys in the living room. The moment the three of them saw Roxanne, they dropped the Lego in their hands and weed her home together. ¡°Mommy!¡± The two boys threw themselves into her arms and asked in a concerned tone, ¡°Why did you Both of them yawned with their eyes about to close. Roxanne tousled their hair. ¡°I¡¯m sorry for letting all of you wait that long.¡± Raising her gaze, she wanted to thank Madilyn. Sensing what she was about to say, Madilyn waved her hands. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about it. Both of them are my godsons after all. As for you, have you had your dinner yet? It¡¯s already sote!¡± Roxanne shook her head. ¡°I didn¡¯t manage to eat, as I was caught up with work.¡± Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. She had lost track of time while treating Alfred and discussing the supply of medicine with Jonathan. However, now that Roxanne had reminded her of it, she began to feel her stomach growling. Madilyn gave her an annoyed look. ¡°I knew this would happen whenever you¡¯re busy. Therefore, I set aside a portion of dinner. You should quickly have some.¡± The boys, too, urged her to eat as they herded her to the dining table. Warmed by their gesture, Roxanne took a few bites while Madilyn and the kids stayed by her side. When she saw that Roxanne was almost done with her food, Madilyn inquired, ¡°Considering how Roxanne nodded with a smile. ¡°It is. Nheless, I¡¯m confident of curing him still.¡± On top of that, I¡¯ll also be able to solve the supply issue at the research institute. With that thought in mind, Roxanne¡¯s mood improved dramatically. Madilyn, too, had just as much faith. ¡°Since you¡¯re confident in doing so, I trust that you¡¯ll definitely be able to cure him!¡± Chapter 44 Chapter 44 After some idle chatter, Madilyn took her leave as it was alreadyte. In the meantime, the boys followed Roxanne around. After tidying up the room for a bit, she finally had time for them. ¡°Did you enjoy yourselves at kindergarten today? Did you get into fights with your friends?¡± After recalling the events of the day, the boys responded with a forceful nod. ¡°We had a good time. When school was over, they even gave us a lot of snacks!¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but smile. ¡°It seems both of you are really popr.¡± Benny nodded earnestly before ncing in Archie¡¯s direction. ¡°In fact, there¡¯s a girl today who dered that she wants to marry Archie when she grows up!¡± ¡°Really?¡± Roxanne gave her son an amused look. Briefly stunned, Archie threw his brother a nce before blushing all the way to his ears. ¡°Yes, but I didn¡¯t agree to it.¡± Pinching his ear, Benny made a face at Archie. When she saw how the boys were fooling around, Roxanne beamed with satisfaction. Even though it was alreadyte, the boys clung to her and rted to her everything that happened in kindergarten. Most of the time, Benny would have a whole lot to say while Archie would summarize his words. As for Roxanne, she would listen intently and let out the asionalugh when she saw how cute they were. When she finally checked the time, it was almost ten. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. ¡°Time for bed. You still have school tomorrow,¡± she coaxed the children, putting on a serious expression Complying obediently, both of them went upstairs to sleep. The next morning, Roxanne dropped them off at the kindergarten before heading to the research institute Once the morning meeting was over, she came out of the conference room together with Colby. ¡°How did it go yesterday? Did you manage to treat Old Mr. Queen¡¯s sickness?¡± Colby inquired. Roxanne nodded slightly. Although his condition appears to be serious andplex treatment is needed, it¡¯s still possible to cure him but it will take quite a bit of time. As I¡¯ll be going over often the next few days, you¡¯ll have to hold the fort around here for the time being.¡± Filled with admiration, Colby teased, ¡°I¡¯m amazed you¡¯re able to treat a sickness that has baffled all the famous doctors sought out by the Queen family. Dr. Jarvis, your words make us feel ashamed of ourselves!¡± Even though he was joking, there was truth to his words. After all, he was one of the doctors who was also stumped by Alfred¡¯s condition. Roxanne downyed the matter with a smile. ¡°It just happens to fall into my area of specialty.¡± When he saw the nonchnt look on her face, Colby¡¯s heart throbbed. ¡°By the way, even though Old Mr. Queen hasn¡¯t fully recovered, the Queen family has agreed to supply us with the medicine, and we¡¯ll likely be able to sign the contract today. In fact, the first batch is provided free of charge. This not only solves our urgent shortage, but we will also not have to worry about supply anymore.¡± Roxanne¡¯s face lit up at the thought of having secured the supply of medicine. Colby cocked his brow in surprise. ¡°Really? The Queen family are actually willing to sign a contract with us even though Old Mr. Queen has just regained consciousness?¡± Roxanne nodded with a grin. Upon her confirmation, Colby praised, ¡°It¡¯s clear that they have been blown away by your medical skills. You truly are amazing.¡± Roxanne chuckled casually. ¡°I¡¯m just doing what I can. Hopefully, there will not be any untoward developments when ites to Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition.¡± ¡°With you running the show, I¡¯m sure everything will be fine,¡± Colby answered with conviction. Chapter 45 Chapter 45 Cognizant that Madilyn had helped her pick up the boys two days in a row, Roxanne nned to pick them up herself that day. Thus, she headed to the Queen residence in the afternoon after finishing her work in the morning. After she arrived, she examined Alfred to make sure there weren¡¯t anyplications before continuing his treatment by inserting needles. While waiting for the time to remove the needles, Jonathan approached with a document in hand. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, here¡¯s the contract I¡¯ve prepared. If you¡¯re fine with the terms, you can just sign on it.¡± Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Roxanne wasn¡¯t surprised, as that was what they discussed the night before. After going through the document in detail, she ced her signature at the bottom. With the contract signed, Jonathan¡¯s attitude toward her grew warmer. ¡°From now on, we have be partners. Nevertheless, we¡¯ll still need your help with regards to Grandpa¡¯s condition.¡± Roxanne nodded in acknowledgment. ¡°That¡¯s the least I can do.¡± After a brief chat, Roxanne looked at the time and extracted the needles from Alfred¡¯s body. Even though she had tried her best to rush, school had already ended for the boys by the time she finished packing. Taking her leave quickly, Roxanne drove to pick them up. Along the way, she wondered if they would be worried since she didn¡¯t inform them that she would bete. By the time she arrived, all the students were gone, leaving behind an empty kindergarten. Upon scanning the surroundings, Roxanne saw the two boys sitting on a small bench in the field, but there was no sign of any teachers at all. As a result, she hurried up to them anxiously. ¡°Mommy!¡± the boys ran in her direction the instant they saw her, Hugging them, she knelt down to stroke their faces. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I was busy and lost track of time.¡± Archie gave her an understanding shake of his head. ¡°It¡¯s all right. We¡¯re safe in the kindergarten. Plus, there¡¯s a teacher here with us. There¡¯s no need for you to be worried.¡± Benny, too, gave a corresponding nod. Roxanne gave them a confused look. ¡°A teacher?¡± Archie pointed at the corner of the field. Trailing the trajectory of his finger, Roxanne saw a teacher by the slide. With a warm smile on her face, she was kneeling on the ground while speaking to a little girl. Looking adorable in her kindergarten uniform, the girl had her hands tensely ced on her knees while sitting in an upright position. At the same time, she was staring intently in their direction. The moment she recognized the girl, Roxanne was stunned. If memory serves me right, that¡¯s clearly Lucian¡¯s daughter. Is she studying here too? Initially, Este was just watching Archie and Benny. However, the moment she saw Roxanne, her eyes lit up. Realizing that Roxanne was looking at her, her lips curled up in delight as she attempted to greet the former. But the very next second, Roxanne looked away, causing Este¡¯s smile to fade as she gave them a dejected stare. She obviously recognizes me but chooses to ignore me. ¡°Mommy, what¡¯s wrong? Are you tired from work?¡± Archie shook Roxanne¡¯s hand when he noticed her looking distracted. Regaining her senses, Roxanne replied with a grin, ¡°Not at all.¡± With that, Benny happily grabbed her hands and eximed, ¡°In that case, let¡¯s go home!¡± Chapter 46 Chapter 46 Roxanne gave him a nomittal nod, before leading the boys over to greet the teacher. Just before she left, her gaze subconsciously fell upon Este again. When she saw that the three of them were about to go, Este stood up anxiously while staring intently at them. Worried that she would fall, the teacher quickly held onto her. After a brief hesitation, Roxanne couldn¡¯t help inquiring out of concern. ¡°Is she¡± Well aware of what she was about to ask, the boys answered right away, ¡°Mommy, she¡¯s a student here too. In fact, she¡¯s in the same ss as we are. Since her daddy and mommy have yet to pick her up, she was waiting together with us.¡± Nodding in acknowledgment, Roxanne¡¯s heart melted slightly at the sight of Este. Nevertheless, she didn¡¯t intend to stay, for it will either be Lucian or Aubree who would be picking Este up soon, neither of whom she had any intention of seeing again. However, Este was visibly reluctant to see her go. Not wanting to disappoint her, Roxanne stroked Este¡¯s head with a smile. ¡°Your parents will be here soon. As I need to go first, you must obey the teacher and wait together with her, all right?¡± Just as Roxanne was about to leave, Este grabbed her sleeve tightly. Halted by Este¡¯s reaction, Roxanne lowered her gaze and saw the former shaking her head with slightly reddened eyes. The look on Este¡¯s face caused Roxanne to feel so heavy-hearted that she couldn¡¯t bring herself to move. When the teacher saw Este refusing to let Roxanne leave, she sighed in resignation before approaching thetter to exin, ¡°Este has recently been very close to Archie and Benny. Due to her autistic character, very few students are willing to y with her. But the very first day the brothers came to ss, they ended up protecting her. That¡¯s why she has grown to rely on both of them. And now, she¡¯s probably scared that they¡¯re leaving.¡± After hearing about Este¡¯s situation, Roxanne could feel the difort within her intensify. Not only is the little girl mute, but she¡¯s also autistic. No wonder the teacher let the boys wait by the side. Unfortunately, the thought of running into Lucian and Aubree caused Roxanne to feel hesitant about staying behind. Despite the teacher¡¯s coaxing, Este refused to let Roxanne go no matter what. After a while, the teacher appealed, ¡°Ms. Jarvis, are you rushing for time? If not, shall we chat a little? Ever since Archie and Benny came to school, I have yet to speak to you about their progress.¡± It was clear to Roxanne that the teacher was just getting her to wait with Este under the pretext of discussing the boys¡¯ performance in school. At the same time, Este, too, threw her a hopeful gaze. Faced with the look in Este¡¯s eyes. Roxanne, who was about to decline, couldn¡¯t bring herself to say it. In the end, she swallowed her words and nodded at the teacher. In response, Este¡¯s eyes glistened as she discreetly leaned into Roxanne while holding the From afar, it looked as if she was leaning in Roxanne¡¯s arms. Sensing the slight movement, Roxanne didn¡¯t stop her nor show her any attention. Instead, she discussed the boys¡¯ affairs with the teacher as if she didn¡¯t realize anything.Exclusive ? material by N?(/v)elDrama.Org. Chapter 47 Chapter 47 ¡°I remember that you came back from overseas together with Archie and Benny. Considering that they grew up overseas, I¡¯m surprised at how well they speak Chanaean.¡± Since the chat was just an excuse, the teacher talked about trivial matters, as Archie and Benny¡¯s performances in ss were so impressive that there was nothing toin about. Roxanne nodded with a smile. ¡°That¡¯s because there were still many Chanaeans around to converse with them.¡± Meanwhile, the boys didn¡¯t say a word and merely smiled obediently. They would simply nod at whatever their mother said. Seeing how well-behaved they were, the teacher couldn¡¯t help but gush in admiration. ¡°Other than Chanaean and Ustranasion, they seem to be able to speak Ferropenian too, don¡¯t they?¡± ¡°Mmm-hmm, they probably picked it up from my colleagues overseas.¡± Roxanne caressed the boys¡¯ hair. Impressed, the teacher eximed, ¡°I must say, they are exceptionally smart to not only have mastered threenguages at such a young age but also the elementary school curriculum too. Coupled with their exquisite features, you really do have exceptional children!¡± Roxanne beamed with pride at the praise. ¡°You tter us. They¡¯re just ordinary children who enjoy learning.¡± While they were chatting, Roxanne continued to be vignt about whether someone wasing to pick Este up. Upon checking the time, she realized that a long while had passed. Filled with sudden concern, she asked, ¡°By the way, when will the girl¡¯s parents arrive?¡± The teacher looked at her watch and answered, ¡°Probably soon.¡± After nodding in response, Roxanne lowered her gaze at Este. Thetter was still standing beside her while maintaining her grip on Roxanne¡¯s sleeve as if she¡¯. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. was fearful of Roxanne leaving. Resigning herself to the fact that she couldn¡¯t leave, Roxanne turned to the boys. ¡°Can you boys go to the car first and wait for me there?¡± Nodding obediently, both of them walked to the kindergarten¡¯s entrance. Once she saw them get into the car, Roxanne recovered her gaze. It was prudent to keep the boys out of the way since she couldn¡¯t avoid meeting those two. At the kindergarten entrance, Archie and Benny got into the car one after another before looking out the window. ¡°Why do you think Mommy asked us toe out here?¡± Benny wondered while holding his chin. Archie put their schoolbags away before joining his brother at the window. ¡°Because Daddy is about to arrive.¡± For some strange reason, Mommy doesn¡¯t want us to meet Daddy. However, she isn¡¯t aware that we have discovered Daddy¡¯s true identity and even know what he looks like. As the boys continued to stare outside, a Rolls-Royce dramatically pulled up by the street. A towering man in a long-sleeved shirt and pants alighted from it. Ever since the car appeared, Benny monitored it closely. When the man came out of the car, he locked his gaze on the man and gave Archie a nudge. ¡°Archie, look. Can that be Daddy?¡± After turning his head to nce at the man, Archie nodded with conviction. Without a doubt, that¡¯s the man I saw on the inte! W Upon receiving Archie¡¯s confirmation, Benny couldn¡¯t help but praise aloud, ¡°Daddy looks a lot more dashing in real lifepared to the picture.¡± Just as he spoke, Archie shot him a re. ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you that you¡¯re not allowed to like him?¡± With a sullen expression, Archie red at the man outside as if he was their mortal enemy. This is the man who abandoned Mommy and us! man who After being admonished by his brother, Benny zipped his mouth sheepishly. Chapter 48 Chapter 48 Meanwhile. Lucian didn¡¯t notice the boys in the car as he strode into the kindergarten, well aware that he waste. The moment he stepped in, he saw two figures by the slide together with Este, who had squeezed herself into Roxanne¡¯s arms by then. ¡°Mr. Farwell, you¡¯re here!¡± the teacher greeted respectfully when she saw Lucian. Lucian nodded in acknowledgment as he walked up to them. After throwing his daughter a nce, he stared coldly at Roxanne. ¡°Why are you here?¡± Sensing his hostility, Roxanne knitted her brows in confusion. The teacher then looked at them in surprise, ¡°Do you know each other?¡± Just a while ago, she had assumed that Roxanne didn¡¯t know Este. However, considering how dependent Este was on Roxanne, she figured that it wasn¡¯t such a surprise at all. After nodding at the teacher without answering the question, Roxanne shifted her attention toward Lucian. ¡°I came here to pick my boys up. It was your daughter who refused to let go of my clothes, forcing me to stay here with her.¡± The moment he heard the words ¡°your daughter¡± roll off her tongue, Lucian¡¯s expression darkened. How can she say such a thing in front of her own daughter? What a heartless woman! Unaware of what she had said wrong, Roxanne saw a sudden change in Lucian¡¯s expression as he turned his attention to Este. ¡°Come here.¡± Lucian reached out his hand grimly. After ncing at Lucian¡¯s outstretched hand, Este raised her gaze and gave Roxanne a reluctant and pitiful look. Just when I finally got the chance to be with her, why does Daddy have to be so fierce? As the seconds ticked by, Lucian¡¯s expression turned darker when Este refused to let go of Roxanne. In the end, Roxanne lowered her gaze and tousled Este¡¯s hair before reassuring her, ¡°Your daddy is here to pick you up, and I have to go too. So, you should go home with him now.¡± After that, Roxanne stood back up, nning to leave the instant Este released her grip. In spite of that, Este adamantly refused regardless of how gloomy Lucian looked. Instead, she continued to give Roxanne a pleading look. For some inexplicable reason, she loved staying by Roxanne¡¯s side, to the extent of wanting to follow thetter home. As the tension in the air began to build, the teacher felt the need to defuse the situation. Before she could, she saw Lucian making his move all of a sudden. Walking up to Este, Lucian asserted in an authoritative voice, ¡°Este Farwell, let go ande home with me.¡± Shaken by his tone, the little girl ended up tightening her grip on Roxanne and leaning closer to her by reflex. As she was already standing by the edge of the slide, she lost her bnce while shifting her legs without looking With her heart skipping a beat, Roxanne managed to stop Este from falling by reaching out to Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. catch her. Subsequently, Este refused to let Roxanne go, leaving thetter with no choice but to hug her in case she fell again. Having calmed her down, Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but frown. ¡°Lucian, if you¡¯re upset with me, you should just vent your frustrations at me instead of the child.¡± Even though Lucian had seen the same event unfold, he didn¡¯t manage to get to Este in time. Therefore, he retorted upon hearing Roxanne¡¯sments, ¡°How is the way I treat my daughter any of your business? Don¡¯t think that just because she likes you, it gives you the right to get involved.¡± The tension between them felt as if it could explode at any moment. In response to his mocking tone, Roxanne¡¯s expression darkened as an inexplicable sense of anger swelled within her. Chapter 49 Chapter 49 After Roxanne¡¯s anger receded, she realized how funny the situation was. Indeed, I don¡¯t have any rights. In his eyes, I never had any. She dropped her gaze to the floor, concealing the self-deprecation in them. Without saying anything. she forced herself to remove Este¡¯s grip from her sleeve. Este¡¯s little fingers wanted to reach for her again, but Roxanne grabbed it mid-air. ¡°Archie and Benny are still waiting for me in the car. I have to go to them. Be a good girl and go with your dad.¡± Roxanne ruffled Este¡¯s head gently and released thetter¡¯s hand. With a hurried farewell to the teacher, Roxanne turned on her heels and rushed out the front door without another nce back. Back in the car, Archie and Benny were sitting upright. When they saw Roxanne getting in the car, they asked innocently, ¡°Mommy, what¡¯s wrong?¡± Roxanne sucked in a deep breath before stering a forced smile. ¡°Nothing. Let¡¯s go home.¡± Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. She started up the car and pulled away from the kindergarten. Meanwhile, Lucian was still rooted in ce. Shooting a sharp gaze at the teacher, he asked, ¡°Are her sons attending here too?¡± The teacher didn¡¯t know what went on between the two parents but could sense the tensioning off of Lucian. Feeling the pressure, the teacher answered hesitantly, ¡°Yeah. Ms. Jarvis¡¯ twins attend our kindergarten-¡± Before the teacher could finish, he interrupted coldly, ¡°When did they start?¡± ¡°Just¡­ a few days ago,¡± the teacher replied carefully. ¡°Inform the head of the kindergarten to remove the boys from the list. If you don¡¯t do as I ask, Farwell Group won¡¯t be investing in this kindergarten anymore.¡± Lucian¡¯s expression turned hostile. Not allowing the teacher the time to digest his words, he carried Este into his arms and strode to the front door. Upon arriving at the parking lot, Lucian noticed the car parked beside his was already gone. Withdrawing his gaze, he carried Este into the car without a pause in his step. The minute he got into the car, Este struggled violently in his arms. Lucian loosened his grip on her, letting her crawl to the other side of the seat. Este took out her notebook angrily and scribbled something on it with force. A whileter, her hand stopped. Este was furious this time as she turned her notebook around and sat there ring at Lucian instead of crawling over to him to yank on his sleeve for his attention. Lucian sighed silently and turned his head over to peer at Este with a frown. The entire length of the paper only had one sentence scribbled across it: Why are you not letting Archie and Bennye to kindergarten? Seeing Lucian finally turn his attention to her, Este angrily shoved the notebook closer to his face. The crease between Lucian¡¯s brows deepened at her actions. He withdrew his gaze and said, ¡°No particr reason. I did it because I could and wanted to. That¡¯s the answer I can give if you insist on one.¡± Upon finishing his sentence, he heard movementing from the seat beside him. He turned and saw Este angrily throw her notebook to the side and clung to the door. She even leaned her head out of the window. Despite not saying anything, her whole body was exuding an ¡°I- don¡¯t-want-to-look-at-you¡± vibe. Lucian arched his brow at her bodynguage. ¡°You getting mad isn¡¯t going to change my mind.¡± Este furiously snapped her head to him and shot him a death re. Daddy is the worst! I hate Daddy the most! I like the beautiful Ms. Jarvis and Archie and Benny. Why did Daddy have to fight with her and even forbade Archie and Benny to attend kindergarten? Este was crestfallen at the thought of never being able to see Archie and Benny at the kindergarten anymore. Daddy is too unreasonable! I don¡¯t want to like him anymore! Chapter 50 Chapter 50 Este sulked the whole way back. She ignored Lucian who was trailing after her and dashed up the stairs to her room without one nce back at him. After mming the door, she even locked the door angrily. Catalina was standing at the door when the father and daughter arrived, so she noticed Este¡¯s angry mood. When she shifted her gaze to the expressionless Lucian walking behind Este, she knew they were once again at outs with each other. ¡°Mr. Farwell, what is Ms. Este angry about?¡± Hearing the loud mming from the door upstairs, Catalina turned to Lucian with a concerned look. Recalling the reason Este got mad at him, Lucian answered impassively, ¡°Nothing. She¡¯s just throwing a tantrum. Look after her.¡± Catalina nodded habitually, ¡°Yes, sir.¡± I wonder why Ms. Este would lose her temper with Mr. Farwell when she was rarely expressive. Moreover, Mr. Farwell isn¡¯t good at coaxing others. All in all, we need ady of the house. Este was only mad at Lucian, so she obediently opened her door when Catalina knocked on it. ¡°Ms. Este,e and have something to eat.¡± Catalina carried a tray of Este¡¯s favorite food into her room. s, Este didn¡¯t have an appetite. After taking two bites of the food, she pushed the te away and sat gloomily by the desk. Catalina¡¯s heart ached for the little girl. However, she knew this was something between father and daughter, so she wasn¡¯t in any position to give any advice. She took the food back to the kitchen and came back to help Este shower after a few hourster. After cleaning up the bathroom, Catalina saw Este lying on her stomach on her bed, staring at the the keyboard so seriously. However, Catalina was used to Este tapping away on the keyboard, so she silently left the room after cleaning up without asking anything. Meanwhile, Roxanne was stuck in a traffic jam on her way back with Archie and Benny. Archie and Benny silently sat in the back seat, asionally exchanging nces with each other, all the while studying their mom¡¯s expression through the rearview mirror. They didn¡¯t know what happened at the kindergarten earlier. Even though Roxanne didn¡¯t tell them anything, they noticed that she was in a bad mood. ¡°Mommy, we made some cards at the kindergarten today! The teacher had us make it for the people we love, so Archie and I made one for you!¡± Benny secretly cast a nce at Archie, hinting at him to cheer their mother up. Archie nodded with understanding. ¡°Mommy, do you want to know what we wrote?¡± Roxanne knew they were trying to lift her mood, so she nodded with a smile. ¡°Sure. What did you guys write?¡± Sounds of someone shuffling through the bag came from the back, then Benny¡¯s emotional voice Property ? N?velDrama.Org. read loudly, ¡°The person I love the most is Mommy! My mommy is an amazing doctor! Even though she¡¯s always busy with work, my brother and I know she loves us the most! We think Mommy is a great person for saving lives every day. Sometimes, we would feel bad for her and wish she won¡¯t get too busy and tire herself out. I hope Mommy will stay beautiful forever!¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t keep her giggle in. ¡°It¡¯s so long. It was no wonder your teacher would tell me you guys excelled in Chanaean. What about you, Archie?¡± Archie sat up straight and began reading aloud, ¡°My mommy is an amazing doctor. Saving lives is a difficult job, and so is taking care of my brother and me. I want to be like her when I grow up. I wish I can grow up quickly and earn money for my family, so Mommy doesn¡¯t have to be so tired all the time.¡± Roxanne¡¯s heart melted into a puddle at their heartfelt confessions. She had thrown out everything that happened at the kindergarten earlier out of her mind. ¡°Thank you, boys.¡± The kids exchanged nces and released a relieved breath simultaneously when they noticed her mood had brightened. Chapter 51 Chapter 51 The next day was a weekend, so the kids didn¡¯t have to go to kindergarten. Roxanne nned to take the boys to the research institute with her. Right after she packed everything and was about to head out the door, she heard the doorbell ring. Thinking it was a visit from Madilyn, Roxanne got up and went to get the door. Her brows furrowed with confusion when she saw the person standing at the door. ¡°Essie? What are you doing here?¡± Roxanne instinctively swept her gaze at the surrounding, thinking Lucian would be standing and waiting somewhere within sight. Yet, shockingly, she didn¡¯t see anyone else but Este outside her door. Roxanne decided to focus her attention back on Este. She bent down to the little girl¡¯s eye level and asked, ¡°Este, tell me how you got here? Did your daddy send you?¡± Judging from Lucian¡¯s attitude at the kindergarten yesterday, I highly doubt he¡¯ll let Essie meet me, but there¡¯s no other possibility for now. Este was wearing a white dress and carried a small backpack on her back. It was the one she brought to kindergarten the day before. Hearing Roxanne¡¯s question, Este reached for the notebook in her backpack, flipped it open, then started writing something. She wrote: I came here myself. Roxanne was stunned. ¡°Yourself? How did you find your way here?¡± Este scribbled across the page: I took a cab here. Roxanne was still suspicious, but after checking her surroundings a few times, she finally believed Este¡¯s words. So Lucian¡¯s daughter took the cab in the early morning all by herself to my house. This situation is giving me a headache. She suppressed the mix of feelings in her heart and asked tenderly, ¡°Is there a reason you¡¯re looking for me?¡± The girl answered in writing: I wanted to be friends with Archie and Benny, so I came to y with them. Is that okay? Este raised her notebook and gazed at Roxanne with anticipation. Just for this reason? Roxanne didn¡¯t know how to answer her at that moment. Yesterday, the boys¡¯ teacher did tell me Este liked following the boys around. However, I never thought she¡¯ll be bold enough to take a cab to my house alone just so she can y with them. Moreover, she can¡¯t speak. If she met some bad people on the way here¡­ Roxanne didn¡¯t dare to think about what would happen. ¡°Mommy?¡± Archie and Benny had been waiting inside for a while and didn¡¯t see Roxannee back in, so they came out to have a look. When they saw the little girl at their front door, they had the same reaction as Roxanne. ¡°What ¡­ are you doing here?¡± Este was about to scribble in her notebook when Roxanne exined on her behalf, ¡°Essie just wanted to y with you guys.¡± Archie looked around at Roxanne¡¯s exnation, thinking he would see his dad, but there wasn¡¯t an adult man anywhere. ¡°How did she get here?¡± Archie flitted his gaze to Roxanne. Roxanne replied resignedly, ¡°She took a cab here alone.¡± Even I have a hard time believing the words that just came out of my mouth. However, the two boys epted the truth readily. Benny looked at Este with a puzzled look. ¡°You came here yourself? Did you run away from home again?¡± If I remember it correctly, the first time we met Essie was when she ran away from home. On the contrary, Este didn¡¯t think her behavior was strange and nodded. Seeing her calm demeanor, the boys exchanged a look speechlessly. Why does this daughter that Daddy raised keep running away from home? More importantly, why is she alwaysing to our house? At the same time, Lucian was working in the Farwell Group CEO¡¯s office when suddenly his private phone started ringing. The second the call connected, the butler¡¯s voice came through the phone urgently. ¡°Mr. Farwell, Ms. Este is missing again.¡±Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 52 Chapter 52 Lucian¡¯s hands paused. ¡°I¡¯ming back now.¡± Hanging up the phone, he drove back to the Farwell residence. ¡°What happened? There¡¯s so many of you watching her, so how can she go missing?¡± Lucian questioned once he stepped foot in the mansion. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. In the living room, all the household staff stood nervously. Lucian¡¯s anger was burning so brightly that they didn¡¯t dare to lift their heads. The butler answered cautiously, ¡°We¡¯re not sure. Ms. Este had gone back to her room after having breakfast this morning. When Catalina went upstairs a few hourster, she couldn¡¯t find Ms. Este anywhere.¡± Lucian¡¯s brows furrowed with displeasure. ¡°What about the surveince cameras?¡± The butler responded with a defeated look on his face, ¡°Mr. Farwell, the surveince cameras¡­ we¡¯re not sure when they turned off. Coincidentally, there¡¯s no recording of this morning.¡± Hearing that, Lucian¡¯s expression had darkened tremendously. The living room fell into dead silence. The staff all bowed their heads with dread, hunching their shoulders, making themselves as small as possible. They even hoped they could hide within the crack of the tiles. Who could¡¯ve thought we would lose Ms. Este twice in such a short period. Furthermore, she slipped away right under our noses. If anything happens to Ms. Este, Mr. Farwell will fire us. Lucian looked up and saw the bodyguards he sent to protect Este were among the staff. The sight just fueled his rage. ¡°What are you guys standing there for? Get moving and search for her! If you can¡¯t find her, then all of you are fired.¡± The bodyguards immediately obliged and strode out of the mansion urgently without a backward nce. Distress filled Roxanne as she looked at the little girl in front of her. It¡¯s gettingte. I should be taking the boys to the research institute, but Este¡¯s sudden appearance has messed up my n. Furthermore, she took a cab here by herself. I can¡¯t exactly send her back on her own. After a short silence, Roxanne huffed out a resigned sigh as she stood to let Este into the house. ¡°Come on in.¡± Este¡¯s eyes sparkled as she nodded fervently and followed Roxanne into the mansion. ¡°Have you had breakfast?¡± Roxanne asked. Este sat on the couch and nodded obediently. Roxanne and the boys took a seat beside Este. After a brief hesitation, Roxanne asked. ¡°Can you tell me if you¡¯re really here to y with Archie and Benny? Or are you running away from home like Este tilted her head to the side and scribbled on the notebook. Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s faces were staid. ¡°Do you know someone can kidnap you if you meet a bad person when you take the cab? Didn¡¯t our teacher teach us not to leave the house alone?¡± By the time they finished speaking, Este had already done writing and showed the notebook to them. She wrote a sentence across the nk page: I want to meet Ms. Jarvis, Archie, and Benny. Roxanne frowned. ¡°You¡­ you ran away from home because of us?¡± Este nodded her head firmly before she started to write in her notebook again. She scribbled: Like. Roxanne was confused this time. Like? Like what? ¡°You like us?¡± Archie guessed. Este nodded again. Roxanne¡¯s heart softened at Este¡¯s admission. This little girl is so sweet. Honestly, I really like her. Even though she is Lucian¡¯s child with another woman, I can¡¯t bring myself to hate such an obedient child after getting to know her for the past few days. However, it¡¯s still too dangerous for her to do what she did. ¡°Thank you for liking us, but it¡¯s wrong for a child to run away from home. Your dad must be worried sick. Is it okay if I inform him?¡± After contemting, Roxanne asked for Este¡¯s opinion softly. Even though I really don¡¯t want to have any contact with Lucian, it¡¯s a fact that his child is with me. As a parent, I knew he must be terribly worried. Este cast her eyes downward, hiding the unwillingness that rose within her. Daddy is a big meanie. The beautiful Ms. Jarvis, Archie, and Benny are all so good to me, but Daddy doesn¡¯t let me talk to them. What am I going to do? Ms. Jarvis¡¯ voice is so gentle. A few secondster, Este finally nodded obediently. Chapter 53 Chapter 53 Roxanne looked up Lucian¡¯s number from her contact list. She had saved it only because she didn¡¯t want to miss his call back when Este had wandered off from home. It was now that the woman remembered she had saved his contact name as just ¡°A.¡± After changing it to his actual name, Roxanne dialed the number. Lucian was about to head out and look for Este on his own when his phone rang. Seeing the name on his screen, his eyes narrowed as he answered the call. ¡°It¡¯s me.¡± Roxanne¡¯s voice came from across the line. Lucian scoffed internally at the thought of how she had escaped his previous antics. ¡°What do you want?¡± he asked in the same frigid tone the woman used. Roxanne nced at the little girl beside her. What¡¯s with that tone? I would¡¯ve hung up right away if it weren¡¯t for the child! ¡°Essie came looking for me first thing in the morning. Come and get her if you¡¯re free. Or you can tell me your address, and I¡¯ll take her there.¡± Upon hearing that, Lucian furrowed his brows slightly. ¡°Give me your address.¡± ¡°32, Durwest Garden.¡± The man hung up right after that. Roxanne breathed an internal sigh of relief as she watched her screen turn ck. She turned toward the little girl standing beside her, saying, ¡°Your daddy¡¯sing over to pick you up. Be a good girl and go home with him, okay?¡± Este nodded but secretly began pondering over her next move. She had finally gotten the chance to be with this prettydy and didn¡¯t want to have to leave so soon. But Daddy¡¯s on his way here. What should I do to be able to stay Unfortunately, Archie saw through her intentions immediately and crossed his arms. ¡°Your daddy hates my mommy, so he¡¯s definitely not going to let you stay. I suggest you give up on the idea.¡± Este¡¯s gaze darkened as she heard that. It¡¯s true. Daddy doesn¡¯t like her. He even argues with her in front of me. But I like Ms. Jarvis! The girl had left home early this morning just to see Roxanne. She didn¡¯t know why, but she just liked this woman so much. The two hadn¡¯t spent much time together, but Este adored Roxanne so much morepared to Catalina, her everyday caretaker. That¡¯s right! The child¡¯s eyes lit up again. She had brought gifts for Roxanne and the two boys when she left home this morning. Remembering that, she swiftly jumped off the couch and rummaged through her little backpack. Then, she took out a tiny yet exquisite crystal ball and held it in front of Roxanne with two hands. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. The woman stared at her in puzzlement. Este took another step forward while continuing to hold the gift, her eyes full of anticipation. Roxanne slowly took the crystal ball from her. ¡°Is this¡­ for me?¡± Este nodded and wrote in her notebook: For you. I like you! Roxanne couldn¡¯t help butugh. ¡°Thank you, Essie. I like you a lot too,¡± she responded, caressing the girl¡¯s head. Archie and Benny hadn¡¯t expected the little girl to bring gifts, and they, too, jumped off the couch. ¡°You gave Mommy a gift? What about us? Do we get any too?¡± Este nodded with a smile and dug around in her backpack again. Soon, she took out two racecar figurines and trotted over to the boys. Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s eyes twinkled instantly. They had always enjoyed ying with these since they were young, and Roxanne would often buy such toys for them. In fact, they had had their eyes on these two particr car models for a while now, but they hadn¡¯t expensive. And yet, Este had bought them. The boys could easily confirm that these figurines were genuine. Chapter 54 Chapter 54 Given how well-raised the boys were, they shook their heads despite liking the toys, knowing how expensive these things were. ¡°We can¡¯t ept these. They¡¯re too expensive.¡± Este tilted her head in confusion before cing the toys next to them and scribbling on her notebook again: For you. Thank. Help. Benny peered at her writing in bewilderment. She can¡¯t write aplete sentence. What is she trying to say? Archie was initially perplexed as well, but realization quickly dawned on him. ¡°Are you trying to say you¡¯re thanking us for our help that day?¡± Nodding fervently, Este put the book down and held the car figurines in front of them once more. Roxanne thought back to what her sons¡¯ kindergarten teacher had told her about Archie and Benny having protected Este. I remember the teacher mentioning it. What on earth could¡¯ve happened between mere children, though? But judging from Essie¡¯s behavior, whatever Archie and Benny did for her seems like a really big deal to her. ¡°What happened that day?¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but ask. ¡°Essie got hurt after another student pushed her,¡± exined Archie. ¡°Benny and I got that student to apologize to Essie, and then we took Essie to the school nurse.¡± Roxanne nodded in enlightenment. ¡°Can we ept these gifts, Mommy?¡± Archie felt sorry to see the little girl continue to hold the toys in her hand. Roxanne chuckled. ¡°Okay. Give her something of yours in return.¡± The boys finally took the toy cars from Este, not forgetting to express their gratitude. ¡°Thanks, Essie! Wait for us here, okay? We¡¯ll get you some gifts too!¡± Then, they scurried upstairs and began searching their room for something they could give the little girl in return. Now, only Roxanne and Este remained inside the living room. Seeing how obedient the girl looked. Roxanne couldn¡¯t resist showing her concern. ¡°Does your hand still hurt?¡± Upon hearing that, Este walked toward Roxanne and raised her hand, showing the injury she had received that day. There was a visible bruise on the girl¡¯s pale-colored hand, and that tugged at Roxanne¡¯s heartstrings. The woman felt relieved only after examining the bruise closely and making sure there were no internal injuries. ¡°Did you use any ointment?¡¯ Este stilled for a few seconds. Then, she shook her head innocently after seeing how worried Roxanne looked. That made Roxanne¡¯s heart ache even more. There¡¯s no way Lucian would¡¯ve missed such an obvious bruise, but he didn¡¯t give her any ointment? Then, the woman thought of how Este would run away from home every now and then. Lucian, you¡¯re a terrible excuse for a father! Not aware that she had inadvertently made her father look bad, Este stared at the woman before her eagerly. If I told her I haven¡¯t used any ointment, would she help me? Noticing the child¡¯s gaze, Roxanne returned to her senses and ran her fingers over the bruise. ¡°Wait for me here. I¡¯ll be back with a medical kit,¡± she cooed. Este nodded excitedly, her eyes sparkling. Roxanne¡¯s heart melted at the sight, and she got up to retrieve a medical kit before carefully treating the girl¡¯s bruise. The woman was a doctor, after all, so she would naturally be more careful and gentler. ¡°Does it hurt?¡± she asked, rubbing some ointment on the girl while ncing at her in concern. Shaking her head, Este gazed down at her hand, observing how Roxanne tended to her. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Ms. Jarvis¡¯ hands are so pretty too. And she¡¯s so much gentler than Daddy. I don¡¯t feel any pain at all. I like her even more now! Chapter 55 Chapter 55 After Roxanne was done tending to Este, Archie and Benny returned downstairs while carrying Este¡¯s gifts. They each had a strange-looking stuffed toy in their hands and walked up to the little girl. ¡°We bought these with our pocket money. You can have them.¡± The dolls looked adorable yet hideous at the same time and didn¡¯t seem to suit Este at all. However, this was the girl¡¯s first time receiving gifts from peers her age whom she liked very much. Thus, she joyously epted the stuffed toys and hugged them more tightly than she did her previous doll. After a long while, Este finally put the toys down and scribbled a massive word of thanks on her notebook, showing her writing to Archie and Benny. This was the boys¡¯ first time seeing her beam like that. They used to avoid her because she was a child their father had with another woman. But after they saw how adorable she looked, their hearts skipped a beat as they exchanged nces and scratched their heads sheepishly. She¡¯s such a cute half-sister! I don¡¯t want to hate her anymore. Meanwhile, Roxanne¡¯s heart softened as she saw the three children interacting with each other. ¡°Why don¡¯t you y with Essie for a while?¡± she suggested to her sons while stroking Este¡¯s head. ¡°I have to call the research institute and let them know I¡¯ll only be heading over a bitter. I just applied some ointment on Essie¡¯s hand, so be careful.¡± The boys nodded obediently. Then, Roxanne went upstairs to make the phone call. ¡°Shall we y some Lego?¡± The boys didn¡¯t know what girls enjoyed ying, so they could only invite her to y with their usual toys. Even so, a bright-eyed Este readily nodded in agreement. I was right toe here today. I got to have Ms. Jarvis tend to my wound, and Archie and Benny are now asking me to y with them! Both Archie and Benny¡¯s intelligence far exceeded that of a normal child, so Roxanne would buy them Legos for adults, which could usually be stacked into huge models. Their current project was about halfway done. ¡°If you don¡¯t know how to do this, you can watch us first,¡± Archie said kindly. Este nodded and solemnly watched them connect several Lego bricks. It wasn¡¯t long until she picked up a few pieces and began doing the same. Seeing that, Archie and Benny stopped and prepared to guide her, only to realize that the girl seemed to be catching on quickly, Soon, she began to match their speed ¨C at a high level of uracy too: The boys were dumbfounded momentarily. Their mother had bought them these because they were highly intelligent, but now, Este was doing as well as they were. Is it because we share the same father? Just as astonishment filled them, the doorbell to the mansion suddenly rang. The boys nced at one another as they thought of the same person. ¡°I¡¯ll go get the door. Keep Essiepany,¡± Archie instructed while getting up and heading toward the entrance. He then opened the door to see a tall man dressed in an elegant suit ¨C the man who was his father in name. ¡°Hello,¡± Archie greeted politely, albeit with a hint of detachment. A frosty-looking Lucian had thought it was Roxanne who would open the door for him, and he frowned upon realizing it was a child. He must be Roxanne¡¯s kid. For some reason, the boy seemed to harbor some feelings of enmity toward him. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. ¡°Este¡¯s here with us. Come on in.¡± Archie shot the man a nce before turning around and walking back into the house coolly Chapter 56 Chapter 56 Lucian gathered his thoughts and followed Archie into the mansion. As soon as he entered, he spotted Este sitting on the carpet with her full attention on the Lego bricks before her. There was also a little boy next to her who looked just like the one who had opened the door for him. Twins, huh? N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. With a darkened gaze, Lucian looked away from the boys and scanned the rest of the living room instead. Roxanne was nowhere to be found. Vas ¡°Your daddy¡¯s here,¡± Archie called out to Este coldly after walking back in, his once-friendly demeanor having vanishedpletely. Upon hearing that, Este stopped whatever she was doing and nced up at Lucian who stood not far from her. But right after seeing him, she retracted her gaze and began to write something in her notebook. Lucian and the boys stared at her. Both Archie and Benny were reluctant to see her leave, but now that her father had arrived, there was no reason for them to let her stay. Lucian¡¯s browed knitted. He knew what the little girl was about to tell him. Soon, Este raised her notebook. I don¡¯t want to go home yet. As he had expected. The crease between Lucian¡¯s brows deepened as his voice soon becameced with displeasure. ¡°Este Farwell, you left home without a word. Don¡¯t you think you ought to give me an exnation? This is the second time you¡¯ve run away from home this month. Why on earth did you do it?¡± Este met his eyes stubbornly before looking down to scribble on her notebook again: I like Ms. Jarvis. I like Archie and Benny. I want to be friends with them! A look of mockery shed in Lucian¡¯s eyes as he read that. ¡°You like them, but have you ever asked them if they like you? You came running to their house like this and disrupted their lives. Don¡¯t you know how rude that is?¡± he asked sternly. Este pursed her lips and turned to the two boys carefully. She knew she would bother them bying over early in the morning. But she couldn¡¯t help it. She liked them so much, yet her father wouldn¡¯t let her y with them. We¡¯ve even already exchanged gifts, and they also invited me to y with them. Doesn¡¯t that mean they like me too? Benny¡¯s heart wavered as he saw the pleading look in Este¡¯s eyes. ¡°She¡¯s not bothering us,¡± he chimed in, putting down his Lego. ¡°In fact, we were just ying Lego together until you showed up. It was a lot of fun!¡± Este smiled upon hearing the way Benny stood up for her. Then, she turned back to her father furiously. Lucian appeared conflicted at the boy¡¯s response. However, Archie quickly leaned over and gave his brother a nudge. Benny turned to the other boy in a daze, but he immediately came to a realization upon meeting the Right! We can¡¯t show this guy how much we like Essie! Remembering that, Benny hastily shut his mouth, using only his eyes to express his discontent. Lucian took notice of everything the boys had just done. Still, he didn¡¯t know what they were thinking. Assuming he had frightened them, he fell silent for a moment before softening his expression. They might be another guy¡¯s kids, but they¡¯re still young. Lucian knew he shouldn¡¯t take his annoyance out on the children. ¡°In any case, the fact that Essie showed up at your door early in the morning must¡¯ve caused you some trouble. Thank you for ying with her,¡± he tried his best to state calmly. The boys nodded icily in response. Then, the living room fell into silence. ¡°Where¡¯s your mommy?¡± Lucian asked in frustration a whileter, rubbing his temples. Despite having a daughter, he wasn¡¯t particrly good at interacting with children. Chapter 57 Chapter 57 The boys instantly grew wary at the mention of their mother. ¡°Why are you asking about her?¡± Archie demanded, ring at the man like a puppy that could strike anytime. He didn¡¯t have much strength, but he was still adamant about putting on a vicious front: Noticing the boys¡¯ hostility and caution, Lucian felt curious and amused at the same time but paid no attention to it. ¡°Well, you all watched over Essie twice now, so it¡¯s only natural that I give your mother a word of thanks.¡± Archie sighed internally as he heard that, but his expression remained tense. ¡°There¡¯s no need for that. My mommy¡¯s in the middle of a phone call. She doesn¡¯t need your thanks anyway.¡± Then, he dragged Benny back to the carpet and turned to Este. ¡°Your daddy¡¯s here now, so you should go with him. My mommy will be leaving for work soon. She won¡¯t have time to keep you Este, who was initially still jubnt from how the boys backed her up, slowly returned to her senses after hearing that. Although she didn¡¯t want to leave, she eventually nodded upon learning that Roxanne had to work. Archie remained on high alert ever since Lucian mentioned their mother. I don¡¯t want him to see Mommy. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Seeing the girl agree to go home, he quickly gave Benny a tug before kneeling down to keep all their Lego bricks. Lucian said nothing more, merely watching the three put the toys away. But the more he gazed at them, the weirder it felt. They¡¯re all around the same height. Come to think of it, they¡¯re also ssmates in kindergarten. That means they¡¯re about the same age too. But taking the timeline into consideration, even if that woman were to birth these twins right after having Essie and getting divorced, the boys shouldn¡¯t look too simr to Essie in age. Could it be¡­ that it¡¯s because they¡¯re boys, so they grow faster? But she also put them in the same grade as Essie. Was that a coincidence too? A wave of doubt swept through Lucian. Unable toe up with an answer, he shifted his gaze from the three children and observed his surroundings nonchntly. This was a rented building, but Roxanne had evidently taken the effort to decorate the ce. Then, a neat and cozy setting entered Lucian¡¯s line of sight. As he looked closer, he noticed that there were many areas adorned with photographs. With his focus now on the picture frames, the man walked over and nced at them carefully. After a while, he frowned slightly. Every picture contained only Roxanne and the two boys. Despite the three of them smiling warmly, Lucian felt something was amiss. There¡¯s no sign of the boys¡¯ father in any of these pictures. Or was he the one who took all these pictures? But that can¡¯t be. How could he not be in a single photo? Just as Lucian fell into thought, a flurry of rapid footsteps came from the stairs. That jolted the man back to reality, and he put the picture frame down before walking back to the carpet. A panic-stricken Roxanne quickly made her way down the stairs, her expression nothing but frantic. Chapter 58 Chapter 58 Roxanne had wanted to call the research institute just to mention that she would be heading there a littleter today. Yet, the one who answered the phone was Colby, who proceeded to consult her on a project they were rushing the past two days. He had sought her help on some group data before she could even say anything As Roxanne delved into a long discussion with him, she eventually lost track of time. The woman only remembered to end the call after hearing Lucian¡¯s voiceing from downstairs. That was when she quickly drew a conclusion, hung up, and hurried down the stairs. She had nearly forgotten that Lucian was showing up soon and that her two sons were still keeping Estepany downstairs. If Lucian were to see her boys¡­ She instantly grew flustered at the thought. s, by the time she arrived downstairs to prevent both sides from meeting each other, it was already toote. As soon as she turned at the corner of the stairs, she saw the man standing next to the carpet, and the three children were almost done keeping their toys by now. Lucian turned around coldly after seemingly having heard here down. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. Roxanne¡¯s expression stiffened as their eyes met, but she squeezed her palms in an attempt to calm down before greeting the man casually, ¡°You¡¯re here.¡± Lucian nodded chillingly but kept his gaze on her. No one could tell what he was thinking deep down. Thinking that he had already figured out who the two boys were, Roxanne couldn¡¯t hide her guilt. ¡°So¡­ are you going to take Essie home now, or¡­¡± She was terrified that Lucian might want to sit down and talk after finding out the boys¡¯ origins. To her luck, the man merely thought she was hinting him to leave. ¡°We¡¯ll be leaving now. Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t stay here much longer,¡± he replied cially. Then, he turned to look at Este, who was still slowly keeping the Lego bricks. ¡°Are you done packing up? It¡¯s time to go.¡± Este had deliberately tried to keep her movements slow since she didn¡¯t want to leave, but Archie and Benny were so quick that the area was now almost spotless. Upon hearing her father¡¯s prompting, the little girl stood up reluctantly and gazed at Roxanne with tears in her eyes. Povonne¡¯s chest tightened at the sight, but with Lucian here and whatever happened vesterdav. no words offort coulde out of her mouth. ¡°Thank Ms. Jarvis, then we¡¯ll go home,¡± Lucian instructed frigidly. Este¡¯s expression softened more as she heard that, and she stared at Roxanne expectantly, hoping that the woman would invite her to drop by again next time. Yet, after all that waiting, she received not a single word of response. The girl looked down dejectedly. ¡°Ms. Jarvis has to go to work. We shouldn¡¯t bother her anymore,¡± Lucian urged. Este finally picked up her notebook and began to write in it again. It seemed to take her a long time just to write ¡°Thank you.¡± Yet, when she was done scribbling, she raised her notebook at Lucian instead. Daddy, can Ie to see Ms. Jarvis again next time? I want to be friends with Archie and Benny. Everyone saw what she had written. Roxanne and her two boys felt sorry for her, but they dared not say anything due to Lucian¡¯s sullen expression. Noticing their reactions and seeing how clingy his daughter was with them, Lucian gritted his teeth. ¡°No.¡± Este¡¯s face fell the moment he said that. With her eyes reddening, she pursed her lips and began to cry silently. Chapter 59 Chapter 59 Given that it was Catalina who always tended to Este, Lucian didn¡¯t have much experience dealing with children and thought his daughter was throwing a fit. A look of panic shed in the man¡¯s eyes as he saw the little girl weep, but ultimately, he red at her sternly. ¡°Stop crying,¡± he ordered, thinking he didn¡¯t sound harsh at all. Yet, he sounded especially fierce in the child¡¯s ears. With that, Este began to cry harder. Tears gushed down her ashen cheeks like a river escaping a dam as she broke into an uncontroble sob. Lucian¡¯s brows creased at the sight. He didn¡¯t know how to react. Meanwhile, Roxanne couldn¡¯t watch how cold the man was toward his weeping daughter any further. ¡°Is that how you treat a child? She¡¯s already in tears, and you¡¯re still talking to her like this? Can¡¯t you just talk to her nicely?¡± Lucian froze at the woman¡¯s sudden admonition. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. Roxanne quickly strode over to Este and knelt down to pull the little girl into her arms. ¡°There, there, Essie. Don¡¯t cry! You cane over to y whenever you like, okay? I¡¯ll give you my number, so just let me know whenever you¡¯re thinking of dropping by,¡± she assured tenderly. ¡°Don¡¯t cry anymore, okay? You won¡¯t look pretty if you do.¡± Meanwhile, Archie and Benny stood next to them with tissues in their hands. While coaxing Este, Roxanne reached out for a piece of tissue and wiped the child¡¯s tears. The little girl slowly stopped crying and buried herself in Roxanne¡¯s embrace. Feeling her heart wrench, Roxanne held the child tightly and patted her on the back. Archie and Benny were livid to see Este having burst into tears like that, and they turned to Lucian indignantly. ¡°Why won¡¯t you let Essie be friends with us?¡± Archie couldn¡¯t help but question. ¡°We¡¯ve never been mean to her! For the past two times she ran away from home, my mommy¡¯s the one who took care of her really well, and we¡¯d y with her too. She has fun ying with us, and she likes us a lot, so why can¡¯t she be friends with us? It¡¯s not like we¡¯re bad guys!¡± Certainly not expecting to be reproached by two little boys, Lucian remained stone-faced, not knowing how to respond. He didn¡¯t want Este to be friends with them just because he was being considerate, yet they were now ming him instead. ¡°Essie doesn¡¯t have many friends at school. Only Archie and I like her and let her hang around with us. When someone bullied her at school, we were the ones who helped her. If she can¡¯t be friends with us, she¡¯ll be all on her own! Is that what you want?¡± Even Benny couldn¡¯t refrain fromshing out at Lucian. The man felt extremely conflicted to be questioned like that. Seeing him remain silent, the boys grew even more frustrated, thinking they had hit the nail on the head with their words. After holding back for a while, Archie eventually said what was on his mind, ¡°We protect her and y with her, but you¡¯re being so skeptical about us. What kind of people do you think we are?¡± Benny nodded in agreement, and the two stared at Lucian in disappointment. This man was their father, but he had abandoned their mother before they were even born. And now, on top of not liking them, he wouldn¡¯t even let his daughter be friends with them. Chapter 60 Chapter 60 Lucian was taken aback by the two little boys¡¯ angry reaction and knitted his brows. They outright reprimanded him, yet somehow, he felt sorry for Archie and Benny. He was even overwhelmed by a pang of guilt. Roxanne, who was carrying Este in her arms, was dumbfounded when she heard what her two boys said. She, too, felt a prickly pain in her heart. Thank God they don¡¯t know the man standing before them is their biological father. They might be even more upset if they knew the truth¡­ After keeping quiet for a while, Lucian looked away apologetically. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, but I don¡¯t see you two as bad guys. I feel it¡¯s inappropriate for your mommy to be in contact with her ex-husband. Your daddy might get upset if he finds out about it.¡± Roxanne and the two boys froze for a moment when they heard that. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. Archie and Benny exchanged nces. Oh, right! Daddy doesn¡¯t know our rtionship with him yet! Benny spoke his mind. ¡°It¡¯s okay! We don¡¯t have a daddy!¡± The remarks the two boys made kept rendering Roxanne nonplussed. She wanted to stop her youngest son from spilling the tea, but it was toote. She could only anxiously wait for Lucian¡¯s response. The man¡¯s eyes narrowed with suspicion. There¡¯s something fishy about the things he said and the pictures. ¡°What do you mean by you don¡¯t have a daddy? Where¡¯s he?¡± Lucian could not help but ask. Benny looked at the confused man and exined, ¡°Daddy didn¡¯t want us anymore. He abandoned Mommy, and he didn¡¯t like us. We grew up living with Mommy, so we have not seen our daddy before.¡± Upon hearing that, Lucian frowned and gazed into Roxanne¡¯s eyes. His eyes flickered with So all these years, this woman raised these two kids single-handedly? He could not imagine the hardship they had to endure. Besides, the woman had such an impressive r¨¦sum¨¦ when she was abroad. How on earth did she manage to juggle between the kids and her work? And how could that man abandon them just like this? Damn it! Roxanne noticed the man was overwhelmed with emotions. She could even predict what he was about to say next. Before he could say anything, however, Roxanne shut her eyes for a bit to conceal all her emotions and interrupted their conversation nonchntly, ¡°All right. Essie is not crying anymore, so it¡¯s time for you to go home. I should get to work soon, too.¡± She then released the little girl and gently stroked her head. ¡°Go home with your daddy, all right? You can alwayse and visit Archie and Benny next time.¡± Pleased with Roxanne¡¯s assurance, the teary-eyed Este broke into a smile and nodded before returning to her father. Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened for a second. He decided not to ask further since it was clear that Roxanne did not want to continue the topic. As the little girl with red-rimmed eyes walked toward him, he rubbed her head quietly and toned down his voice. ¡°Say goodbye to Ms. Jarvis.¡± Este raised her hand and waved Roxanne and the two boys goodbye. The mother and sons responded with a hand wave. Lucian bobbed his head and said to Roxanne, ¡°We¡¯re gonna go now.¡± Before Roxanne could react, Lucian held Este¡¯s hand, turned around, and left. Chapter 61 Chapter 61 After watching Lucian¡¯s car depart, Roxanne brought Archie and Benny back to the mansion. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. She squatted down and gave them a serious look. The two boys, too, looked at her as they knew their mother wanted to talk to them. ¡°Archie, Benny, listen carefully. Don¡¯t ever tell anyone about our family again-especially the fact that you don¡¯t have a daddy!¡± Roxanne felt her head throbbing when she recalled the incident earlier. Thank God I managed to put a stop to their conversation. Given Lucian¡¯s intelligence, the things the kids said would have aroused his suspicion. Archie and Benny looked perplexed. ¡°Why not? It¡¯s a fact that we didn¡¯t have a daddy!¡± Roxanne¡¯s head pounded even more intensely when she heard their reply. I can¡¯t be telling these boys the real reason, can I? How can I tell them I¡¯m afraid their biological father wille looking for them? After a short pause, Roxanne made up a story. ¡°Because bad guys like kids who don¡¯t have fathers. They know mothers are not strong enough to protect their children. What if they snatch you away?¡± The two geniuses exchanged nces. They thought the exnation wasme but decided to y along. ¡°Okay, Mommy.¡± Roxanne sighed with relief. She got up, took her bag, and brought them to the research institute. Meanwhile, after leaving Roxanne¡¯s house, Este was still sulking though she was not crying anymore. Throughout the drive back, she pouted and looked at the view outside the window as if Lucian was not around. Feeling helpless, Lucian sighed and said in a deep voice, ¡°Still mad at Daddy? I¡¯m sorry, Essie. It¡¯s all Daddy¡¯s fault. I shouldn¡¯t stop you from making friends, but you can¡¯t simply run away from home all the time. Communicate with Daddy if you have a problem.¡± Este tilted her head to look at him. Instead of looking out the window again, she lowered her head and stared at her tiny feet. Lucian sighed again. He reached out his hand and gently stroked her head. ¡°Instead of writing, you should try to speak. Writing might not urately convey your emotions and can sometimes cause misunderstanding.¡± Este shook her head and brushed his hand off. She hugged her notebook even more tightly and refused to put it aside. Upon seeing his daughter¡¯s reaction, Lucian frowned and fell silent. All the years, everyone assumed Este was a mute, and Lucian had never bothered to exin to the public. The little girl was not mute. In fact, she had learned to speak much earlier than peers her age. However, Este waster diagnosed with autism, and she gradually stopped talking to anyone. That was why she preferred to write down her thoughts on paper. Even when she was with Lucian, she refused to speak. As years went by, Lucian learned to ept Este for who she was. But deep in his heart, he still wished to hear his daughter speak again. The two boys said she doesn¡¯t have many friends in kindergarten. I guess it¡¯s because she doesn¡¯t want to talk to anyone. Both of them stayed silent for the rest of their journey. Even after they had arrived at the manor, Este got out of the car and walked in front. Lucian walked behind and entered the mansion right after her. ¡°You¡¯re finally home!¡± Lucian was a little bewildered when he heard his mother¡¯s voice the moment he stepped into the house. He nced at the living hall and saw his parents standing next to Aubree. They were all surrounding Este, wearing joyful expressions on their faces. Chapter 62 Chapter 62 ¡°Dad, Mom, what are you doing here?¡± Lucian frowned and asked. Sonya whined while inspecting her granddaughter, ¡°I had to drag your dad over because I was so worried when I heard my baby girl went missing this morning. And why didn¡¯t you tell me?¡± Lucian did not know how to answer her. ¡°Essie,e. Tell Grandma where have you been?¡± Sonya was relieved that Este came home in one piece. She hugged the girl and said, ¡°How could you run away from home just like that? You¡¯re still a little girl. Grandma is so worried about you. Don¡¯t do this again anymore, okay?¡± Aubree echoed, ¡°You can always talk to me if you¡¯re upset. Don¡¯t just run out of the house without telling us! Grandpa and Grandma were so worried about you. So was I! Had you note home, I would have gone out to look for you!¡± Este did not react much to Sonya¡¯s hug and Aubree¡¯s question, a frigid expression on her face. Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. Knowing that this kind of atmosphere would make Este ufortable, Lucian walked up to Sonya and took over the child. ¡°Essie was just around the neighborhood. She¡¯s a smart girl, so you don¡¯t need to worry about her.¡± Este flung her arms around Lucian¡¯s neck and buried her head into the crook of his neck. Sonya¡¯s heart ached for her granddaughter. She turned around andined to Lucian, ¡°You must have neglected Essie because you¡¯re always busy with work! She wouldn¡¯t have felt lonely had you married someone who could take good care of her. She wouldn¡¯t have run away if someone was here to look after her!¡± Upon hearing that, Lucian knitted his brows. He knew Sonya was trying to press him to marry again. He immediately promised, ¡°From now on, I¡¯ll try to stay home to apany her during weekends. I didn¡¯t n to go out today either, but an emergency cropped up, and I had to make a trip to the office.¡± Sonya knew he was trying to y dumb. Instead of beating around the bush, she asked directly, ¡°I don¡¯t want to y mind games with you anymore. When do you n on marrying Aubree? She waited for you for six years, and you expect her to wait for another six years? Don¡¯t you feel bad for her?¡± Aubree held onto Sonya¡¯s arm and looked at Lucian with a faint smile as if she was anticipating a positive answer from him. That was why she invited Sonya and Elias over today, Vas He¡¯ll have no choice but to talk about our wedding since his parents are here. Yet, the answer Lucian gave shattered her dream. ¡°Mom, I¡¯ve been busytely, and you saw what happened to Essie. She has been quite emotional these days, often running away from home. Now is just not the right time for me to think about marriage.¡± Sonya looked up at Lucian with a scowl and advised him, ¡°All the more reason for you to tie the knot with Aubree! Isn¡¯t it better if she can help you take care of Essie? She has always regarded Essie as her own,¡± ¡°Mom!¡± Lucian interrupted Sonya in a deep voice and reiterated, ¡°I said this is not the right time, and I¡¯ll always put Essie¡¯s first before making any decision, so stop giving me pressure!¡± Aubree¡¯s expression turned grim when she noticed the annoyance on his face. She stepped in to defuse the tension, saying, ¡°It¡¯s all right, Mrs. Farwell. I can wait. I believe Essie would one day ept me. We¡¯ll give her more time.¡± Touched by Aubree¡¯s remark, Sonya gently patted her hand to console her. What a gentle, affectionate child. I don¡¯t understand why Lucian refused to marry her right away. Este overheard their conversation and grimaced. I don¡¯t want this evil woman to be my mommy! Chapter 63 Chapter 63 At noon both Elias and Sonya stayed at the manor for lunch. Aubree also made up an excuse and stayed. At the dining table, she put on an attentive act. Not only did she take soup and food for the couple every so often, but she even helped Este peel prawns that she didn¡¯t eat much herself. ¡°Here, I remember that you love eating prawns, so I peeled them especially for you, Essie.¡± Aubree slid the te of prawns she had peeled to Este. Este merely lifted her head and nced at it. Then, she dipped her head again and continued eating the food in her bowl as though she didn¡¯t see anything. Aubree¡¯s hand was still on the te, and the smile on her face stiffened slightly. Some time passed, but still, Este didn¡¯t touch that te of prawns at all. ¡°Essie, why are you not eating the prawns Ms. Pearson peeled especially for you. Besides, you didn¡¯t even thank her,¡± Sonya chided. Este turned a deaf ear to it and continued eating. Upon seeing that, Sonya frowned slightly, and her voice turned significantly harsher as she said, ¡°Such behavior is exceedingly rude, Essie.¡± Stilling, Este lifted her head, her eyes brimming with obstinacy. I just don¡¯t want to eat anything from this evil woman! Beside her, Aubree hurriedly acted considerate and sensible when she saw that Sonya was standing up for her. ¡°Don¡¯t be angry, Mrs. Farwell. Perhaps Essie isn¡¯t eating the prawns because she¡¯s already full. Besides, she¡¯s emotionally unstable in the first ce. You¡¯ll frighten her.¡± ¡°What a considerate girl! I¡¯ll rest easy with you taking care of her in the future,¡± Sonyauded in gratification. Aubree cautiously shifted her gaze to Lucian with a somewhat forced smile on her face. Likewise, Sonya looked at her son, but her eyes were filled with recrimination. As Lucian met their gazes, his expression tensed, and he said to Aubree in a clipped voice, ¡°Essie doesn¡¯t eat food from outsiders. You don¡¯t need to try anymore.¡± When Aubree heard that, a sh of hurt flittered across her face, and she sheepishly took the te of prawns back. Sonya wanted to smooth over their rtionship upon seeing that Aubree was hurt. She turned and chastised her son, ¡°This is all on you for pampering her.¡± Lucian remained indifferent. ¡°Children should have some safety awareness in the first ce. At the very least, she won¡¯t simply eat food from strangers when she¡¯s outside.¡± Sonya wanted to speak further, but Elias beside her gave a cough and seconded. ¡°Lucian is right Essie likes to wander around these few days. No one can afford to take responsibility if she eats something she shouldn¡¯t be eating outside.¡± Only then did Sonya relent. After lunch, Lucian still had work to handle, so he asked them about their ns. Regarding her granddaughter lovingly, Sonya remarked, ¡°It¡¯s been a long while since Ist brought Essie out to shop. Essie, I¡¯ll bring you out to buy some beautiful dresses!¡± Although she was dissatisfied with her son¡¯s marriage, she still loved her granddaughter from the depths of her heart. Considering that her son was a man and would inevitably be negligent in that aspect, she would always bring Este out to buy things favored by little girls every time she visited. Este was just about to agree when Aubree came over. ¡°I¡¯ll go with you, Mrs. Farwell. I can also see what Essie likes.¡± ¡°Sure!¡± Sonya agreed with a smile. Having said that, she reached out to take Este¡¯s hand, only to grasp empty air. Este shook her head at her grandmother before writing in her notebook: I don¡¯t want to go out today. I want to practice writing at home. I don¡¯t want to be with this evil woman! Sonya didn¡¯t force the issue. Elias led his granddaughter to the couch for a seat. ¡°Here, I¡¯ll teach you. Tell me what word you¡¯d like to practice today.¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Recalling the names of the two boys she glimpsed written on their books when she was in kindergarten, Este wrote ¡°Archie¡± and ¡°Benny¡± in her notebook. At that, puzzlement inundated Elias. ¡°Why do you suddenly want to practice writing these two words?¡± After all, those two words weren¡¯tmon nouns, and he couldn¡¯t think of any special meaning to them. Shaking her head, Este tugged at her grandfather¡¯s sleeve, imploring him to teach her. Chapter 64 Chapter 64 Elise didn¡¯t pursue the matter further. Since Este wanted to learn those two words, he decided to teach her. They both had the housekeeper bring a pencil and paper, then started practicing writing at the dining table in the dining room, Seeing that his father was taking care of Este, Lucian excused himself and went upstairs to his study. Meanwhile, Aubree was seething. She could tell that Este was evidently trying to keep her distance from her. Thetter had been turning her down in front of the Farwells. If this continues, Mr. and Mrs. Farwell will definitely notice something amiss! No, I¡¯ve got to find an Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. opportunity and teach that brat a lesson so that she¡¯ll behave! Because of Este¡¯s sudden visit, it was almost ten o¡¯clock when Roxanne arrived at the research institute with Archie and Benny. After settling them in her office, she started working without dy. The data Colby proposed hadn¡¯t been processed, so he sought her out right away upon learning that she had arrived. The two of them proceeded to devote themselves wholly to work. It wasn¡¯t until it was time to get off work in the evening that they came to a conclusion at longst. Stretching, Roxanne caught sight of her two sons who were studying something or other on their Hearing that, Archie and Benny lifted their eyes from behind theptops and nodded docilely. They put theptops down and got up from the couch. Colby nced at the time before suggesting with a smile, ¡°It¡¯s just dinner time now. You¡¯ve done me a great favor today, so how about me treating you and the kids to a meal?¡± Roxanne was stunned for a moment. She turned to her sons to seek their opinions. Archie and Benny exchanged a look, understanding dawning upon both of them. Well, it¡¯s clear as day that Mr. Galloway wants to pursue Mommy. Having observed the man for a day, they felt that Colby was indeed very much outstanding. In terms of career, at the very least, he hadmon topics with Roxanne. On top of that, his looks were also passable. For some inexplicable reason, however, only their father¡¯s countenance shed across their minds whenever they imagined a man with their mother. How strange. We¡¯ve never seen Mommy and Daddy standing side by side, but we instinctively feel that Daddy is the only one who¡¯s worthy of standing by Mommy¡¯s side. Therefore, it¡¯s best that we keep a distance from Mr. Galloway! ¡°Thank you, Mr. Galloway, but my mommy already has a date tonight. So, it¡¯s okay,¡± Archie declined politely. Colby looked at Roxanne in mystification. Throughout the day, he hadn¡¯t heard her mentioning about a date that night. Roxanne swept a gaze over Archie and Benny. While she couldn¡¯t fathom why they lied, she still went along with them. ¡°I have a dinner date with my best friend tonight. I¡¯ll take a rain check.¡± At that, Colby shed her a warm smile. ¡°I¡¯m all muddled from work that I forgot to ask whether you have nster. In that case, I¡¯ll head off first.¡± After saying that, he bid Archie and Benny farewell before spinning on his heel and leaving. When they left the research institute, Roxanne eyed Archie and Benny questioningly with her brows slightly furrowed. ¡°Why did you lie earlier? Do you not like Mr. Galloway?¡± In response, Archie and Benny shook their heads solemnly. ¡°We were helping you turn a suitor down.¡± Roxanne was torn between exasperation and amusement at the sight of their earnest expressions. ¡°Regardless of the reason, you can¡¯t simply lie in the future.¡± The two boys nodded obediently. Benny leaned close to her with a grin. ¡°We feel that Mr. Galloway is indeed pretty good, but you can still choose for a bit, Mommy. There¡¯s no need to rush. Archie and I aren¡¯t in a hurry to have a daddy anyway.¡± Roxanne inexorably burst into giggles. ¡°Choose? Do you think it¡¯s the same as choosing groceries at the supermarket?¡± Chapter 65 Chapter 65 Roxanne wasn¡¯t familiar with the restaurants nearby, so she asked Madilyn to rmend her a ce and brought Archie and Benny there directly. As they were eating, she received a text from Jonathan that read: Is treatment needed tonight, Dr. Jarvis? Only then did Roxanne remember that she didn¡¯t exin the treatment process to him. She replied: Old Mr. Queen is still a little weak, so treatment can¡¯t be conducted so frequently. He has already undergone treatment twice consecutively. Let him rest for a day. I¡¯lle over tomorrow. Sorry, I forgot to tell you about it. In no time, Jonathan texted back: Okay. I¡¯ll be waiting for you anytime. When Archie and Benny noticed that their mother was texting during dinner, they asked curiously, ¡°Is something the matter, Mommy?¡± Smiling, Roxanne took some food for them both. ¡°No, the patient the other day was asking me if I¡¯m going over.¡± Upon hearing that, the two boys nodded sensibly. ¡°You¡¯ve worked hard, so eat more, Mommy.¡± Roxanne¡¯s heart melted at the sight of their attentiveness. Dinner was a delightful affair. After they finished eating, Roxanne brought Archie and Benny to the counter to settle the bill. No sooner had she reached the counter than she spotted two people heading toward them. Holding each other¡¯s arms intimately, Aubree and Frieda walked into the restaurant while chatting andughing. Unbidden, Roxanne slowed her pace and scanned her surroundings, wishing to head into the crowd to avoid them both as they had always been hostile toward her. Aubree had a long-standing grudge against her. In fact, the woman had even joined forces with all the medicinal herb suppliers in Horington to boycott her research institute. Frieda, on the other hand, merely looked down upon her medical skills and mocked her time and again. Judging from the look of things, they clearly had a close rtionship. Roxanne had no doubt that Frieda would team up with Aubree to revile her. WC In normal circumstances, she might have ignored their presence and walk right past them. But with Archie and Benny tagging along right then, she didn¡¯t want to have a row with them in front of her sons. Just when she was about to take a detour with Archie and Benny, Frieda¡¯s mocking voice sounded from afar. ¡°Hey, what a coincidence, Dr. Jarvis! Are you also here for dinner?¡± Roxanne¡¯s brows creased slightly, but she nned to ignore her. s, the two boys thought that she didn¡¯t hear it and tugged on her sleeve. ¡°Someone is calling you, Mommy. Left with no other choice, Roxanne could only halt in her tracks. She turned around and met Frieda¡¯s gaze calmly. ¡°Indeed, it¡¯s very much a coincidence. But I¡¯ve already finished eating, so I¡¯ll leave you both to it. Please excuse me.¡± After saying that, she proceeded to lead Archie and Benny past them to pay the bill. Frowning, Aubree asked Frieda, ¡°You two are acquainted?¡± In response, Frieda nodded. Sweeping a gaze over the trio who had almost reached them, she dered in a disdainful voice, ¡°Don¡¯t say that. I¡¯m too lowly to be acquainted with Dr. Jarvis when her medical skills are so superb. So many people are helpless in the face of my grandfather¡¯s illness, but she only jabbed a few needles into him before he regained consciousness. My brother now holds her in high regard, so much so that her status is far higher than mine.¡± As soon as Aubree heard that, her expression changed imperceptibly. ¡°What did you just say? Why Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. did you all hire her to treat Old Mr. Queen?¡± ¡°We didn¡¯t do so. She was the one who came knocking on our door. As for the reason, I reckon she took an interest in my family¡¯s medicinal herbs. After all, my brother signed a contract with her the instant my grandfather regained consciousness,¡± Frieda sneered. When she finished saying that, she shot a hateful re at Roxanne. ¡°She doesn¡¯t even know her ce. My brother merely mentioned it in passing, and she agreed right away. The contract is now signed, so she¡¯ll be dead if anything happens to my grandfather!¡± Chapter 66 Chapter 66 When Aubree heard Frieda¡¯s answer, a mixture of emotions brewed in her eyes. Having been turned down by Lucian previously and suddenly learning that Roxanne had returned to the country, she didn¡¯t dare wait anymore. In the past few days, she had been doing everything possible to have an identity linking her to the man. Early that morning, she had purposely asked Elias and Sonya to persuade Lucian. She had thought he would listen to his parents and change his mind, yet again she had hit a brick wall and even had to put up with Este for the entire day. With the couple there, she didn¡¯t dare throw a tantrum either. Enraged at the end of the day, she had asked Frieda out to shop in a bid to dissipate her anger. However, never had she expected to hear such news. Countless renowned doctors were helpless in the face of Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition, yet Roxanne managed to cure him. That aside, Jonathan even signed a contract with her, promising to supply medicinal herbs to the research institute at half the price! In that case, haven¡¯t my efforts of urging the medicinal herbs suppliers in Horington to boycott her research institute been in vain? At that line of thought, Aubree¡¯s gaze turned chilly. ¡°Didn¡¯t I arrange for a medical team to treat Old Mr. Queen? Were they not effective? Why was she allowed to take over his treatment?¡± Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. While saying that, she nced at the woman who was meters away from her with fury zing within her. I¡¯ve gone to such lengths, but she still managed to find a medicinal herb supplier in Horington! She must haveughed at me behind my back! Frieda was startled for a moment before she hesitantly replied, ¡°It¡¯s not that. The medical team you arranged was unquestionably effective, but she came knocking on our door and convinced my brother. Besides, Grandpa¡¯s condition has indeed improved following her treatment. For that reason, my brother has decided that she¡¯d be in charge henceforth.¡± With things havinge to this, nothing I say will be of use. Aubree snorted inwardly, but her expression remained as courteous as ever. She said to Roxanne, ¡°I didn¡¯t know that you even have such capabilities, Ms. Jarvis, that even a professional medical team can¡¯tpare to you alone.¡± Swiping a finger across the screen of her phone, Roxanne retorted indifferently, ¡°There are many more things you don¡¯t know. Why, are you still nning to sabotage me further after learning that I signed a contract with the Queen family?¡± Aubree¡¯s gaze abruptly darkened. Despite that, she sounded very much innocent when she said, ¡°What did you mean by that? I¡¯m thankful that you cured Old Mr. Queen, so how could I possibly sabotage you?¡± Not in the mood to y along with her, Roxanne answered directly, ¡°I¡¯m sure you know full well what I meant by that. Also, I don¡¯t care if you still want to sabotage me further.¡± Aubree¡¯s face darkened frightfully. She didn¡¯t reply immediately. Beside her, Frieda cautiously interjected upon seeing the two of them at each other¡¯s throats. ¡°Aubree, are you both¡­ acquainted?¡± At that, Aubrce sneered and no longer masked her hostility toward Roxanne. ¡°Not only are we acquainted, but you can also say that fate binds us together tightly.¡± After saying that, she turned to Roxanne and drawled provocatively, ¡°Don¡¯t you agree, Ms. Jarvis?¡± Roxanne had just finished paying when she heard that. Lifting her eyes, she swept her gaze over the two women in front of her. ¡°I¡¯m afraid I don¡¯t dare agree with that, Ms. Pearson. I¡¯m not really that close with you, so please don¡¯t make such a statement again in the future. It troubles me a lot.¡± Aubree¡¯s expression stiffened, and rage zed in her eyes. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. Hurry up and go into the restaurant. I¡¯ll leave you both to enjoy your meal.¡± Roxanne then inclined her head at them impassionately and walked past them with Archie and Benny, leaving the restaurant without a backward nce. Chapter 67 Chapter 67 Aubree and Frieda watched as Roxanne¡¯s figure disappeared from the door. Then, they went over to a window seat and sat down. ¡°Aubree. what exactly is your deal with that Dr. Jarvis? You seem to know each other, but your rtionship isn¡¯t that great?¡± Frieda queried cautiously with her eyes pinned on the woman across from her. Aubree was so livid that she had steaming out of her ears. ¡°How could our rtionship be great? Roxanne Jarvis is Lucian¡¯s ex-wife!¡± If it weren¡¯t for her, my marriage to Lucian would¡¯ve been a sure thing ages ago! Shock flooded Frieda when she heard that. ¡°She¡¯s Lucian¡¯s ex-wife?¡± It was no secret within their circle that Lucian was once married six years ago, especially among them who grew up with him. However, they had also thought that Aubree would be the man¡¯s future wife until he got married out of the blue. His spouse had never appeared before them, and he had rarely mentioned her outside. Hence, no one knew that woman¡¯s identity even after they divorced. I never expected it to be her. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. The scene whereby Lucian and Roxanne met that night yed in Frieda¡¯s mind. Back then, I naively found it strange that Lucian targeted that woman for no reason yet insisted that I apologize to her. It turns out that such is their rtionship. At that thought, she btedlymented, ¡°No wonder Lucian defended her that day.¡± Sharply catching that remark, Aubree demanded coldly, ¡°What are you saying? Lucian defended her? What was that about?¡± Recalling the events that night, Frieda wore an expression of sheer disgruntlement and promptly griped, ¡°It was the night she came knocking on our door, requesting to treat Grandpa. I merely made a few skeptical remarks about her since she looks so young and no one knows whether she really has such capabilities, but both Lucian and Essie asked me to apologize to her!¡± When Aubree heard that, her heart sank at once. I went to great lengths to guard against her because I was afraid that Lucian would meet her and even did everything possible to have him change his mind and firm up our marriage. But little did I know that they had actually met without my knowledge! Worse still, Essie knows her and even spoke up for her. Furthermore, judging from Lucian¡¯s character, the fact that he stood up for her means that he isn¡¯t averse to her! Panic inexorably deluged Aubree. No, this can¡¯t be happening. She appeared out of nowhere six years ago and snatched Lucian away from me, but this time, I¡¯ll never allow her to mess up my ns again! After leaving the restaurant, Roxanne got into the car with the iwo boys and headed home straight away. Archie and Benny were still pondering about the incident earlier. Although they couldn¡¯t find any fault with the two women¡¯s words, they could distinctly sense their hostility toward their mother and that their mother seemed to be mad as well. The two of them exchanged a nce, both feeling rather vexed. ¡°Who were those two people earlier, Mommy?¡± Archie asked with a tense expression. ¡°One of them is a family member of my patient. The other one is probably¡­ Essie¡¯s mother,¡± Roxanne answered. Right after she said that, a strange feeling inexplicably welled up within her. Hearing that, Archie and Benny curled their lips in disdain. Hmph! So it was because of that woman that Daddy abandoned Mommy and didn¡¯t want us anymore. How could shepare to Mommy? Chapter 68 Chapter 68 Archie and Benny proceeded topare Aubree with Roxanne from head to toe. In the end. they felt that she was all too far beneath their mother. Daddy actually abandoned Mommy for that woman? How blind of him! After inwardly disdaining him for a while, Archie suddenly remembered the conversation in the restaurant earlier. He leaned close to Roxanne and inquired, ¡°Mommy, what did you mean when you said that the woman sabotaged you just now? Did she pick on you?¡± Roxanne didn¡¯t want to involve her two sons in the mess, so she denied it casually, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. It was just a work issue, and it has been resolved.¡± No sooner had she said that than Archie¡¯s determined voice rang out beside her ear. ¡°She did pick on you, then! What happened exactly? Hurry up and tell us, Mommy!¡± The boy¡¯s petite face was stretched taut, and he frowned in an adult-like manner. ¡°Didn¡¯t we promise each other that there can be no secrets between us, Mommy? You can¡¯t lie to us!¡± Benny seconded. Roxanne¡¯s brows knitted together in exasperation. She had almost forgotten that Archie and Benny were different from other children. Their intelligence quotient was ridiculously high. In the face of their interrogative gazes, Roxanne finally broke down and told them about Aubree teaming up with the medicinal herb suppliers in Horington to boycott their research institute.Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Upon hearing that she actually picked on their mother, Archie and Benny were so furious that their hands balled into fists. ¡°That woman is simply too evil!¡± ¡°Everything¡¯s fine now, so don¡¯t do anything rash,¡± Roxanne urged. Archie and Benny nodded docilely, but inwardly, they raged. Once they were home, they seized the opportunity while Roxanne was bathing to sneak into the study. Archie whispered something or other into his brother¡¯s ear mysteriously. In the next heartbeat, Benny¡¯s eyes lit up. He turned on hisptop, his fingers flying across the keyboard. Shortly after, he hacked into Pearson Group¡¯s system. When Roxanne came out after her bath, Archie and Benny had already slipped into bed innocently. They gazed at her with bright eyes, imploring her to tell them a bedtime story. Early the next morning, Aubree was awakened by the ringing of her phone. Displeasure was written all over her face. Infuriated after learning that Lucian had met Roxannest night, she had gone to bed veryte. Thus, she was furious about being awakened carly in the morning then. ¡°What is it?¡± Her voice brimmed with impatience when she answered the call. On the other end of the phone, Charles sounded exceedingly frantic. ¡°Ms. Pearson,e to the office quickly! There¡¯s a huge problem with thepany¡¯s system!¡± The instant Aubree heard that, she jolted awake. Getting out of bed, she washed up for a bit before rushing to the office. Only when she arrived at the office did she discover that the entirepany¡¯s system was down. All the employees were standing at the side with peculiar expressions on their faces, whereas those from the technical department were trying to fix things. No one knew the origin of the virus, but no matter what method they employed, they couldn¡¯t resolve it. When Aubree turned up, all the employees at the side lowered their heads in unison as though concealing something. Meanwhile, the employees from the technical department wore grim expressions. ¡°What¡¯s going on? What use is the lot of you when you can¡¯t resolve things even after so long?¡± Aubree strode right over to theputers. As soon as she saw the picture on the screen, her face flushed bright red with fury. Two cartoon characters were fighting on the screen. Precisely speaking, one of them was pummeling the other. The character taking a beating had Aubree¡¯s name written on her face and the words ¡°evil woman¡± printed clearly on her shirt. Next to the character dishing out the beating was a speech bubble with the phrase, ¡°Let¡¯s pummel the evil woman!¡± It was clear as day that the person behind the virus was targeting her. Chapter 69 Chapter 69 Aubre looked up and nced around the area to find all theputer screens within her sight had the same image. The sight made her tremble. When the employees saw that she had seen the image on the screen, they tiptoed around her and did not even dare to breathe loudly. Some who were curious to see Aubree¡¯s reaction immediately retracted their gazes after meeting her furious eyes. Aubree swept a gaze across everyone. She then named a few people through gritted teeth and instructed Charles to dismiss them right away. After that, she returned and scolded the employees of the technical department, ¡°Is this how you work? How could thepany¡¯s system be simply hacked by someone? Besides, so much time has passed, yet none of you solved this. Did I spend this much money to hire all of you to humiliate thepany like this? If you can¡¯t resolve this, then get lost!¡± The employees had known how nasty Aubree¡¯s temper was and had prepared themselves mentally Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. to be scolded by her. Hence, they could only seethe in silence as sheshed out at them. Right then, the manager of the technical department mustered his courage and stepped out to exin, ¡°Ms. Pearson, this virus is really powerful. It has to be created by a famous hacker, at the very least. We¡­ need more time to crack this.¡± Aubree shot him a re. ¡°Settle this as fast as possible! Otherwise, you can pack your things and get lost with them!¡± The manager hurriedly nodded in reply and urged his subordinates to get working. All the employees were suffering. Aubree¡¯s face turned purple with rage as she stared at the two figures on the screen and silently clenched her fists. How dare this person humiliate me? They¡¯d better not let me find out who they are, or I¡¯ll make their life a living hell. Early that morning, Roxanne was about to send Archie and Benny to school when she saw Benny walking out of the room while clutching his stomach. Worried, Roxanne stepped forward to examine him. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Benny¡¯s face contorted in pain as he said, ¡°Mommy, my stomach hurts. Can I not go to school today?¡± As soon as he finished, Archie, too, walked out of the room and looked at Roxanne, saying, ¡°Mommy, my stomach¡¯s not feeling well, too.¡± Seeing that, Roxanne frowned. ¡°Maybe both of you ate something badst night. Go in and get some rest. I¡¯ll give your teacher a call.¡± Archie and Benny nodded. When they saw Roxanne leave, their eyes glinted with mischief. Roxanne was not the slightest bit suspicious of the boys. After all, they had always been obedient children who never showed any signs of aversion toward kindergarten. Naturally, they would not pretend to be sick to avoid school. After ending the call, Roxanne brought the boys some warm water and indigestion pills. The children did everything they were told. Roxanne had wanted to go to the research institute. However, she chose to work from home in the end since the children were unwell. After settling Archie and Benny, Roxanne got up and went into the study. When the boys heard the study door shut, they were instantly in high spirits and they no longer showed signs of exhaustion from earlier. Benny switched on theptop on his bed, smiling happily when he saw that his virus had not been cracked. ¡°That evil woman must be at the office at this time,¡± Archie said with certainty while looking at the time. Benny snorted smugly. ¡°Then she must¡¯ve seen my animation. I bet she¡¯s mad.¡± The thought of the evil woman stomping her feet in anger gave them a rush of joy. Chapter 70 Chapter 70 ¡°She¡¯s got to pay the price for bullying Mommy.¡± Archie snorted coolly, Benny nodded vehemently and started typing on the keyboard again. Archie was confused. ¡°What are you doing?¡± Feeling excited, Benny exined, ¡°Their technical team is too weak. My virus is so simple, yet they can¡¯t crack it till now. In that case, I¡¯ll increase the difficulty and make that evil woman angrier.¡± Hearing that, Archie nodded to express his agreement. ¡°It¡¯s best if they can¡¯t crack it. That way, more people willugh at her. Let¡¯s see if she still dares to bully Mommy in the future.¡± With that, the boys poured their attention to theptop. Suddenly, a series of footsteps could be heard near the door. Archie, who had sharp senses, heard the sounds outside and gave Benny a nudge. Benny quickly finished coding and shoved theptop to Archie. When Roxanne entered the room, she saw Archie hugging theptop and Benny sprawling on the bed, looking at the screen curiously. ¡°Aren¡¯t you two feeling unwell? Why are you using theptop instead of resting?¡± Roxanne frowned as she sat beside the boys. ¡°Come here. Let me take a look at you again.¡± Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s hearts tightened when they heard those words. Mommy¡¯s got incredible skills. If she examines us, we¡¯ll definitely be exposed. Then, everything we did in secret will be exposed, too. Roxanne reached out to hold Benny¡¯s hand, but he avoided it. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Roxanne gazed at him, perplexed. Benny grabbed his wrist warily. Not knowing how to react, he turned to Archie for help. Archie, on the other hand, was much calmer. He extended his hand toward Roxanne and said, ¡°Actually, I feel much better after having the medicine. But you can still check on us again if you¡¯re worried.¡± Roxanne¡¯s attention was sessfully captured by him, and she proceeded to examine him. After confirming there was nothing wrong with Archie¡¯s body, she turned to look at Benny. She remembered that Benny¡¯s symptoms were more severe just now. Having witnessed Archie¡¯s method. Benny came to his senses and scuttled toward Roxanne with a grin. ¡°Mommy, I¡¯m feeling much better, too! The medicine you gave us is really incredible! You¡¯re the best doctor in the world. Archie and I really admire you. We love you the most!¡± Amused, Roxanne shook her head. After examining them and seeing that the boys were fine, she let out a sigh of relief. At the same time, she felt that something was amiss. ¡°But I¡¯m still not feeling well,¡± Benny said seriously. Roxanne¡¯s heart lurched when she heard that, and she studied him concernedly. To her surprise, she heard the boy saying sweetly, ¡°I need your hug to feel better.¡± Right after he said that, a soft, chubby body pounced on her. Roxanne brought him into her embrace with a smile, and the cloud of doubt above her head dissipated. As she hugged Benny, she nced at theptop screen. ¡°Archie, what are you doing there?¡± When she was upied with Benny, Archie had seized the opportunity to change the browser page. Looking as if nothing had happened earlier, Archie met Roxanne¡¯s gaze. ¡°I¡¯m studying the trend of today¡¯s stocks. I invested in some foreignpanies and earned some money.¡± ¡°Archie earned over fifty million!¡± Benny looked prouder than Archie himself. When Roxanne heard the amount, she could not help but feel astounded. ¡°That much? Archie, you¡¯re incredible!¡± Benny asked yfully, ¡°What about me? What about me?¡± Roxanne smiled. ¡°Yourputer skills are great, too. Both of you are incredible. I love you two so much!¡± Then she nted a kiss on their foreheads. The boys grinned innocently.Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. Chapter 71 Chapter 71 Meanwhile, everyone in Pearson Group had been working nonstop because of the virus. Aubree had been hanging around in the technical department. Every now and then, she would spew some insults. ¡°Mr. Pearson.¡± Charles¡¯ voice rang out beside her ears. Hearing that, Aubree quicklyposed herself and lowered her eyes. ¡°Dad, why are you here?¡± she greeted the person who had just entered. Samuel Pearson had a serious look on his square face. ¡°What¡¯s going on? Are you guys still not done with the virus?¡± Property ? N?velDrama.Org. The manager of the technical department, who had been scolded by Aubree the entire morning, was drenched in a cold sweat. He nodded while bending over, apologizing, ¡°Mr. Pearson, we¡¯ve really done our best, but this virus is just too powerful. Every time we¡¯re close to cracking it, another difficult problem will appear. It¡¯s like a never-ending,¡± ¡°So you¡¯re saying you can¡¯t solve it?¡± Samuel questioned, frowning. The manager nodded guiltily.¡°Idiots!¡± Samuel roared. He then turned around to look at his daughter. ¡°In that case, we can only contact Lucian¡¯spany right away and ask if they have any solutions.¡± Farwell Group had many talented employees, and theirwork system was the best in the world. On top of that, they had the world¡¯s second-bestputer genius working for them. If Farwell Group, too, could not solve Pearson Group¡¯s problem, then thepany was done for: ¡°No way!¡± Aubree rejected it instantly and nced at the image on the screen with a scowl. If we get someone from Farwell Group to solve this, then Lucian will definitely see this. I¡¯d be utterly humiliated if that happened. Samuel lectured coldly, ¡°If you¡¯re worried about being humiliated, then why did you mess with people without knowing their background? And now, they¡¯re getting back at you. Do you know how much our or thepany?¡± Aubree bit her lip. In the end, she had no choice but to give in. Samuel shot her a re and dialed Lucian¡¯s number, asking thetter to send some men over to solve the problem. Upon receiving the news, Lucian merely asked Cayden to pick someone randomly from the technical department and send him to Pearson Group. The employee sent by Lucian was clearly more skilled than the ones at Pearson Group. The employees of Pearson Group were powerless against the virus for the entire morning, yet Lucian¡¯s employee took only one nce before he started tapping away on the keyboard. Those who were in the same industry could easily see that the virus had almost been cracked by Farwell Group¡¯s employee. Meanwhile, Roxanne returned to the study after making sure that Archie and Benny were fine. Archie returned his gaze to theptop screen and studied the stock prices. After he studied it for some time, a series of codes appeared on the screen. ¡°Benny, look!¡± Archie immediately called out to Benny. Benny¡¯s eyes lit up when he saw the codes that popped on the screen. It was a program he had designed. When someone had cracked the core sequence of the virus, the window would automatically pop up. I thought this virus wouldn¡¯t be cracked today. Looks like the other party is a professional. Benny got more excited at that thought. He took theptop from Archie and started tapping away on the keyboard, battling against the person on the other side. Half an hourter, Benny stopped typing. ¡°What is it?¡± Archie asked in puzzlement. Benny smiled excitedly. ¡°It¡¯s been craoked.¡± Hearing that, Archie looked at his brother strangely. ¡°Why are you still smiling so happily?¡± Benny nodded indifferently. ¡°That person is really incredible. That fight with him just now was quite interesting. But I¡¯m sure he¡¯s not from Pearson Group. He¡¯s way stronger than those idiots.¡± Chapter 72 Chapter 72 Though Archie was not as skilled as Benny in terms of technology, he understood what was going on. Pearson Group made zero progress the entire morning. Now that Benny has lost all of a sudden, surely the opponent is an expert, and they are not someone from Pearson Group. The whole morning should be enough for Pearson Group to seek help from someone else ¡°It might be¡­ someone from Farwell Group.¡± That was the only possible answer Archie could think of. Farwell Group¡¯s technical team is well known for being excellent at their job. Besides, if that woman is really Essie¡¯s mommy, there¡¯s no reason for Pearson Group not to get help from Farwell Group. Upon hearing that, Benny frowned and pursed his lips. He was furious. Though he knew that the woman was Este¡¯s mother, she was also the woman who bullied his mother. He could not believe that Lucian had helped Aubree. No way. I must teach them a lesson. At that thought, Benny picked up theptop again, looking serious, his fingers gliding across the keyboard. At the same time, the employees of the technical department of Pearson Group stood at their supervisor¡¯s workstation and watched the genius at work. All they saw were the series of codes constantly appearing on the screen. It did not take long for the cartoon on theputer screens to disappear one by one. SCIee.¡°Is it done?¡± Aubree stood up excitedly. The moment she wanted to thank her savior, thetter¡¯s expression stiffened. Aubree¡¯s heart, too, sank instantly. ¡°It is, supposedly. But,¡± The person frowned, and he watched a code appearing automatically on the screen. It was simpler than the virus earlier. Vas Si Property ? N?velDrama.Org. A row of words appeared, which read: Are you from Farwell Group? The hacker is actually talking to me. The employee hesitated for a moment before replying: Yes. A series of codes appeared on the screen again. It wrote: How dare you help that evil woman? I¡¯m angry now! Immediately after that, the conversation on the screen disappeared and was reced by an attack moreplicated than the virus just now. What¡¯s going on? Who exactly is this?¡± Aubree¡¯s face turned purple with rage after she read their conversation. Caught off guard by the attack, the employee ignored her and started battling the hacker, However, he could not help but feel that something was off with the conversation earlier. The hacker has incredible skills, but they sounded a little childish¡­ In the afternoon, seeing that the person he sent had yet to return to thepany, Cayden asked hesitantly, ¡°Mr. Farwell, the person we sent to Pearson Group isn¡¯t back yet. Should we send another person over?¡± ¡°We¡¯ll wait for the people from Pearson Group toe to us first,¡± Lucian said calmly SO After all, every time Pearson Group made a request would mean that they owed Lucian a favor. Cayden hummed in response and changed the topic. ¡°The executive meeting in the afternoon will be starting in ten minutes. Would you like to go over now?¡± Lucian nodded and went to the conference room, with Cayden following closely behind him. Along the way, Cayden noticed Lucian asionally taking his phone out to nce at it. DCC C In fact, Lucian, who rarely ced his phone beside him during meetings, had been ncing at his phone from the corner of his eye during the meeting. Cayden was perplexed, but he held back his curiosity until the meeting ended. ¡°Mr. Farwell, do you have anything important happening today?¡± he asked cautiously. As soon as he finished his sentence, he saw Lucian furrow his brows and look rather annoyed. ¡°No,¡± Lucian answered coldly. He whipped out his phone and nced at the screen again. Still, there were no iing calls. SC ¡¤ Seeing that, Lucian put his phone away, his heart filled with displeasure. I¡¯ve instructed the kindergarten to expel the two children. That woman should¡¯ve known about the news today, but why is she not doing anything? Chapter 73 Chapter 73 Lucian waited until the evening. Yet, he did not receive any calls from Roxanne. He suppressed his displeasure and rushed to the kindergarten to pick Este up. I should be able to find out what¡¯s going on once I¡¯m at the kindergarten. By the time he arrived, most of the children had left. Lucian spotted his daughter standing in the corner at a nce. She was hanging her head low and holding her schoolbag with both hands, looking utterly dispirited. Lucian frowned slightly and went forward to pat her head. ¡°Why are you upset? Is it because I¡¯mte? I¡¯m so-¡± Before he could finish, Este pursed her lips and snorted, walking straight past him.Lucian¡¯s hand hung in the air, and his voice stopped abruptly as he turned around helplessly to watch his daughter reach the car. He watched her climb into the car before retracting his gaze and scanning the remaining children. Even so, there were no signs of the twins. ¡°Mr. Farwell¡­¡± One teacher noticed he seemed to be looking for someone. Her heart skipped a beat, and she hurried over cautiously. Lucian shifted his gaze and stared at the person in front of him expressionlessly. ¡°Where are the twins? Have they been expelled?¡± The teacher lowered her head guiltily. ¡°Not yet. I wanted to tell them about the news when they came to school. But Ms. Jarvis called me this morning, saying the boys were feeling unwell, so I didn¡¯t get to tell ¡ª¡± ¡°Okay,¡± Lucian said curtly and strode to the car without waiting for the teacher to react. Property ? N?velDrama.Org. In the car, Este hugged her schoolbag and rested her head on it, her eyes downcast. She looked as if she was pondering something. Seeing Lucian entering the car, she scooted to the side without lifting her head, putting a distance between them. Lucian sat beside her and instructed the driver to drive. After that, he gave her a concerned look, asking, ¡°Can you tell me why you are angry today?¡± Este turned her head to one side upon hearing his voice, lookingpletely reluctant to Lucian understood the signs right away. I¡¯m the culprit for making her angry again. As for the reason, he had a rough guess, but he had no intentions of solving it at that moment unless Roxanne contacted him personally. Despite that, Este clearly wanted him to bring up the topic. She made some gestures during the journey home, wanting to attract his attention. However, Lucian feigned ignorance. Upon reaching home, a red-eyed Este shot him a re before storming back to her room and mming the door shut. She everflocked the door from the inside. Catalina, who was watching the pair¡¯s cold war from downstairs, cast Lucian a concerned gaze. ¡°Mr. Farwell, what¡¯s wrong with¡± ¡°Let her be.¡± Lucian knitted his brows. ¡°She¡¯ll be fine after a while.¡± Catalina had no choice but to ignore the matter. However, when it was time for dinner, Este still did not go downstairs. Catalina looked at Lucian, who sat at the dining table without digging in. She sighed inwardly and rushed upstairs to bring Este down. Unfortunately, no one came to open the door after she knocked on it for some time. ¡°Ms. Este, pleasee down to have¡ª¡±Before she could finish her words, a muffled sound could suddenly be heard. It sounded as if something had copsed to the floor. Catalina¡¯s heart sank. Just as she was about to go downstairs to get Lucian, she spun around and found him already standing behind her.. ¡°Mr. Farwell, you know what Ms. Este¡¯s character is like. She¡¯s always been unsociable, and she doesn¡¯t know how to speak. Please be more patient with her. How will things work out if you don¡¯t condition might worsen?¡± Catalina asked. The sound of something crashing onto the ground in the room made Catalina extremely ¨C anxious. She was so worried that her eyes reddened when she uttered thest sentence. Chapter 74 Chapter 74 Lucian frowned. He never thought the child would be so mad. After listening to Catalina, he nodded and went forward to knock on the door. ¡°Essie, open the door. Daddy wants to speak to you.¡± Belongs to (N)?vel/Drama.Org. When he finished, a muffled thump sounded on the door. Clearly, Este was throwing something against the door to show her rejection of him. Lucian froze momentarily. He spoke once again in a gentler tone. ¡°What do you want me to do? Can you open the door and tell me? We¡¯ll talk about it, okay?¡± A faint thump sounded on the door again. It was also Catalina¡¯s first time witnessing Este acting that way. The thought of thetter¡¯s condition caused a fear to rise in Catalina¡¯s heart. Worried that something might happen to Este, she said hurriedly, ¡°Mr. Farwell, I think we should just go in. I¡¯m worried Ms. Este might¡­¡± Lucian hesitated for a moment, but he nodded in agreement. Soon, Catalina brought a spare key, opened the door, and they entered the room. They were instantly taken aback by the mess inside. The dolls Este always treasured were scattered all over the floor. There were also a few exquisite- looking music boxes by the door, and two of them had cracks on them. Evidently, the items that were thrown at the door were the two music boxes. Among the mess was Este curled in the corner. She was staring nkly at the ground as tears streamed down her cheeks uncontrobly. Sitting beside her were two rtively ugly dolls the adults had never seen before. Noticing the adults entering her room, she backed away subconsciously and lowered her head to avoid meeting their gaze. Lucian¡¯s heart ached when he saw the state of the girl. Feeling regretful, he stepped forward, wanting to pull her into his embrace. Sensing that he was approaching her, Este raised her head immediately, her eyes filled with resistance. With her hands on the ground, she scurried backward frantically. Lucian paused when he saw her reactions. ¡°Don¡¯t¡­ be afraid. I know I was wrong.¡±Este did not seem to hear his words. Finally, she leaned against the wall and turned her body sideways to avoid his gaze. She hugged her knees and buried her head inside. The adults could not see her expression. All they saw were the heaving motioris of Este¡¯s body when she sobbed. Lucian fell silent instantly. Feeling heartbroken, Catalina stepped forward. ¡°Mr. Farwell, why don¡¯t I give it a go?¡± With that, she carefully approached Este and extended her arms toward the little girl. This time, Este did not avoid it. Catalina let out a sigh of relief and hugged Este gently, patting thetter on the back. ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Ms. Este? Can you tell me about it? Were you bullicd by your ssmates in school?¡± Este merely continued sobbing, showing no response whatsoever. Catalina had no choice but to coax Este in her embrace. ¡°Is it because the twins didn¡¯t go to school?¡± Lucian asked grimly. Este¡¯s eyes lit up a little, and she turned her head aside with a sob. Noticing her slight reaction, Catalina quickly hinted at Lucian with a look to console Este. a ¡¤ Lucian sighed. He did not expect Este to be so dependent on the twins. Could they be somewhat attracted to each other because they¡¯re siblings from another mother? ¡°Okay. I won¡¯t make them leave the kindergarten.¡± It was only then that Este looked at him, looking extremely aggrieved. His daughter¡¯s state left Lucian no choice but to give in. ¡°I promise you. I won¡¯t chase them away again.¡± Este still stared at him with a gaze filled with usations. Understanding the meaning of her gaze, Lucian said gently, ¡°They didn¡¯t go to school today because they took a sick leave. The teacher hasn¡¯t told them about their expulsion.¡± Chapter 75 Chapter 75 Este blinked, and her sobs reduced. Still in disbelief, she pursed her lips. She had heard Lucian talking to her teacher with her own cars, and the two boys were absent from kindergarten that day. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. How could there be such a coincidence? Lucian sensed her doubt, which made him feel even more helpless. ¡°There¡¯s no need for me to lie to you. They didn¡¯t go to school today because they were unwell. You¡¯ll see them tomorrow.¡± Este continued to purse her lips aggrievedly. Suspicion was written all over her face. Lucian was at a loss for what to do. ¡°How should I make you believe me?¡± Never did he expect Archie and Benny to have such an important ce in Este¡¯s heart. They were so important to the point that she did not believe his words.Este hesitated for a moment and let Catalina put her down. She then picked up a small notebook from the pile of mess and scribbled something while sobbing. Her squiggly writing read: Confirm! She wanted to hear the boys tell her that they were not expelled and that she would still see them in kindergarten in the future. Lucian understood what she meant. She wanted to go to Roxanne¡¯s house and confirm with the boys. The thought of it made his head hurt. Seeing there was no response from Lucian, Este pursed her lips and gripped her notebook tightly in her hands. She looked as if she was about to burst into tears again. When Lucian recalled how miserably Este had cried just now, he rxed his brows helplessly and said, ¡°Okay. I¡¯ll bring you to them now.¡± Este froze instantly, blinking to confirm what she had heard. Lucian nodded. She quickly turned around and packed her bag, then carried it on her back and walked toward him, still sniffling since she had cried too hard earlier. Lucian felt speechless when he saw how fast Este¡¯s attitude changed. Given no choice, he brought her out to look for Roxanne. Roxanne was having dinner with Archie and Benny when the doorbell rang. Thinking it was Madilyn Her eyes widened in disbelief when she saw the people at the door. ¡°Are you two¡­ Essie, are you here to y with Archie and Benny?¡± That was the only possibility she could think of. A tall and slender Lucian stood in front of the door, holding Este¡¯s hand. He was only dressed in a shirt with the sleeves slightly rolled up. Este lified her head. Roxanne could not help but wonder if it was the breeze that caused Este¡¯s eyes and nose to be red because thetter looked rather pitiful. When she saw that Roxanne had seen her, all the sadness Este had been feeling the entire night rose in her heart. She sniffed and pursed her lips, having the urge to cry again. Lucian noticed the change in his daughter¡¯s behavior. However, he did not know how to answer Roxanne¡¯s question. What am I supposed to say? My daughter got angry because I told the kindergarten to expel your sons? And now, she insists on confirming the reason for their absence? He did not find it necessary to bring it up again since he had already dismissed the idea. At that moment, the atmosphere at the door was rather awkward. Roxanne eyed the pair in front of her who did not seem to have any intentions of speaking. Feeling puzzled, she lowered her head to look at Este. ¡°Essie, is something the matter? It¡¯s quitete already.¡± Pursing her lips, Este nodded and broke free from Lucian¡¯s hand. He had no choice but to let her be. In the next second, tears rolled down Este¡¯s cheeks again, and she approached Roxanne, extending her arm. Este wanted a hug. Chapter 76 Chapter 76 At first, Roxanne was stunned by Este¡¯s actions. But after that, her heart ached for thetter. She instinctively lowered herself and pulled Este into her embrace, patting her on the back. Este tugged at the hem of Roxanne¡¯s clothes, sobbing uncontrobly. A look of helplessness shed past Lucian¡¯s eyes as he watched the scene before him. When we were at home a while ago, all Este did was avoid me. Now that Roxanne¡¯s here, this girl actually reached out without hesitation to ask for a hug. Are children naturally dependent on their mothers? ¡°Okay. Stop crying. Can you tell me what¡¯s wrong?¡± Roxanne consoled Este, feeling worried. Naturally, Este did not know how to speak. Finally, Lucian cleared his throat and said nonchntly, ¡°She went to kindergarten today and did not see your boys, so she thought they stopped going. She went home and cried the entire night, asking to girl is really clingy to my boys, eh? Realizing that, Roxanne said in a softer tone, ¡°There, there. Don¡¯t cry. The boys were having an upset stomach today, so I helped them to apply for a leave of absence. They¡¯ll be going back to school to y with you tomorrow.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. When she heard Roxanne saying the same words as Lucian, Este finally believed it. Slowly, she stopped sobbing and removed herself from Roxanne¡¯s embrace. And carefully, she peeped into the house, wanting to see the two boys. However, it was impossible to view the dining room from the entrance. When she did not see the twins, she started feeling uneasy again. Roxanne noticed Este¡¯s cautious looks, and her heart melted. Patting Este¡¯s head, she asked, ¡°Do you want to y with them? I can take you to them.¡± With that, she smiled and carried Este. Just as she was about to walk into the house, Este suddenly leaned back. It was at that moment Roxanne recalled that the man was still standing at the door. On top of that, he would not enter the house without her invitation. At that thought, she turned around to look at the man. As the night breeze blew, Lucian¡¯s shirt clung to his body, and he stared impassively at the girls. Looks like he was rushing to bring Essie here that he forgot to put on a coat. Thanks to Este, who was in her arms, Roxanne felt bad for him, and she said calmly, ¡°Have a seat inside, Mr. Farwell.¡± Lucian entered the house as soon as she spoke. The boys are having their dinner. Let me bring you over to them.¡± Roxanne walked slowly,forting Este along the way. Soon, three of them arrived in the dining room. Archie and Benny were enjoying their food when they saw them walking in. They swallowed the food in their mouths, a puzzled look on their faces. ¡°What is Essie doing here?¡± Roxanne ced Este between them and said softly, ¡°Essie got worried when both of you didn¡¯t go to kindergarten today. She cried, wanting to look for you. Go on. Talk to her.¡± As if to confirm Roxanne¡¯s words, Este inteced her fingers nervously on her dress and looked unblinkingly at Archie and Benny with herrge eyes. The tip of her nose was slightly pink, making her look like a doll. Archie and Benny exchanged gazes when they saw Este in such a state. They found her cute yet pitiful at the same time. ¡°We weren¡¯t feeling well this morning. We¡¯re much better now. Don¡¯t worry,¡± Archie reassured earnestly. Benny turned to Essie and made a face. ¡°Look at you, all scared like that. We¡¯re just taking a day off. Can¡¯t you be away from us for just a day? You little minion.¡± A sense of relief washed over Este when she heard their words, and she broke into a smile. Chapter 77 Chapter 77 Lucian, who was standing at the entrance of the dining room, looked conflicted when he saw Este finally smiling, It took me so long to coax hcr, yet it was nothingpared to the trio¡¯s words. Not only did she stop crying. she even smiled. After standing there for some time and watching the boys making Este grin from ear to car, he stepped into the room, wanting to take her home. They had onlye over because Este wanted to confirm things with her own eyes. Now that it was done, it was time for them to go home. As soon as he reached Este¡¯s side, he heard her stomach growl. Roxanne frowned. ¡°Have you not had dinner?¡± Este pursed her lips and nodded. Seeing that, Roxanne turned to look at Lucien with a reprimanding gaze. Lucian nced at her emotionlessly. ¡°I¡¯ve tried talking to her. She¡¯s been crying all night. She locked herself in the room as soon as she got back without eating or drinking anything. It was only when I promised to bring her here that she finally stopped. We didn¡¯t manage to have dinner yet.¡±Roxanne scanned his thin shirt and withdrew her gaze. At the side, Archie looked at Este concernedly. ¡°We¡¯ve just started eating. Do you want to join us?¡± Este¡¯s eyes lit up, and she nodded fervently. It was at that moment that she finally remembered to ask her father for permission Lucian hesitated for a few seconds and nced at Roxanne. ¡°If it¡¯s not too much of a trouble, could you prepare something for her?¡± ¡°Do you want to sit between the boys?¡± Roxanne suggested. Este beamed instantly. Archie and Benny quickly moved their chairs, making some space so Este could sit between them. Lucian frowned as he watched Este sit between the twins. From his point of view, they looked like a family, while he looked more like a stranger. After helping Este to settle down and serving her some food, Roxanne looked at the three children sitting side by side and was all smiles. However, the gaze of the man beside her sent chills down her spine. She stopped smiling and turned around to look at Lucian. As he met her gaze, Lucianposed himself and put on a calm expression. ¡°What about you?¡± Roxanne asked casually, repressing her feelings. Upon hearing that, Lucian put on a look of confusion. Roxanne averted her gaze and nced at the dishes on the table. ¡°Have you eaten?¡± If Essie made a fuss without having dinner, then he must¡¯ve been busy coaxing her the entire night. Stunned, Lucian stared at her for some time before narrowing his eyes indifferently. Sounding distant, he answered, ¡°I¡¯m fine. There¡¯s dinner at home. I¡¯ll just heat it up when I get back. It¡¯s just that Essie likes spending time with them. Sorry for troubling you. I¡¯ll just wait in the living room and not disturb you guys.¡± With that, he cast the three joyful children a final nce before walking out. When Roxanne heard his words and noticed he was about to leave on an empty stomach, she could not help but purse her lips. ¡°There¡¯s enough food for all of us. Besides, Essie will definitely ¡¤ feel uneasy if her daddy¡¯s not here.¡± Este lifted her head, her eyes filled with nervousness when she saw Lucian walking out. OU ness Without waiting for Lucian¡¯s reply, Roxanne served him a te of food and ced it on the table. ¡°Come and join us if you don¡¯t mind.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Archie frowned slightly at the scene, but he said nothing. Benny, on the other hand, continued eating while secretly ncing at the man in the distance, feeling excited. Chapter 78 Chapter 78 In the past, it had always been the three of them-Roxanne, Archie, Benny-having meals together, asionally with Madilyn joining in. However, it was a first for them to have their meal with Lucian. At that moment, various emotions rose in Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s hearts. Lucian stopped in his tracks and turned around to meet Este¡¯s glistening eyes. He then shifted his gaze to the seat beside them, which had utensils ced on the table near it. His eyes immediately glinted with emotion. As the matter of fact, the four of them were indeed a family. It would seem odd if he were to sit there. Though that thought passed through his mind, he had already taken his seat by the table before even realizing it. For some reason, the atmosphere that was originally jolly had be tense. He could not help but wonder if he was the reason for the change. Archie and Benny fell silent and lowered their heads to eat their food. Since the boys were not talking to her anymore, Este lost her appetite. She held her utensils and took tiny bites out of her food. ¡°Essie, is there something you dislike?¡± Roxanne asked gently, noticing the change in her behavior.Hearing that, Este hurriedly shook her head. She liked everything Roxanne made. She just wasn¡¯t in the mood to eat. Benny knew Este could not talk. Thus, he put down his utensils and answered on her behalf, ¡°Essie is just like us. She doesn¡¯t like carrots and peppers. She always picks these out in the kindergarten.¡± Roxanne smiled kindly. ¡°I¡¯ll help you pick them out, okay?¡± A smile reappeared on Este¡¯s face, and she nodded obediently. Seeing her response, Roxanne walked over to Este, picked out the carrots and peppers from the Just as Este was about to continue eating, something tugged the back of her hand, which made her tear up in pain. She stopped moving her arm. lifted her head, and looked at Roxanne pilluny for help. Noticing the expression on Este¡¯s face, Roxanne put down her utensils right away. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Este bit her lip, trying her best to stop herself from crying as she turned over her hand to let Roxanne examine it. Everyone was stunned as soon as they saw the back of her hand. Este had extremely fair skin. As the light shone on the back of her hand, a horrifying red mark could be seen visibly. Roxanne frowned and asked worriedly, ¡°What happened?¡± Este bit her lip without saying anything. Roxanne had no choice but to nce at Lucian, who was sitting beside her. Lucian felt a pang of guilt when he met her questioning gaze. Despite that, he looked as calm as ever. ¡°Did you hurt yourself when you were throwing things just now?¡± The worry in Roxanne¡¯s eyes intensified. ¡°Throwing things?¡± Lucian said, ¡°Essie doesn¡¯t know how to vent her emotions. Sometimes, when she gets really angry, she¡¯ll throw things to vent it out.¡± He could not bring himself to utter the word ¡°autism.¡± On top of that, he did not know what her reaction would be once she found out about it. Surprise shed through Roxanne¡¯s eyes as she turned to look at Este to confirm the fact. ¡°Did you hurt yourself?¡± Este hesitated momentarily before nodding gently. lomer re 1 Seeing her admitting to it, Lucian frowned. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell me?¡± vn Este shuddered and inched closer to Roxanne, feeling frightened. Roxanne cast Lucian another displeased nce when she saw Este¡¯s reaction. a sne saw The kid¡¯s injured. How could he still speak to her in such a tone? ¡°Does it hurt a lot?¡± Retracting her gaze, Roxanne held Este¡¯s hand and massaged it gently. Este pursed her lips and nodded. ¡°You¡¯ll be fine. I¡¯ll help you to apply medicine. It won¡¯t hurt in a while.¡± Roxanne gently released Este¡¯s hand and instructed her boys, ¡°Keep herpany. I¡¯ll get the medical kit.¡± The boys nodded immediately and started taking turns telling Este some interesting things..Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Chapter 79 Chapter 79 Soon. Roxanne returned with the medical kit, and she carefully applied some medicinal cream onto Este¡¯s hand. Este was well-behaved throughout the entire process. When it hurt, she would only shrink away a little and would quickly ce her hand back. It made Roxanne¡¯s heart melt incredibly. After applying the medicine to Este¡¯s hand, Roxanne immediately upied the seat beside her. Archie gave up his seat obediently and carried his te to sit beside Lucian. NA ¡°Is it okay if I feed you?¡± Roxanne asked Este for her permission. une Naturally, Este would not reject it. She nodded with a look of anticipation.Roxanne picked up Este¡¯s te with a smile and started feeding her. With Roxanne feeding her, Este¡¯s appetite improved tremendously. She fixed her eyes on Roxanne, opening her mouth to eat anything she fed. Roxanne¡¯s smile grew wider when she saw how well-behaved Este was while eating. Lucian watched their interaction from the opposite end. Every time Este¡¯s lips were stained, Roxanne would help her wipe them right away. Even her feeding speed was just right. Este¡¯s eyes crinkled as she ate. For a moment, a mix of emotions shed through Lucian¡¯s eyes. Meanwhile, Archie and Benny had been watching everything in silence. They merely thought that Este looked cute when she ate instead of feeling jealous of her. When they looked away from her, they nced at Lucian at the same time. The next second, they exchanged suspicious nces with each other. If we¡¯re not mistaken, Daddy has been staring at Mommy. Besides, there doesn¡¯t seem to be any hate in his gaze. Instead, it looks a little¡­ affectionate. Archie frowned and put down his fork. He picked up thedle by the side and served Lucian some food while looking at him innocently. ¡°Mr. Farwell, why aren¡¯t you eating? Do eat more!¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Hearing that, Lucian snapped back to his senses and thanked Archie subconsciously, ¡°Thanks. As soon as he said that and saw the vegetable on his te, his gaze darkened. Coincidentally, the vegetable Archie chose was celery. Lucian looked up and scanned the dishes on the table to find the te of celery ced quite far from Archie¡¯s reach. It looked as if thetter had served him celery on purpose. When Archie finished his words, he buried his head in his te and eyed Lucian from the corner of his eye. He remembered that celery was the vegetable Lucian hated the most thest time he and Benny looked into his background. I don¡¯t know why he abandoned Mommy in the past and was looking at her with such a gaze just now. But since he abandoned Mommy, he must be punished. This bit of celery is nothing. Lucian picked up his fork, looking meaningfully at the boy who served him the vegetable. Sensing his gaze, Archie lifted his head and met Lucian¡¯s gaze fearlessly. Lucian raised his brow. For some reason, he sensed that Archie was challenging him. However, Lucian could not figure out what was the reason for the challenge. Thus, he did not think much about it., ¡°Do you dislike celery, Mr. Farwell?¡± Archie looked at Lucian innocently. His words seemed to be urging thetter. ¡¤ Lucian smiled and replied, ¡°No.¡± With that, he put the celery into his mouth impassively. From a certain angle, Archie could not see the look of disgust that shed through Lucian¡¯s eyes as he swallowed the celery. Roxanne watched the man put the celery into his mouth. It was toote when he turned away; she saw the look of disgust in his eyes. Suddenly, she felt as if she had returned to the days six years ago. ¡°You can put it aside if you don¡¯t want to eat it.¡± Roxanne retracted her gaze and lowered her eyes to conceal her emotions. The man¡¯s calm voice rang out. ¡°I didn¡¯t say I¡¯m not eating it.¡± A mix of emotions swirled within Roxanne, and she kept silent. Chapter 80 Chapter 80 Benny¡¯s eves brightened. Emboldened by Lucian¡¯s eptance of Archie¡¯s gesture, he tentatively attempted the same. Taking the plunge, he ced a roast potato on the man¡¯s te and stared at him expectantly. The boy¡¯s thoughtful gesture stunned Lucian, as he thought the former wouldplicate things for him. He offered a grateful smile upon regaining hisposure. ¡°Thank you. Have some more potatoes yourself.¡± As he spoke, Lucian reciprocated the gesture. Having remembered the vegetables the boy mentioned not liking earlier, he deliberately avoided those. Benny¡¯s eyes widened in surprise. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell! I will!¡± O Daddy gave me food! ve Meanwhile, Archie pouted in disdain as he observed their interaction.Benny is such an idiot. He can¡¯t even see such an obvious ploy of Daddy currying his favor! I won¡¯t be that easily fooled! The rest of dinner passed with that strange atmosphere hanging over them. Roxanne got up to clear the table when they finished. Lucian silently helped her put the silverware back in the kitchen drawer out of politeness. Upon O W IS UNS Though it stood to reason that he should return with Este, he thought it would seem inappropriate to just leave after putting Roxanne through the trouble of hosting dinner. ¡°I can manage on my own,¡± Roxanne asserted when she noticed his difort. ¡°Could you keep an eye on the children?¡± Lucian nodded and headed to the living room. Este was working with the boys on the final stages of a Lego project they had been working on together. Having already assembled a section, the children were struggling with the height of where it was supposed to be attached. Roxanne was usually close by to lend a hand after the preliminary assembly waspleted on the ground. As she was busy with the dishes at that moment, the children stood around, figuring out how to circumvent that obstacle. After a nce around, Archie decided to bring a chair from the dining table. ¡°Here, let me.¡± Taking pity on the children, Lucian softened his expression to the best of his Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. ability and offered Archie a hand. Archie hesitated for several seconds before handing the assembled part in his hands to the man Following Archie¡¯s instructions, Lucian took it and snapped it in ce. ¡°Thank you,¡± Archie said gruffly. Lucian nodded nomittally. With one hand in his pocket, he mostly watched the three children amuse themselves with the toy bricks and asionally lent a hand with the assembly. In the kitchen, Roxanne was distracted. Instead of the chore at hand, her attention was stubbornly fixed on the group in her living room. She was beginning to regret allowing Lucian to stay after dinner. Archie and Benny had already revealed too much when they confronted Lucian thest time, so Roxanne felt deeply uneasy about them being alone together. The way they got along, especially, bothered her a lot. She was even more afraid that the boys would say something they were not supposed to. If Lucian finds out that the boys are his¡­ ¡¤ Roxanne felt a panic rising in her chest at that very thought. She could not guarantee that Lucian would not take them away from her. Given her current status, it would be easy for him to rob her of her sons. She could not imagine how she would feel then. It was hard enough to conceive of a future without the two boys. Roxanne began to feel truly frightened. The bowl slipped through her fingers and fell to the ground before she could react. The crisp sound of shattering ss shook her out of her reverie. Startled, the four in the living room looked toward the kitchen as one. Chapter 81 Chapter 81 The three children exchanged nces before putting the Lego pieces down in an unspoken agreement and running into the kitchen. ¡°What happened, Mommy?¡± Archie and Benny asked in concern. Their voices roused Roxanne out of her trance. She felt even more uneasy at the sight of her sons before her. Barely able to suppress her fears, she shook her head and mustered a smile. ¡°It¡¯s nothing,¡± she said. ¡°The bowl must have slipped out of my hand. Don¡¯te in. There are broken pieces everywhere.¡± With that, she squatted down as if nothing had happened to pick up the pieces, still distracted as she did so. Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened from behind the three children as he studied the woman on her knees. I could be imagining it, but this woman does seem to have a lot on her mind. Roxanne lowered her head. The man¡¯s intense gaze upon her disconcerted her further. In a momentarypse of vignce, her fingers closed around a particrly sharp corner of a shard. A tingling pain erupting from her fingertips snapped her back to her senses, and she gave an involuntary gasp of pain. ¡°Mommy!¡±¡°Ms. Jarvis!¡± The children cried out anxiously as blood dripped from Roxanne¡¯s finger. V Archie and Benny were about to dash into the kitchen when a tall figure suddenly stopped in front of them. A momentter, they watched Lucian squat beside their mother to hold her wrist in hisrge hand with a cold expression on his face. Archie and Benny froze in their tracks. ¡°What were you thinking?¡± he asked with irritation. Roxanne stared nkly at the vast hand on hers. She was at a loss for words. Lucian wrapped his arms around her waist and lifted her to her feet in an instant. Roxanne was already standing by the sink when she regained her senses. Looking ill-tempered, Lucian turned on the faucet and dragged her wrist under the stream of water. ¡°Wait outside,¡± Lucian ordered, turning his attention to the three children by the door. ¡°Do note in.¡± Though the children were worried about Roxanne, they nodded when they saw that she was in good hands. Upon being satisfied that the wound on the woman¡¯s hand was clean enough, Lucian took out a clean handkerchief from his pocket and wrapped it around her injured finger to stem the bleeding ¡°Thank you.¡± By that point, Roxanne had regained sufficient control of her faculties. She tried to jerk her hand out of his while avoiding his gaze. ¡°I can finish up on my own.¡± The man frowned and tightened his grip. Roxanne felt annoyed at his refusal to let go. He has a child with another woman. Essie is watching us right now. Distinctly aware of Este¡¯s eyes on them, Roxanne tried her best to distance herself from Lucian. He has no cause to care for me to this extent. He only has hatred toward me, anyway. Grimacing at the reminder, Roxanne gazed at him with in refusal for his help. Lucian pretended not to have noticed her resistance. ¡°I¡¯m going to dress your wound,¡± he announced solemnly. Without another word, he led her out by her hand. Roxanne gritted her teeth in consternation. ¡°Please don¡¯t trouble yourself. It¡¯ste enough as it is; you should take Essie home. I can manage on my own.¡± Lucian froze in his tracks at her words. Roxanne noticed a vague dissatisfaction emanating out of him that disappeared without a trace by the next second. ¡°How will you dress your wound when your right hand is the injured one?¡± Lucian suppressed his N?velDrama.Org ? content. annoyance and dragged her out without paying her protests any heed. The three children followed them eagerly. Roxanne did not struggle anymore under their concerned gazes. Instead, she resigned herself to her fate. This man is too domineering. Chapter 82 Chapter 82 When they arrived in the living room, Roxanne was forced to sit on the couch. The children flocked around her as they stared with concern at her finger wrapped in a handkerchief while Lucian rummaged unsessfully through the living room to locate the medical kit. In the end, Archie was the one to jump off the couch to produce the medical kit from the TV cab. Lucian patted the boy¡¯s head in gratitude and stood next to Roxanne with the kit now in his hand. nne The children hurriedly stepped aside. Lucian sat down beside Roxanne. Though his face did not betray a hint of his thoughts and his presence caused a perceptible shudder in her, his movements seemed gentler than usual. Roxanne watched him work for several seconds before beingpelled to look away. She willed herself to keep her gaze on the floor. Looking any longer would create unnecessary misunderstandings. The man obviously hates me. Why is he so caring all of a sudden? After having iodine applied to her cut, Lucian produced another Band-Aid and wrapped it around her wound.Roxanne sighed in secret relief when he finally let go of her hand. She leaped up as soon as she could ce some distance between them. ¡°Thank you, and sorry again for troubling you.¡± The man frowned slightly at her words but did not respond. n wa Roxanne nced at the mess on the kitchen floor and made to get up. messo ¡°What are you doing?¡± The sullen voice sounded again. Roxanne froze. ¡°The floor needs cleaning up,¡± she said. ¡°The children might step on the shards.¡± Lucian¡¯s scowl deepened. Despite this woman¡¯s ster credentials, she can¡¯t even take care of herself! N?velDrama.Org ? content. Roxanne grew anxious at the man¡¯s gloomy expression, not knowing what she had done wrong this time. Could it be because of the trouble she had caused him earlier? ISA After careful consideration, Roxanne was about to apologize when he spoke again. ¡°You can¡¯t get your bandage wet. Let me find you a housekeeper.¡± Without giving her a chance to respond, Lucian gave his assistant a call. After his dinner, Cayden was about to wash up and tuck in when he suddenly received a call from his employer. He picked up the phone nervously. ¡°Find me housekeeper and deliver them to No. 32 of Durwest Garden within half an hour* Cayden was stunned. Before he managed to formte his question, the other had already hung up. After gazing at his darkened screen in confusion for several seconds, Cayden contacted a housekeepingpany and personally escorted the housekeeper to the address as instructed by Lucian. ¡°They¡¯re on their way,¡± Lucian informed Roxanne in a low voice after hanging up. Roxanne¡¯s protests ceased as he had already found a housekeeper. She seated herself some distance away from him. The three children sat between the two adults and exchanged nces in silence. The atmosphere in the living room was stiff. Nearly twenty minutester, the doorbell was a relief as it broke the ufortable silence in the living room. ¡¤ Roxanne was about to get up to answer the door, but Lucian arrived first. ¡°Mr. Farwell.¡± Cayden stood on the other end with a middle-aged woman with short hair. Lucian stood sideways as he beckoned them in. The housekeeper cleaned the kitchen with surprising efficiency while striking up an animated conversation with the three children as she worked. CO She amused the children so much they could not stopughing. After seeing how fond the children were of the housekeeper, Roxanne was struck with an idea. She decided to take the initiative to ask, ¡°Excuse me. I¡¯d like to ask if you would consider working here full time. Your main duties will be caring for the children with some housekeeping now and then. I¡¯ll leave the sry to you.¡± The woman readily agreed, ¡°I would love to; I happen to like children. You can call me Lysa.¡± Chapter 83 Chapter 83 Roxanne breathed a sigh of relief at how little effort it took. Having expected to go to further lengths than that for a suitable nanny, she was surprised to find such a promising candidate so easily. ¡°Come over tomorrow morning,¡± Roxanne proposed after a brief discussion regarding Lysa¡¯s sry range. ¡°I will draw up the contract by then. You can sign it if everything is in order.¡± Lysa nodded in response. After bidding the others farewell, she departed with her tools and left the few of them in the living room once again. Though Roxanne¡¯s mood improved after the chat with Lysa, her stiff formality returned when she turned to Lucian. ¡°I¡¯m sorry for the trouble of bandaging my wound and finding me a housekeeper. I owe you one.¡± A strange glint flitted across Lucian¡¯s deep eyes. He quickly suppressed the arising feeling and responded with a simr detachment, ¡°Don¡¯t mention it. Essie and I were the ones to trouble you in the first ce. Consider these trivial matters a token of my gratitude.¡±Este nodded in vigorous agreement with her father¡¯s words. She even ran over to grab Roxanne¡¯s wrist and stared at her bandaged finger for a long time. Roxanne smiled as she stroked the little girl¡¯s head. ¡°It¡¯s all right. Don¡¯t worry. It doesn¡¯t hurt at all.¡± Este blinked as she touched Roxanne¡¯s fingers delicately. Upon ascertaining that there was indeed no problem, she looked up and gave thetter a sweet smile. Roxanne¡¯s heart softened at the child¡¯s tenderness. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. We have intruded upon your kind hospitality long enough.¡± Lucian cleared his throat as he lowered his gaze to Este. ¡°Say goodbye to Ms. Jarvis and the boys, Essie.¡± Looking as if she did not want to, Este waved to the boys obediently at the prospect of seeing them the following day. The two boys reciprocated her smile and waved. ¡°Wait for us at the kindergarten tomorrow!¡± Essie nodded vigorously. Lucian took the little girl¡¯s hand and, with a final goodbye to the three, turned to leave. It was only when she watched his car disappear out of the driveway that Roxanne rxedpletely. i ne two boys seemed reluctant to part with their guests as they stared into the distance for a long time without taking their eyes off the spot Lucian¡¯s car had disappeared. Roxanne thought they missed Este. ¡°Come on, boys. Let¡¯s go inside,¡± she said softly. ¡°You¡¯ll see Essie tomorrow.¡± The two boys looked away slowly and followed her back to the mansion. After shutting the door, Roxanne bent down to look solemnly into the eyes of her two sons. ¡°I have something to tell you boys.¡± Archie and Benny were puzzled at the sight of her seriousness. ¡°If Essie¡¯s father ever asks how old you are, you are to tell him that you¡¯re one year younger than her. Do you understand?¡± The boys understood at once, yet they pretended not to. ¡°Why?¡± they demanded. Roxanne hesitated, at a loss for an exnation, before sighing helplessly. ¡°There is no reason. Just do as I say, please?¡± N?velDrama.Org ? content. The boys exchanged another nce before nodding slowly. Archie did not betray a hint of emotion. His brother, however, looked confused. It¡¯s clear why Mommy wants us to tell Daddy that we are one year younger than Essie. It¡¯s to make it impossible for him to find out that we are his. What happened between Mommy and Daddy? He was kind to her, wasn¡¯t he? Why doesn¡¯t Mommy want him to know that we are his children? Chapter 84 Chapter 84 It was nearly ten when Lucian arrived home with Este. The butler was already waiting at the door. ¡°Ms. Pearson is waiting for you inside, Mr. Farwell.¡± Lucian¡¯s brows furrowed at the news. With a nod at the butler, he strode in with Este. ¡°You¡¯re home!¡± Aubree, seated on the couch, leaped to her feet when she saw them crossing the threshold. She bent down and tried to touch Este¡¯s head, which thetter did her best to avoid. Aubree¡¯s eyes shed with displeasure, which she quickly hid by straightening up with a smile.¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Lucian studied her intently. His tone remained indifferent. Aubree gave him a casual smile. ¡°I want to thank you again for lending us someone today. You helped us out of a jam there, and Dad had mee over to offer our gratitude personally.¡± She was going to add something else after a brief pause, but Lucian cut her off, ¡°Is the matter resolved?¡± Aubree was momentarily dumbfounded by his bluntness. She nodded with a smile that now seemed rather forced. ¡°Well, the little trouble we had kept us busy until the afternoon. I hope it didn¡¯t interfere with your business.¡± Lucian nodded. ¡°There are plenty of employees in Farwell Group, and the absence of one wouldn¡¯t make a difference. There¡¯s no need to thank me.¡± Without waiting for her response, he strode past her with Este. Aubree¡¯s features contorted with fury, but they softened again when she regained her senses a few momentster. ¡°Nevertheless, you have helped me resolve something huge. I didn¡¯t know what to get you, so I brought a little present for Este instead. Don¡¯t worry. I didn¡¯t spend a fortune. Think of it as a token of my appreciation.¡± As she spoke, she took out a limited edition doll from the bag on the couch. Its delicate packaging caused Lucian to recognize it as one in a set that Este had in her room. Aware that his daughter loved those dolls, he stopped to see if she wanted to ept the gift. Unexpectedly, Essie did not even look up. Instead, she tightened her grip on her father¡¯s hand and edged closer to him. Lucian understood at once. He met Aubree¡¯s eves to decline her gift. ¡°Thank you for the doll, but she already has this one. Besides, she¡¯s thrown a tantrum at me earlier. Forgive us for not being in the mood to entertain.¡± Aubree¡¯s expression was a little stiff. She put away her things with a smile that looked more like a grimace before looking at Este with concern. ¡°What is she angry about this time?¡± Having hit multiple dead ends in trying to interact with the girl before, Aubree did not try very hard this time for fear that Lucian would see through her falsities. Instead, she directed her question toward him. ¡°Oh, something small,¡± Lucian said curtly before looking away, inly not intending to divulge specific Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. details. Maybe he thinks it¡¯s not my ce to be privy to such matters. Aubree¡¯s hand holding the gift bag clenched into a fist. Her nails sank deep into her flesh as she forced a smile. ¡°Is that so? Did you return thiste because you took her for a fun night out?¡± Lucian frowned. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte. You should leave if there isn¡¯t anything else I can do for you. Essie needs her sleep.¡± Aubree opened her mouth again, but no excuse came to her lips. She could only watch Lucian lead Este past her as they made their way upstairs. Aubree appeared unmistakably grim as she exited the mansion. Her bodyguard, also her driver, noticed her expression and decided to tread lightly. ¡°Do you wish to return home, Ms. Pearson?¡± Aubree red at him. ¡°I want you to find out where Lucian was tonight with that little b*tch of his!¡± The bodyguard shuddered before obliging her hastily. Chapter 85 Chapter 85 The following morning, Aubree was having breakfast when her bodyguard called. ¡°Ms. Pearson, I¡¯ve checked it out. Last night, Mr. Farwell took Ms. Este to a woman surnamed Jarvis. They stayed at her ce for almost three hours before leaving¡ª¡± s, before the bodyguard could finish his sentence, the beeping of a disconnected call rang out from the other end. There was no doubt in Aubree¡¯s mind that the woman in question was Roxanne Jarvis. The more she pictured Lucian and Roxanne spending time together, the more her face twisted with anger. What could they have done in that three hours? I can¡¯t believe they had Este with them too! A fresh swell of rage rose in Aubree as she stood up and flung her phone away, her eyes full of crazed fury. Samuel, who was eating his breakfast opposite her, looked up with a frown when he heard the To his surprise, he saw his daughter standing menacingly by the table while her phoney on the floor, smashed to smithereens.¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± Samuel asked sternly after setting his cutlery down. Aubree met her father¡¯s gaze and gritted her teeth. ¡°Roxanne Jarvis is back, and Lucian has been keeping his distance from me recently! I think he has ns to reconcile with her!¡± she grumbled, sounding somewhat pitiful toward the end. Samuel¡¯s gaze darkened instantly. ¡°Do Elias and Sonya know about this?¡± As far as he knew, Roxanne had run off without saying goodbye back then, leaving only a divorce agreement behind. For that reason, Elias and Sonya strongly resented her. Now that Roxanne had shamelessly returned to their son, one could only imagine how they¡¯d react if they found out about it. Upon hearing her father¡¯s words, Aubree¡¯s brow twitched as a thought shed through her mind. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. ¡® ¡°Find an opportunity to inform the Farwells about that woman¡¯s return,¡± Samuel suggested, which helped to affirm Aubree¡¯s idea. ¡°I¡¯m sure they¡¯re very unhappy with her.¡± With that, Aubree nodded and slowly went back to her seat. W Seeing that his daughter had calmed down, Samuel knitted his brows and advised earnestly, . ¡°That woman has only juste back, so we can¡¯t be sure what intentions Lucian has toward her. Don¡¯t get yourself all worked up over nothing. Besides, Elias and Sonya know how loyal you¡¯ve been to their son and how much you¡¯ve done for him. Even if that womanes into the picture, they¡¯d still be on your side. You have nothing to fear.¡± After hearing Samuel¡¯s reassuring words, Aubree felt a lot more at ease and visibly regained her Meanwhile, Roxanne had finished her breakfast and sent Archie and Benny to the kindergarten. When the teacher, Pippa Ward, saw the three of them, a concerned look crept across her face. ¡°How are Archie and Benny? Are they feeling better?¡± Roxanne smiled and nodded. ¡°Yes, they¡¯ve recovered. Thanks for your concern.¡± The two boys looked up at Pippa and greeted her politely, ¡°Good morning, Ms. Ward!¡± Naturally, Pippa¡¯s eyes filled with adoration at how well-behaved and sensible the kids were. Amid their conversation, the sound of a car door opening and closing suddenly rang out. Everyone instantly turned to look, only to see a Bentley parked conspicuously on the street. Lucian had stepped out of the car and scooped Este from the backseat into his arms. car ms. Even though he wanted to carry her to the entrance, Este struggled to get down as soon as she saw Roxanne and her sons. Thankfully, Lucian wasn¡¯t insistent and put his daughter down on the ground as she wanted. However, just as he was about to reach for Este¡¯s hand, he realized she had already scampered away. For a moment, Lucian was stunned as he subconsciously turned to look behind him. mer To his surprise, he saw Roxanne and the rest smiling fondly at Este, with the former even walking toward the little girl. Chapter 86 Chapter 86 It was a rare sight as Este ran toward the school¡¯s entrance while waving wordlessly at Roxanne and the boys. Seeing that the little girl was too caught up in the excitement to care about road safety, Roxanne quickly rushed over to hold her hand. When she saw Lucian walking calmly toward them, she couldn¡¯t help but feel a sense of helplessness. Este grinned from ear to ear as she held Roxanne¡¯s hand. Once they stopped walking, she even hugged thetter¡¯s leg affectionately. Archie and Benny weren¡¯t jealous either and greeted Este with big, friendly smiles. When Lucian finally came to stand beside them, Benny boldly tugged at his suit sleeve. Puzzled, the man lowered his head to look at the boy. ¡°Good morning, Mr. Farwell!¡± Benny eximed, shing an innocent grin. Lucian raised his eyebrows slightly, but his surprise soon turned to gentleness. ¡°Oh, good morning to you too.¡± Having gotten his father¡¯s reply, Benny smiled even brighter.Archie, however, merely pursed his lips and gave Lucian a nod. Of course, Lucian returned the greeting in the same manner. Upon seeing how close the two families seemed, Pippa mused, ¡°Wow, Ms. Jarvis, I suppose you must be on excellent terms with Este. That¡¯s pretty rare, you know? I¡¯ve taught her for so long, yet she¡¯s never been this clingy with me.¡± Roxanne nced at the little girl holding her leg and simply answered with a chuckle. Este refused to leave Roxanne¡¯s side, but that didn¡¯t matter since it was still early, and not many children had arrived at the kindergarten. Thus, Roxanne and the kids decided to remain standing at the door to chat with Pippa. Fortunately, Lucian had called the kindergarten head the night before to scrap the twins¡¯ expulsion, so Pippa never once mentioned how close Archie and Benny had been to getting kicked out of school. Naturally, Roxanne continued to be kept in the dark. After the three kids held hands and walked into school together, Roxanne turned around to prepare to leave. s, she felt her heart skip a beat when she identally met Lucian¡¯s gaze. She had been chatting with Pippa for so long that she almost forgot that Lucian was standing quietly behind her. *If there¡¯s nothing else, I¡¯ll be off to work, Mr. Farwell,¡± Roxanne uttered, striding off before Lucian could even say anything. As he watched her retreating figure, Lucian¡¯s gaze darkened. The sight of Roxanne and the three kids chatting with Pippa earlier had left him in a daze. To him, it felt as though they were a family. Only after Roxanne had sped off in her car did Lucian finally gather his thoughts and walk to his Bentley After leaving the kindergarten, Roxanne made a beeline for the research institute. Thanks to the Queen family¡¯s supply of herbs, the once-stagnant research gradually got back on track and continued to progress smoothly. Roxanne kept herself busy the entire morning, and by the time Jonathan called, it was already noon. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, what time will you be dropping by this afternoon? I¡¯ll wait for you at home.¡± Hearing that, Roxanne suddenly recalled her appointment with Alfred for his treatment. Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Oh my gosh. I¡¯ve been so busy this morning that if it weren¡¯t for Jonathan¡¯s reminder, I¡¯d have forgotten something as important as this. Snapping herself out of it, Roxanne nced at the work she had left and gave Jonathan a time. Despite that, she made it a point to arrive earlier before her appointment that afternoon. §Ñ§ã§é§Ú The Queens¡¯ butler was already acquainted with Roxanne and knew her treatment was working wonders for Alfred¡¯s health. As such, his attitude toward her underwent a one-eighty, and he now treated her with the utmost respect. Roxanne had only just stepped into the house when her brows furrowed at the person sitting on the couch. ¡°We meet again, Ms. Jarvis,¡± Aubree piped up. Even though she was wearing a smile, there was no hiding the cold glint in her eyes. Chapter 87 Chapter 87 Roxanne quicklyposed herself and shifted her gaze from Aubree to Jonathan. Sharp-eyed as usual, it didn¡¯t take long for Jonathan to notice the awkwardness between the two women. He casually approached Roxanne, making sure to block Aubree¡¯s line of sight as he did. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, my grandfather is already waiting for you upstairs. Shall we go up now?¡± Roxanne nodded. With that, Jonathan turned to Aubree to excuse himself and began walking toward the stairs with Roxanne in tow. As soon as the two of them got to the stairway, Aubree spoke up again. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, I heard that your course of treatment has helped Old Mr. Queen a lot. I think I shall use this chance to visit him and see you work your magic.¡± Right after saying that, Aubree followed behind them.Roxanne knitted her brows, clearly displeased. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. However, since Jonathan didn¡¯t object to it, she had no choice but to pretend that Aubree didn¡¯t exist. Under Roxanne¡¯s treatment, Alfred had recovered a fair bit, so much so that he was well enough to move back into his bedroom. When they got to his room, they found Alfred propped up in bed and looking like he was in good spirits. ¡°Grandpa, Dr. Jarvis is here,¡± Jonathan announced as he led Roxanne to the bed. After hearing that, Alfred peered at Roxanne with a grateful smile. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, thank you so much for treating me. If it weren¡¯t for you, I wouldn¡¯t still be alive today.¡± Alfred had seen Roxanne during the previous treatments, but he had been so weak that he could barely talk. Now that he had recuperated for a couple of days, he finally found the energy to thank the ¡°Don¡¯t mention it, Old Mr. Queen,¡± Roxanne replied with a polite smile. ¡°After all, I¡¯m a doctor, and you¡¯re my patient. I feel just as happy and aplished to see you on the road to recovery.¡± Without further ado, she sat by the bed and began sterilizing her tools. Seeing how focused she was, Alfred¡¯s appreciation for her instantly grew beyond words. Of course, Aubree was upset at Alfred¡¯s reaction and quickly walked up to him to block his view of Roxanne. ¡°Hello, Old Mr. Queen.¡± Alfred finally noticed Aubree¡¯s presence and nodded at her. ¡°Oh, Aubree, you¡¯re here too.¡± ¡°When I heard that you¡¯ve woken up, I really wanted to visit you sooner,¡± Aubree said as she sat beside Alfred. ¡°But I¡¯ve been so busy at work that I couldn¡¯t find the time to drop by. Thankfully, I managed to free up my schedule today, so I rushed here immediately.¡± ¡®The next second. Aubree nced at Roxanne and added, ¡°Lucian was supposed toe too, but he¡¯s swamped with work and told me to send you his regards. We¡¯re all just relieved to know that you¡¯ve gotten better.¡± Alfred beamed with gratitude. ¡°You and Lucian are good kids. You¡¯re both busy with work, yet you still put in so much effort to find me a doctor.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need to stand on ceremony with us, Old Mr. Queen,¡± Aubree lightly chided. ¡°You¡¯re like a grandfather to Lucian and me. It¡¯s only right that we do everything we can for you.¡± Even as she was talking, Aubree¡¯s gaze lingered on Roxanne, her eyes full of pride and conceit. It was evident from the conversation that Alfred had already regarded Aubree and Lucian as a family. Rationally speaking, Roxanne knew their rtionship had nothing to do with her. However, for some inexplicable reason, she just couldn¡¯t shrug off the strange feeling inside her. After sterilizing all her tools, Roxanne tamped down her emotions and walked toward Alfred and Aubree. ¡°Please step aside, Ms. Pearson. I¡¯m going to start the treatment now.¡± Aubree was still happily chatting away with Alfred when Roxanne¡¯s voice had thetter turning his attention back to her. Left with no other choice, Aubree slowly put her smile away and stepped back with her teeth gritted. Chapter 88 Chapter 88 By the time the treatment was over, Frieda had also returned home. Upon finding out from the butler that Roxanne was treating Alfred, she made a beeline for thetter¡¯s bedroom. ¡°Grandpa, how are you feeling?¡± Frieda asked concernedly the moment she stepped into the room. Alfred nodded slightly. ¡°Much better.¡± Having lived for so long, he had gained an understanding of how traditional medicine worked and had also consulted countless famous doctors. Roxanne, however, hade as a delightful surprise to him.After each course of her treatment, Alfred would always feel a significant improvement in his health, which was something that not even the best doctors in the world could achieve. ASS Frieda looked her grandfather over and finally nodded with a smile. ¡°That¡¯s good to hear.¡± Then, she turned to Aubree and added, ¡°Have youe to visit Grandpa too, Aubree? Since it¡¯s gettingte, why don¡¯t you stay for dinner?¡± Naturally, Aubree had no objections to that and grinned broadly. ¡°In that case, don¡¯t mind if I stay and bother you, Old Mr. Queen.¡± Alfred merely chuckled and nodded. Now that Frieda was home, Roxanne hastened her packing, not wanting to stay and interact with the Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. women any further. Just then, Alfred smiled and turned to her. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, why don¡¯t you stay for dinner too? I could use this opportunity to thank you properly.¡± Roxanne froze momentarily and was racking her brain for an excuse when Alfred continued, ¡°Invite Lucian over too. It¡¯d be great to gather everyone for a hearty meal. We can treat it as a celebration of my recovery, can¡¯t we? Besides, it¡¯s been a while since I had any fun.¡± Needless to say, Jonathan eded to his grandfather¡¯s request and immediately left the room to call Lucian. That, however, made Roxanne¡¯s heart skip a beat. After packing her tools back into the medical box, she hurriedly stood up and bid farewell to Alfred. ¡°Since it¡¯s a family dinner, I don¡¯t think it¡¯d be appropriate for me to join. If you really must thank me, we can always find another day for it, Old Mr. Queen.¡± Although Roxanne had met Lucian plenty of times since she returned from overseas and was also acutely aware of his rtionship with Aubree, she truly loathed the thought of seeing them together. In fact, the mental image of them sitting next to each other was enough to make her feel ill at ease. Therefore, it was no surprise that she was in a hurry to leave. It was apparent that Roxanne was reluctant to stay, and it didn¡¯t take long for Frieda to figure out why. ¡°But you¡¯re my grandfather¡¯s lifesaver, Dr. Jarvis. Let¡¯s dispense with the formalities, shall we?¡± Frieda said as her lips curled into a sardonic smile. ¡°Moreover, this is Grandpa¡¯s way of showing his appreciation. Join us for dinner if you have nothing onter.¡± Realizing that Frieda was up to no good, Roxanne¡¯s brows creased slightly. Jonathan had just gotten off the phone when he overheard Frieda¡¯s words. Thinking that his sister was merely trying to be a good host, he chimed in, ¡°Lucian will being over in a bit. You¡¯ve met him before. I¡¯m sure he¡¯d like some updates on Grandpa¡¯s recovery, so it¡¯d be good if you could stay to help answer his questions.¡± Since she couldn¡¯t bring herself to say no to that, Roxanne could only nod in agreement. Frieda walked up to hold Aubree¡¯s arm while giving Roxanne a mocking gaze. Well, well, well. I can¡¯t believe the doctor really has the guts to stay. As it turned out, Frieda only asked Roxanne to stay because Alfred had invited Lucian, and she wanted nothing more than to mess with the doctor. Given Roxanne¡¯s rtionship with Lucian, I wonder how she¡¯d react when she sees him with other women. Oh, I can¡¯t wait to find out! Chapter 89 Chapter 89 Before the group headed downstairs, Alfred asked Roxanne if he could get out of bed in his condition. As soon as he got the green light, he let Jonathan and the butler hold him and slowly made his way down the stairs. Roxanne kept her head hung low as she sat at the dining table, trying her best to make herself less visible. Unfortunately, Frieda seemed to want to make things difficult by intentionally firing questions at Aubree and her every so often. On ount of Alfred, Roxanne answered them all. A whileter, the butler¡¯s voice rang out from the door. ¡°Mr. Farwell.¡± arvThen, everyone heard Lucian give a brief response in his deep voice before seeing his tall and lean figure appear in front of them. ¡°Hello, Old Mr. Queen,¡± Lucian greeted, his gaze slowly sweeping around the room. When his eyes fell on Roxanne, he couldn¡¯t help but pause a moment. Roxanne dug her nails into her palms as she held his gaze and nodded at him calmly. Without further ado, Lucian raised his brows and responded with a small smile. ¡°Take a seat, Lucian. Aubree¡¯s been waiting for you for almost half a day,¡± Frieda said warmly, beckoning for him to sit beside Aubree. Earlier, she had used the excuse of her grandfather wanting to thank Roxanne to get thetter to sit in front of Alfred while she and Jonathan plopped themselves down beside the doctor. As such, the only seat left was the one next to Aubree. However, knowing that Lucian had a closer rtionship with Alfred than she did, Aubree immediately stood up and gave her seat to him. That way, Lucian was now beside Alfred and also directly opposite Roxanne. Upon seeing him sit facing her, Roxanne felt herself tensing up as she slowly lowered her gaze. When dinner started, she quietly tucked into her meal and only spoke when Alfred talked to her. As for Aubree, she was more concerned about Lucian¡¯s attitude toward Roxanne than anything else. Even when she was getting food for Alfred, she¡¯d check Lucian¡¯s line of sight and frequently talk to him so he wouldn¡¯t focus too much on Roxanne. Of course, Roxanne was unaware of Aubree¡¯s motives. All she knew was that their conversation really made them seem like a family, and she couldn¡¯t shake off the ufortable feeling stirring inside her. Frieda nced at Roxanne and was surprised to see her still so calm andposed. Hence, she turned to Aubree and said with a lilt to her voice, ¡°Aubree, you and Lucian look so much in love! Have you picked a date for your wedding yet? I¡¯m still waiting to be your bridesmaid!¡± As soon as those words were out, Roxanne froze in her tracks. Huh? What did she mean by that? Are Lucian and Aubree not married yet? Aubree, too, felt her smile freezing in ce. After all, she hadn¡¯t expected Frieda to bring up the wedding right there and then. Just as she began thinking about how best to change the topic, she felt Alfred¡¯s concerned gaze on them. ¡°That¡¯s right. The two of you have been together for so many years. Even Este has grown up too. Isn¡¯t it time to settle down?¡± ¡°Yes, you guys should¡¯ve gotten married a long time ago. I don¡¯t even know why you¡¯ve dragged it on until now,¡± Jonathan teased. For a moment, everyone had their eyes on Lucian as they waited for his response. However, instead of replying immediately, he merely shot a quick look at the woman opposite him. Even though it was a brief moment, it hadn¡¯t gone unnoticed by those at the dining table. Roxanne clenched her fists and managed to suppress her doubts before lifting her gaze to meet Lucian¡¯s. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Their eyes met for a fleeting second, and Lucian noticed the indifference on Roxanne¡¯s face. He furrowed his brows, a trace of displeasure in his heart. Chapter 90 Chapter 90 Aubree hadn¡¯t taken her eyes off Lucian, so when she saw him ncing at Roxanne for the marriage question, she began to burn with envy. ¡°There¡¯s no need to rush the wedding,¡± Lucian replied, still staring at Roxanne. Ha! Let¡¯s see if she can still be so calm after this! Although Roxanne was taken aback momentarily by Lucian¡¯s reply, it didn¡¯t take long for her to regain herposure. So what if they aren¡¯t married yet? It¡¯s only a matter of time before they do. Why should I be s¨²rprised? With that, Roxanne lowered her gaze and casually resumed eating. It was as though the earlier interaction had absolutely nothing to do with her. Aubree, on the other hand, found Lucian¡¯s reply rather surprising.How weird. When Ist spoke to Lucian about the wedding, he already hinted at wanting to call it off. Why would he change his mind now? Alfred frowned, clearly unhappy with Lucian¡¯s reply. However, before he could say anything more, Aubree hastily said, ¡°Lucian¡¯s right. In any case, I won¡¯t be running off anytime. There¡¯s no need to rush, Old Mr. Queen. We¡¯re doing just fine, aren¡¯t we? Besides, it hasn¡¯t been easy for Lucian to find time to visit you, so let¡¯s not talk about us. We should be N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. talking about happier things!¡± If we drag this topic on any longer, I¡¯m afraid Lucian might turn the tables and reveal his intention to end our engagement. How can I risk letting him say that in front of Roxanne? I¡¯d be so humiliated if he did! Once again, the eagle-eyed Jonathan noticed Aubree¡¯s reluctance to talk about the wedding and chimed in, ¡°That¡¯s Lucian for you. He loves his job more than anything else. Leave them be, Grandpa. I¡¯m sure Lucian has his ns.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t deny that work is important, but it isn¡¯t right to keep putting off the wedding, is it?¡± Alfred grumbled. ¡°It¡¯s been so many years, yet Este still doesn¡¯t have a mother to look after her. I don¡¯t know what you guys are thinking, but I know my heart aches for her!¡± Flustered, Aubree gave a brief and vague response. As soon as she thought about Este, Roxanne, too, felt a little heartbroken. Ah, no wonder the kid¡¯s always clinging to me. It¡¯s because she doesn¡¯t have a mother, Just as she became lost in her thoughts, she suddenly heard Alfred calling her. ¡°What about you, Dr. Jarvis? Are you married?¡± Roxanne snapped out of her daze and replied after a moment of stunned silence, ¡°No. Not yet.¡± Alfred looked her up and down and curled his lips into a satisfied smile. ¡°What do you think about Jonathan? Would you like to consider him?¡± After several treatments, Alfred had long developed an admiration for Roxanne. It would, without a doubt, be even better if she could join their family as his granddaughter-inw. Caught off guard by the question, Roxanne stared back at Alfred, open-mouthed and speechless. Frieda shot a disgusted nce at Roxanne and scoffed, ¡°Stop trying to y matchmaker, Grandpa. No matter how capable Dr. Jarvis is, it still won¡¯t change the fact that she already has children. As far as I know, they aren¡¯t very young either. Given my brother¡¯s caliber, how can you tell him to marry a divorcee with kids? You may approve of it, but I won¡¯t! Not ever!¡± ¡°Is that so? Well, I never knew that,¡± Alfred muttered, genuinely surprised. ¡°Yes, I¡¯ve been divorced once. I don¡¯t think I¡¯d be good enough for Mr. Queen.¡± DI Hearing that, Alfred drew his brows together disapprovingly. ¡°So what if you¡¯re a divorcee? Given your talents, I¡¯m sure you have nock of suitors. What¡¯s this nonsense about not being good enough? If the two of you do fall in love, I¡¯ll be the first to give my stamp of approval!¡± Touched by Alfred¡¯s enthusiasm, Roxanne chuckled. ¡°Thank you for thinking so highly of me, Old Mr. Queen. Unfortunately, I don¡¯t think Mr. Queen and I are suited for each other. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll continue to keep an eye out for a suitable man.¡± ¡°Yes. It must be tough being a single mother. Get married once you¡¯ve found a suitable partner,¡± Alfred said with a nod. Roxanne, too, bobbed her head in agreement. As Lucian watched Alfred and Roxanne enjoying their chat, his gaze gradually darkened. Chapter 91 Chapter 91 After dinner, Alfred returned to his room to rest. Roxanne followed him to give him one final checkup before heading downstairs to bid her goodbye. ¡°It¡¯s sote now. Let me give you a lift home;¡± Jonathan piped up. ¡°No, it¡¯s fine,¡± Roxanne replied with a smile. ¡°You still have guests to entertain.¡± Jonathan knew she was right and decided not to insist further. ¡°In that case, please be careful on your way home. Oh, by the way, I hope you won¡¯t take my grandfather¡¯s words to heart. At his age, he tends to worry about things like that.¡± Roxanne merely smiled and turned to leave. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte, and I still have work to do. I think I¡¯ll be taking my leave now,¡± Lucian suddenly said when he saw Roxanne walking out of the mansion. Aubree, who had be very wary, decided to follow suit. ¡°Oh, I¡¯m also thinking about leaving. Let¡¯s go together, then.¡±¡°No. It¡¯s not like we¡¯re taking the same routes. I¡¯ll be going now,¡± Lucian answered indifferently, striding off before Aubree could say anything else. As she watched him walk away, Aubree stood in a daze, her face frozen with shock. Jonathan, too, couldn¡¯t help but furrow his brows. Since dinner started, he could already feel something was wrong between Lucian and the two women, but unfortunately, he couldn¡¯t put his finger on it. ¡°Aubree?¡± Frieda mumbled, baffled at how stunned her friend was. Thankfully, Aubree was brought back to her senses and quickly forced out a smile. ¡°Well, I still have work to do, so I shan¡¯t disturb you guys any longer.¡± Even though Jonathan and Frieda could tell that something was amiss with Aubree, they refrained from asking any more questions. After exchanging a few more words, they eventually saw her off. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. Once they were back in the mansion, Jonathan immediately turned to his sister. ¡°Hey, how did you know that Dr. Jarvis has kids?¡± Frieda pursed her lips. ¡°I saw them when I was out for lunch with Aubree. Oh, I also know that she¡¯s Lucian¡¯s ex-wife! I can¡¯t believe she had the gall toe back!¡± Upon hearing that, Jonathan was momentarily shocked before realization dawned on him. No wonder I had the nagging feeling that there was some awkwardness between Dr. Jarms and Lucian! She¡¯s the woman from six years ago! Even after leaving the mansion and getting into her car, Roxanne still felt pretty unsettled from the conversations at the dining table. She took a moment to collect her thoughts and only started the car when she had calmed herself down. All of a sudden, someone rapped on the window. Roxanne whipped her head around in the direction of the sound, but when she saw who it was, she looked away and pretended not to have heard anything. s, the person outside knocked on the window again, going so far as to bend down to peer into the car. Even though Roxanne knew no one could see her from the outside, she couldn¡¯t help but tense up. After some hesitation, she finally gave in and rolled down the window. ¡°What is it?¡± As it turned out, Lucian had been the one standing beside the car. When he heard Roxanne¡¯s voice, he calmly raised his brows. ¡°I didn¡¯t drive here today. Mind giving me a lift if it¡¯s convenient for you?¡±, With that, he reached a hand out for the car door. Unfortunately, before Roxanne could even get her bearings, Lucian had already entered the car and settled into the passenger seat. He promptly fastened his seatbelt and added, ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± Roxanne finally came to her senses, but she was anything but pleased. ¡°Where¡¯s your chauffeur?¡± ¡°It¡¯s already sote. Since I can easily get a ride, why should I trouble him toe all the way here!¡± Those words rendered Roxanne speechless, and it took a while before she blurted out, ¡°If I remember correctly, Ms. Pearson hasn¡¯t left either. I think she¡¯d be happy to give you a lift. Chapter 92 Chapter 92 Chapter 92 Este As soon as the words left Roxanne¡¯s mouth, an awkward silence befell the car. Having realized what she had said, she instantly felt a pang of regret and lowered her gaze, not saying anything more. Lucian stared at Roxanne¡¯s side profile, his gaze dark and indecipherable. Does she resist me this much? Why must she always push me to Aubree? After a while, he replied coldly, ¡°She still has something on and doesn¡¯t have ns to leave yet.¡± Roxanne gripped the steering wheel angrily. How dare he! Aubree¡¯s too busy to give him a lift, but that doesn¡¯t mean I¡¯m obliged to do so! Unfortunately, with the way Lucian sat unmoving in his seat, Roxanne knew she¡¯d never be able to chase him out of the car.As such, she had no choice but to start the engine and drive off from the Queens¡¯ mansion. At the same time, Aubree marched out of the mansion and immediately turned livid when she saw Lucian through the rearview mirror. Without further ado, she hopped into her car and followed them. Once they had gotten onto the main road, Roxanne suddenly recalled something. ¡°Where are you going?¡± Lucian had had a long day at work and still had to rush over to join Alfred for dinner. Now that he finally found a moment of peace, he could feel the waves of exhaustion washing over him. After hearing Roxanne¡¯s question, he quickly massaged his temples to wake himself up. ¡°To the office. I remember it¡¯s along the way for you.¡± ¡°It¡¯s already sote, though. Are you still going to work overtime?¡± Roxanne asked gently, her brows knitted as she nced at him. Lucian merely hummed his acknowledgment, too tired to say anything else. For some reason, he always felt so rxed when he was around Roxanne. Seeing as how Lucian had no intention to talk, Roxanne, too, continued driving in silence. However, every time she thought about how he was sitting right beside her, questions would start flooding her mind. She remembered that before their divorce. Lucian had once said Aubree was the only woman qualified to marry him and that their marriage had to be put on hold solely because of Roxanne. Naturally, that became a thorn in her side for years. It was muchter when she finally thought things through and decided to grant Lucian his freedom. I thought that once I left, he¡¯d immediately marry Aubree. But it¡¯s been six years since then, and they still haven¡¯t had their wedding. What on earth happened during that time? With that in mind, Roxanne instinctively nced at the man beside her. She was on the verge of shooting the question when she once again suppressed that urge. Ultimately, this is a private matter between Lucian and Aubree. What right do I have to question them when I¡¯m nothing more than an outsider? Besides, whatever happened between them couldn¡¯t possibly N?velDrama.Org ? content. be my fault. Lucian closed his eyes. Just when he hoped he could finally rest his mind, a wave of random thoughts instantly came over him. He didn¡¯t know what had gotten over him either. His chauffeur had been waiting for him outside the mansion, but when he saw Roxanne getting into her car, all he wanted was to follow her. By the time Lucian realized what he had done, he had alreadye face to face with Roxanne through the car window. Of course, it went without saying that he had to get into the car. Could it be because I overheard Roxanne¡¯s conversation with Old Mr. Queen? The sheer thought of her marrying some other guy makes me so frustrated! All of a sudden, the ringing of Lucian¡¯s phone broke the silence in the car. He quickly gathered his thoughts and stared at the caller disy, his gaze darkening as he did. ¡°Mr. Farwell, when are youing back? Ms. Este has a fever.¡± Catalina said anxiously. Lucian¡¯s expression turned cold immediately. ¡°Got it. I¡¯ll be right back.¡± As soon as he hung up the phone, he turned to Roxanne. ¡°Can you please send me back to the manor? Essie¡¯s not feeling well, so I have to go check on her.¡± Chapter 93 Chapter 93 P anne overheard Catalina¡¯s words through the phone and know Este wasn¡¯t feeling well. She promptly got worried. After hearing what Lucian had to say, she made a U-turn and sped toward the Farwell residence. Twenty minutester, her car rolled to a stop outside the Farwell residence. Recalling Este¡¯s condition, Roxanne shot the man a dubious look. ¡°Take good care of Essie. If you need my help, just let me know anytime.¡± Lucian met her gaze mockingly. ¡°If you¡¯re that worried about her, why don¡¯t you take a look at her? Besides, Essie adores you. If she sees you when she¡¯s sick, I believe she¡¯ll feel better.¡± With that said, he opened the door and got out before heading in the direction of the mansion. It appeared he was leaving it up to her whether she wanted to visit Este. The sight of his back caused Roxanne to frown slightly. Essie¡¯s sick. Shouldn¡¯t he get her mother to visit her? No matter how busy Aubree is, she won¡¯t ignore her sick daughter, right?As the thought of the little girl sick in bed popped up in her mind, she exited the car and walked into the mansion behind Lucian. na The moment Lucian stepped into the house, Catalina came forward to greet him with Este in her arms. ¡°Mr. Farwell, you¡¯re finally back. Ms. Este¡¯s sick, so I wanted her to rest in bed. However, she insisted on waiting for you. I had no choice but to keep herpany downstairs,¡± Catalina reported. Este¡¯s cheeks were flushed, and there was a cooling patch stuck on her forehead. She looked really weak. At the sight of her father, she stretched her arms out to ask him to hold her. Lucian took her into his arms and tested her temperature. His brows snapped together as he asked, ¡°Why did she suddenly have a fever?¡± Catalina cast Este a worried look. ¡°Ms. Este seemed to be in low spirits after she got home from kindergarten. She ate little at dinner. I thought she was sleepy and brought her upstairs to take a shower before realizing she was running a temperature. I called the family doctor, who prescribed her some medicine. However, Ms. Este insisted on seeing you before she would head to bed,¡± she exined. Lucian shot her a curt nod and patted Este¡¯s back. ¡°Do you still feel unwell? he inquired, concern evident in his voice. Este flung her arms around Lucian¡¯s neck and buried her head into the crook of his neck before giving a weak nod. Lucian patted her headfortingly. ¡°Mr. Farwell, now that you¡¯re back, you should bring her upstairs so she can rest,¡± Catalina urged. However, Lucian hesitated. ¡°Let¡¯s wait for a bit.¡± Catalina gazed at him in bafflement, for she had no idea what he was waiting for. She was starting to panic when light footsteps sounded at the door. Why does that sound like a woman? The three of them turned to look at the door. Lucian¡¯s gaze softened at the sight of the neer. Catalina stiffened in disbelief. She couldn¡¯t believe her eyes when she realized who the neer was. Roxanne had just stepped into the house when she realized three pairs of eyes hadnded on her. She immediately halted in her tracks. She was filled with mixed emotions when she realized the mansion looked almost the same. Six years ago, this was her house. She had lived here for a few years. Lucian might be indifferent to her, but he allowed her to do anything Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. she wanted. Thus, some of the decorations in the house were bought by her. She thought Lucian would change everything after her departure, but to her surprise, everything remained the same six yearster. After ncing around the house briefly, Roxanne averted her gaze and scoffed at herself silently. I can¡¯t believe I¡¯m feeling nostalgic after seeing the old decorations. Never in her wildest dreams did she realize that Lucian didn¡¯t touch any decorations as he never paid any attention to them. Chapter 94 Chapter 94 Snapping out of her reverie, Roxanne tamped down her feelings and went to them. Este was running a fever, but her eyes were sparkling adorably. She had brightened up considerably after spotting Roxanne and was staring at thetter carnestly. Roxanne gave her a concerned look. In response, Este reached out to ask Roxanne to hold her. Seeing that, Roxanne nced at Lucian instinctively. She¡¯s sick, so why is she asking a stranger to hold her instead of staying with her dad? What will Lucian think about her action? To her surprise, Lucian offered Este to her calmly. TS After a brief hesitation, Roxanne took Este into her arms...The moment Roxanne touched the little girl, she could feel the heat emanating from the small body. Este felt like a heater in her arms. Without a second¡¯s hesitation, Roxanne pressed her cheek to Este¡¯s to check thetter¡¯s temperature. The cooling sensation from her cheek caused Este¡¯s eyes to droop as she let out a soft sigh. ¡°You¡¯re running a high fever,¡± Roxannemented as she hugged Este closer. Softly, she asked, ¡°Essie, do you feel ufortable?¡± Este nodded silently. As the little girl¡¯s eyes were red from the fever, Roxanne felt her heart ache. Turning to Catalina, she asked, ¡°Has she taken her medicine?¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. Catalina regained herposure and nodded hastily. ¡°Yes.¡± Carefully, she observed Roxanne and asked, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, when did you return?¡± Catalina had worked for the Farwell family for some time and used to serve Roxanne briefly when the Hence, she was quite surprised to learn that Roxanne had left without saying goodbye. I can¡¯t believe Mrs. Farwell is back! Roxanne was taken aback to hear her greeting. shing a smile, she replied, ¡°I¡¯ve been back for some time. Please don¡¯t address me that way. I left the Farwell family six years ago.¡± Realization struck Catalina as shemented, ¡°You haven¡¯t changed, so I thought¡­ Forget it. I¡¯ll take note of that next time.¡± Roxanne bobbed her head. Catalina added, ¡°Are you here to visit Ms. Este?¡± Roxanne exined, ¡°We bumped into each other at my patient¡¯s house. I heard that Essie was sick and decided toe to pay her a visit.¡± Hearing that, Catalina felt a stab in her heart. ¡°That¡¯s good. Ms. Este will surely get better quickly if you keep herpany,¡± she muttered under her breath. Roxanne assumed Catalina was referring to the fact that she was a doctor and could treat Este¡¯s condition by taking care of her. Chuckling, she inclined her head and promised, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll help out if Essie needs me.¡± Catalina was puzzled after hearing her reply. Was Why is Ms. Jarvis acting all formal? Ms. Este is her daughter. Isn¡¯t it natural for her to take care of her sick daughter? Besides, Ms. Este would feel better if her mother were to stay by her side. Back then, it was Ms. Jarvis who treated my headaches. I know she¡¯s a great doctor, so she is definitely capable of treating Ms. Este¡¯s fever. A wave of regret hit Catalina when she recalled the times Roxanne was still around. Ms. Jarvis is pretty and smart. However, she never put on airs before us. She treated us as though we were part of her family. She couldn¡¯t help butpare Roxanne to Aubree. Ms. Pearson, however, often shows up here without informing anyone. When Mr. Farwell isn¡¯t around, she acts as though she¡¯s thedy of the house and orders us around arrogantly. She never shows us any respect. I don¡¯t know what Mr. Farwell sees in her¡­ Lucian fell into a daze temporarily when he heard how Catalina addressed Roxanne. However, when Roxanne corrected Catalina, his feelings becameplicated. Chapter 95 Chapter 95 The sight of Roxanne standing together with the other two reminded Catalina of the past. She wanted them to spend more time together and left after exchanging a few pleasantries. Soon, only the three of them were left in the living room. Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened as he stared at them. Sensing his gaze, Roxanne turned slightly and went to the couch to ce Este down. However, Este grabbed her shoulders tightly and refused to let her go. Seeing this, Roxanne sat on the couch with her and said gently, ¡°Essie, be a good girl. You¡¯re sick and need to go to bed early. Do you want me to lull you to sleep?¡± Este buried her nose into the crook of Roxanne¡¯s neck and shook her head. Roxanne¡¯s brows knitted. ¡°Don¡¯t you want to sleep?¡± The little girl nodded and turned at her shoulder to point at the notebook on the table.Roxanne reached out and grabbed the notebook for her. She watched as Este scribbled something on the notebook. You¡¯ll leave if I fall asleep. I don¡¯t want you to leave. After scribbling that down, Este pursed her lips unhappily. Roxanne read what she wrote as surprise shed across her eyes. Is Este that attached to me? Lucian had also read Este¡¯s words. He nced at Roxanne and said sternly, ¡°Ms. Jarvis has to go home. Be good and go to bed.¡± Este pouted and whipped her head around to seek Roxanne¡¯s confirmation. Roxanne nodded. The boys were waiting for her at home. Lysa was taking care of them, but she would still worry about them. Besides, she didn¡¯t know how she should spend a night in the house she used to live in. At her silent affirmation, Este looked down sadly. She kept fiddling with the corner of Roxanne¡¯s top and nearly crumpled it. Roxanne couldn¡¯t bear to see her upset. A whileter, Este released her grip on the corner of Roxanne¡¯s top. Roxanne thought she was about to go to bed, but the little girl picked up the notebook again. I want Daddy to bring the boys over. Please don¡¯t leave, Ms, Jarvis. After writing that, Este turned around and wrapped her hands around Roxanne¡¯s neck pitifully. She refused to let go. Feeling the abnormal heat from the young girl¡¯s body, Roxanne couldn¡¯t bring herself to say no. Can Finally, she sighed inwardly and caved in. ¡°All right. I won¡¯t leave. You can sleep now.¡± Este raised her head suspiciously. Roxanne gave her head aforting pat. ¡°I¡¯ll keep youpany, so shut your eyes and sleep.¡± Este snuggled into her arms and promptly fell asleep. Her head rested on Roxanne¡¯s shoulder, and she gripped Roxanne¡¯s top tightly as though she was afraid thetter would leave secretly. Roxanne felt her heart melt as she stared at the girl in her arms. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Lucian¡¯s gaze dimmed when he saw their exchange. He joined them on the adjoining couch and told the butler to prepare two cups of coffee for them. Pulling his phone out, he proceeded to work from home. He hadn¡¯t been lying when he imed he had to work overtime earlier. Recently, he had been extremely busy. Silence ensued in the living room. Hearing Este¡¯s steady breathing, Roxanne told the butler to bring her a nket to cover Este¡¯s body. The little girl flipped over in her arms as though the heat bothered her. . Carefully, Roxanne wiped the sweat off Este¡¯s brows, her eyes filled with gentleness. Chapter 96 Chapter 96 She was busy taking care of Este when her phone rang in her bag Afraid Este would rousc, she immediately covered Este¡¯s ears and was about to get up to take her phone. To her surprise, Lucian got to his feet and came over to her with her phone. ¡°Thank you,¡± Roxanne thanked him softly. ncing at the screen, she immediately berated herself for forgetting about her sons. ¡°Mommy!¡± the boys yelled the minute the call connected. ¡°When are youing home?¡± Roxanne lowered her voice. ¡°I¡¯m busy tonight, so I mighte homete. Have you had dinner?¡± The boys replied, ¡°Yes, we did. What about you? Don¡¯t forget to take care of yourself even if you¡¯re busy!¡± Touched, Roxanne chuckled. ¡°I know. I¡¯ve eaten earlier. Don¡¯t wait up for me. Good night!¡±¡°Got it, Mommy. Try toe home as early as possible. Don¡¯t tire yourself out!¡± the boys responded in unison. Her lips curved into a grin. Roxanne chatted with them briefly before hanging up. Beside her, Lucian heard the boys¡¯ voices faintly and ced his work aside. He looked at her and was about to ask whether she had to head home to take care of them, but the sight of her tender expression made him change his mind. ¡°Who normally takes care of the boys when you¡¯re busy? Do they stay at home? Or do you hire someone to take care of them?¡± he asked. Roxanne told him, ¡°My friend helps out. Now, Lysa will take care of them.¡± Lucian asked, ¡°Was it the same when you were working overseas?¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Despite not knowing why he posed that question, Roxanne answered instinctively, ¡°I¡¯d hire someone to take care of them or bring them to my workce. My colleagues loved them.¡± Right after those words left her mouth, the living room went silent again. se wor OID WE Roxanne lowered her gaze to check on the little girl¡¯s condition. ¡°They¡¯re older now and easier to take care of. It must have been hard when they were younger,¡± Lucian said suddenly. His gaze fell on her as he pretended to ask nonchntly, ¡°How old are the boys? They are of simr height to Essie, so they should be around the same age.¡± The sudden question made Roxanne¡¯s heart¡¯lurch to her throat. Every time the boys spent time with Lucian, she worried that he¡¯d discover the truth. Thus, she kept reminding the boys to keep their ages a secret. She didn¡¯t expect to be asked the question in person. Averting her gaze, she fell silent for some time before replying, ¡°They are around four years old. It¡¯s normal for boys to grow faster than girls.¡± That was the answer she came to a consensus with Archie and Benny previously. It was a lie, for Lucian might recall the night from six years ago if he were to know the boys¡¯ real age. She didn¡¯t want that to happen. After giving her answer, she waited anxiously for him to respond. Sometimeter, she heard the man grunt in acknowledgment. As he didn¡¯t pursue the matter, Roxanne heaved a sigh of relief deep down. Lucian returned his attention to the email on his phone, but he couldn¡¯t focus on work. The boys are around four years old, so they are one year younger than Essie. That would mean that she ended up with another man right after giving birth to Essie. She then gave birth to the boys shortly after. ¡± As that thought urred to him, Lucian scowled in displeasure. They were both engrossed in their thoughts when Este moved. Roxanne lowered her head. Este¡¯s brows furrowed together as she started sobbing pitifully. Her entire face was scrunched Chapter 97 Chapter 97 Hearing her sobs, Lucian nced in their direction. Roxanne patted Este¡¯s backfortingly, but thetter¡¯s sobs merely grew louder. Tossing the nket aside, she sat up and threw herself into Roxanne¡¯s arms. Her hands held Roxanne¡¯s top tightly as she cried sadly. Gradually, she opened her eyes and stared at Roxanne¡¯s face intently. Her sobs died down after she confirmed Roxanne was still around. By then, her cheeks were crimson from her fever and sobs. Roxanne felt her heart aching, for the little girl reminded her of her boys. ¡°Hush, Essie. I¡¯m right here. Don¡¯t cry,¡± Roxanne cajoled her while wiping the tears off her cheeks tenderly.Este sniffled as tears continued to trickle down. However, she wasn¡¯t about to release her N?velDrama.Org ? content. grasp on Roxanne¡¯s top. The sweat from her palms drenched Roxanne¡¯s top and crumpled it up. Nevertheless, Roxanne didn¡¯t utter a word andforted her patiently. Soon, Este fell asleep. Even in her sleep, she couldn¡¯t stop sniffling. Roxanne wrapped her up in the nket gingerly, leaving only her hands outside since she was still holding Roxanne¡¯s top in her sleep. An unfathomable glint shed across Lucian¡¯s eyes as he watched their intimate exchange. In the end, he chose not to say a word. Catalina was still worried, so she came over to check on them. She was pleased to see Este sound asleep in Roxanne¡¯s arms. ¡°Indeed, Ms. Este can sleep soundly when she¡¯s with you. Previously, she was a difficult child whenever she got sick. No one could calm her down, not even Mr. Farwell.¡± Roxanne widened her eyes in disbelief. What about Aubree? She¡¯s Essie¡¯s mother. Can¡¯t she calm Essie down? By the way, why didn¡¯t she show up at all now that Essie¡¯s sick? Where is she? Doesn¡¯t she care about her daughter? She was about to pose that question when Lucian¡¯s voice rang out. ¡°She¡¯ll probably wake up again tonight. Why don¡¯t you bring her to the guest room? You¡¯ll get to rest there, too.¡± Catalina chimed in, ¡°Yes, it¡¯ste. You came here with Mr. Farwell after work, so you must be exhausted. You should head upstairs and get some rest along with Ms. Este. Roxanne swallowed her question and shot the second floor a hesitating look. The past events emerged in her mind as bitterness engulfed her heart. She shook her head to reject the offer. ¡°No d. I¡¯ll just rest here briefly. Essie only fell asleep a while ago, so I don¡¯t want to wake her.¡± Lucian and Catalina gave up on trying to convince her to change her mind. Catalina then chatted with her briefly before leaving them alone. The living room turned quiet. Roxanne¡¯s guard was still up after Lucian mentioned Archie and Benny¡¯s age, so she gazed at the sleeping little girl and avoided looking at him. Lucian didn¡¯t utter a word for a long while, so she gradually rxed. Her schedule had been packed today. In the afternoon, she had spent a lot of effort treating Alfred, so her energy was quite low by now. Este¡¯s warm body and steady breathing made Roxanne grow drowsy. Despite trying her best to stay awake, she soon fell into a deep sleep. Chapter 98 Chapter 98 The living room was enveloped in silence for some time. Lucian lifted his head to see Roxanne sleeping with Este in her arms. As she was holding Este, her posture was awkward, so she couldn¡¯t really sleep peacefully. Every time she woke up to shift slightly, she would tighten her arms. That very sight pulled at Lucian¡¯s heartstrings. Catalina showed up again to check on Este. She had just arrived at the couch when her employer gestured for her to lower her voice. Tiptoeing over, Catalina nced at the sleeping mother and daughter on the couch. A smile nudged her lips. Indeed, the bond between mother and daughter can never be broken. They haven¡¯t met for years, but Ms. Este is still instinctively attached to her mother, and Ms. Jarvis adores her daughter. She frowned at the sight of the little nket barely covering their bodies and tiptoed away. Soon, she came back with a bigger nket and offered it to Lucian.Lucian¡¯s brows snapped together. He hesitated briefly before epting the nket from Catalina. Bending his body, he draped the nket over them carefully and tucked Roxanne in. After that, he was about to get up when his gazended on Roxanne¡¯s sleeping face. Lucian froze, and he couldn¡¯t keep his gaze off her. This was the first time he had ever seen her up close. It was obvious that she wasn¡¯t sleeping well. Hershes would flutter asionally as though she would wake up any minute. Lucian wondered when she would wake up. Suddenly, she frowned in her sleep as her head slipped off the couch. Before she could fall off the couch, Lucian reached out instinctively to protect her head. She fell into his embrace instead. Suddenly, he registered the sensation of her soft cheek brushing against his palm. Lucian¡¯s gaze turned dark. Afraid of waking her up, he didn¡¯t move an inch. Roxanne was in his embrace, and Este was in Roxanne¡¯s embrace. Seeing that, a thought urred to Catalina. Ms.rvis left six years ago, but it might not be impossible for her toe back. She beamed at them and suggested, ¡°Mr. Farwell, you should bring them upstairs to get some rest. If Ms. Jarvis sleeps here tonight, her body will ache tomorrow. She still has to go to work, right?¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. A deep line appeared in the middle of Lucian¡¯s brows as he pondered over her suggestion. Shortly after, he gave a curt nod. Catalina took Este in her arms. Fortunately, Este was sound asleep and didn¡¯t wake up despite being moved. Holding Este in her arms, Catalina grinned and said, ¡°You¡¯ll have to bring Ms. Jarvis upstairs.¡± Then, she stood aside and waited for Lucian to take action. Lucian paused upon hearing those words. It took him a long while before he made up his mind and picked Roxanne up carefully. In his arms, Roxanne¡¯s head lolled aside weakly before he rested her head on his shoulder. Even after he got to his feet, she didn¡¯t rouse. Lucian stared at her and frowned unhappily. She¡¯s as light as a feather. Has she not been taking care of herself over the years? Catalina shed a gratified smile at the sight of Lucian carrying Roxanne. No matter what, Mr. Farwell and Ms. Jarvis are the perfect couple! Chapter 99 Chapter 99 Roxanne was indeed knackered. Usually, she was a light sleeper. However, she slept so soundly that night and didn¡¯t even realize that she was being brought upstairs to the guest room. Lucian came to a stop beside the bed and ced her down. He made sure her head was resting on the pillow before he got to his feet. Behind them, Catalina¡¯s grin widened when she saw how Lucian took care of Roxanne. She put Este beside Roxanne and tucked them in before stepping back. As Lucian was still gazing at Roxanne, she offered, ¡°Mr. Farwell, why don¡¯t you get some rest? I¡¯ll keep thempany. You have to head to the office tomorrow, right?¡± Lucian shook his head. ¡°No need for that. I¡¯m not tired. Essie¡¯s sick, so I¡¯ll take care of her myself. You can get off work now.¡± Catalina was amused. He¡¯s worried about Ms. Este? But his eyes are fixed on Ms. Jarvis! Hmm, it should be a good idea to leave them alone. They can spend some time together and hopefully grow closer as a family. With that thought in mind, Catalina left the room quietly. The only light source in the room came from a dim nightmp.Under the light, Lucian observed Roxanne¡¯s features without a word. N?velDrama.Org ? content. She still had the same gorgeous face from six years ago, but when her eyes were open, she would be apletely different person. In fact, he found himself attracted to her now when he wasn¡¯t interested in her in the past, I wonder how she spent thest six years. A whileter, Roxanne¡¯s brows furrowed all of a sudden. Lucian frowned as well. Is she having a nightmare? What could it be? She seems uneasy even when she¡¯s asleep. In a dream, Roxanne was back to the day when Lucian shot her a disgusted look. He didn¡¯t even utter a word, but Roxanne could already tell what he was going to say. She staggered backward and covered her ears so she wouldn¡¯t hear what he had to say. Even so, the man¡¯s cruel words resonated in her brain, ¡°I¡¯ll never like you!¡± That sentence reverberated around and refused to die down. Feeling suffocated, Roxanne struggled for some time before jolting awake. Her surroundings were dark, so it felt like she was still in a dream. Roxanne¡¯s heart sank to her stomach. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Did you have a nightmare?¡± Lucian¡¯s deep voice rang beside her. His voice ovepped with the voice she heard in her dream. Roxanne¡¯s heart lurched as she lifted her head to look at him. The man stood in the shadows, so his expression wasn¡¯t visible. When she didn¡¯t reply to him, he frowned and took another step forward. Roxanne thought she was still in her dreams and panicked when he moved. Instinctively, she held the corner of the bed and retreated hastily. Lucian halted in his tracks and softened his voice. ¡°What did you dream of?¡± After he stepped out of the shadows, Roxanne saw the concern on his face. It took a few seconds for Roxanne to realize that she was no longer dreaming. She regained her She turned and saw Este sleeping soundly beside her. Reaching out, she felt the little girl¡¯s forehead. Este¡¯s fever had subsided by now, so she should be doing fine by morning. Roxanne retracted her hand and got out of bed. After tidying herself, she said softly, ¡°Essie will recover by morning, but make sure she doesn¡¯t catch a cold. I should head back now¡± When she spun on her heels to leave, arge hand grabbed her wrist at once. Chapter 100 Chapter 100 Roxanne stopped and turned at her shoulder in confusion. Lucian¡¯s brows were knitted deeply. ¡°It¡¯s four in the morning. You only slept for a while, so I won¡¯t let you drive back home alone. Besides, what will I tell Essie? You promised you wouldn¡¯t leave. If she Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. wakes up and doesn¡¯t see you around, she¡¯ll definitely kick up a fuss and might even run to your house. She¡¯s still weak. What if she gets sick again?¡± When she heard that, Roxanne frowned. She didn¡¯t want to stay here after her earlier nightmare. Nevertheless, she did promise Este that she would stay the night. Sensing her dilemma, Lucian scowled and dered, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. Essie only needs you now. In the future, I won¡¯t let her disturb your life if it¡¯s nothing important.¡± With that said, he released his grip on her. Roxanne found his words strange, for it felt as though he was mocking her for no reason. An uneasy feeling rose in her heart. Este rolled over as though she had sensed Roxanne¡¯s departure. The little girl patted the empty bed and whined softly.Hearing that, they both turned to look at her. Roxanne couldn¡¯t bring herself to break her promise to Este. She hesitated before saying, ¡°I¡¯ll keep Essiepany. Mr. Farwell, I don¡¯t think it¡¯s suitable for you to remain here when I sleep, though.¡± Clearly, she wanted him to leave. Silence ensued as Lucian¡¯s fury heightened. In the end, he replied icily, ¡°All right. Please take good care of Essie, then.¡± He then stormed out of the room. As the door clicked shut, Roxanne sighed in relief and went back to lie down beside Este. Este inched nearer to her as though she was seeking warmth. Roxanne felt her heart going soft, and she reached out to pull the little girl into her arms. Este¡¯s lips curled as she sighedfortably in her mother¡¯s embrace. The sight made Roxanne¡¯s heart melt. The anxiety caused by her earlier nightmare faded into thin air, and she fell asleep gradually. The next morning, Este woke up in Roxanne¡¯s arms. Her eyes lit up in delight when she realized she had spent the night in Roxanne¡¯s embrace. I¡¯m so happyl Ms. Jarvis didn¡¯t leave and even spent the night with me! How I wish she could do the same every day. Roxmune was half awake when she sensed Este¡¯sser-like gaze. Her mind cleared, and she woke up. That was when she met Este¡¯s sparkling eyes. shing a grin, she asked, ¡°Good morning. Are you still unwell?¡± Este shook her head profusely. Roxanne¡¯s lips curved. ¡°Good. Time to get up now.¡± She sat up from bed. Catalina knocked on the door and came in with fresh clothes. After that, Roxanne helped her to change Este¡¯s clothes. When they were done, Catalina wanted to bring Este to the bathroom so thetter could wash up. However, Este refused to let Catalina take her hand. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, why don¡¯t you bring Ms. Este to the bathroom?¡± Catalina understood the little girl¡¯s intention and handed her to Roxanne. Roxanne was used to taking care of her sons and agreed readily. She then brought Este into the bathroom. After washing up, she braided Este¡¯s hair. Halfway through the braid, Este brightened up and stared at the mirror earnestly. She didn¡¯t move an inch from her spot in the chair. Lucian stood outside the bathroom, dressed in his suit. The buttons on his shirt were undone, so it was obvious that he had just woken up and washed up. He watched silently as Roxanne braided Este¡¯s hair. Chapter 101 Chapter 101 Chapter 101 Remarry After the braid was done, Roxanne led Este out. She turned and spotted the man standing at the door. Immediately, the warmth in Lucian¡¯s gaze disappeared and was reced by an indifferent look. He told her courteously, ¡°Breakfast¡¯s ready. Let¡¯s go downstairs.¡± With that, he turned around and left without waiting for them. Roxanne was rooted to the spot. His expression was different just now. It appeared for a fleeting moment only, though. Was I seeing things? Snapping out of her reverie, Roxanne led Este down the stairs. Este took the seat next to Lucian at the dining table. Roxanne was about to take the seat across from them when Este tugged at her sleeves, forcing her to stop in her tracks. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, why don¡¯t you sit beside Ms. Este?¡± Sensing Este¡¯s intention, Catalina chuckled and pulled out the chair beside the little girl.Este nodded in agreement and gazed at Roxanne expectantly. At once, Roxanne nced at the man sitting on the other side of the little girl. Lucian¡¯s expression was stiff, and he averted his gaze as though he couldn¡¯t be bothered where she sat. Este tightened her grip. Roxanne hesitated slightly before upying the seat next to Este¡¯s. During breakfast, Roxanne subconsciously helped Este with the food. Lucian also did the same. Tiny, almost imperceptible crinkles formed around Este¡¯s eyes in joy. She ate all the food they ced on her te obediently. After breakfast, Roxanne nced at her watch. It was time for her to get to work, so she got up and bade goodbye to them. However, Este seemed reluctant to let her leave. ¡°Essie, be good. I need to go to work. I¡¯ll visit you another day, all right?¡± Roxanne held her chubby hand and assured her. Hearing that, Este released her grip on Roxanne¡¯s top grudgingly and waved goodbye to her. Roxanne grinned and patted her head affectionately before turning to leave. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Before heading to work, she went home to change her clothes. She was also worried about her sons and wanted to check on them. Back home, the boys lunged toward her. ¡°Mommy! Why didn¡¯t youe back homest night? Did something happen?¡± Lysa chuckled and exined, ¡°They¡¯ve been worried the entire night and woke up early today.¡± Roxanne nodded. She decided to tell them how she took care of Estest night. After learning that Este was ill, the boys asked anxiously, ¡°Is Essie all right? Is she seriously ill? Can we visit her?¡± Roxanne assured them, ¡°She has a slight fever and has recovered after sleeping through the night. You¡¯ll see her at the kindergarten.¡± She would¡¯ve agreed to let the boys visit their ill friend, but she didn¡¯t want them to run into Lucian. The boys nodded obediently. Meanwhile, Aubree followed Roxanne¡¯s car all the way to the Farwell residence. As a result, she flew into a rage and couldn¡¯t sleep well the entire night. She didn¡¯t forget to order her subordinate to keep an eye on Roxanne so she would know when Roxanne left the Farwell residence. The next morning, she was having breakfast when she received a call from her subordinate informing her that Roxanne had just left the Farwell residence. ¡°B*tch!¡± Aubree cut the line and clenched her jaw in fury. ¡°She can¡¯t wait to get back together with him after her return!¡± Fear wed up her throat instantly. I can¡¯t believe she got to spend a night in the Farwell residence! Over the years, I¡¯ve never spent the night there. Lucian will usually ask me to leave after dinner. Looks like Lucian treats her differently¡­ The more Aubree pondered over the matter, the more frantic she became. Sitting across from her was her mother, Gina Walker. Seeing her anxiety, Gina asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Why are you upset this early in the morning?¡± Aubree gritted her teeth. ¡°That b*tch Roxanne spent the night at the Farwell residence! If I don¡¯t do anything to stop her, she might end up remarrying Lucian!¡± Gina¡¯s expression turned grim. She thought over the matter briefly before saying, ¡°We haven¡¯t met Sonya for some time. Why don¡¯t we invite her to teater? You can take the opportunity to tell her about this.¡± Chapter 102 Chapter 102 Chapter 102 She Will Not Get To Meet Essie That afternoon, Aubree and Gina met Sonya at a caf¨¦. They were already waiting at a table by the window when Sonya arrived. ¡°Sorry you had to wait,¡± Sonya apologized as she sat across from them. Aubree¡¯s lips curled into a gentle smile. ¡°We¡¯ve just arrived. Here, take a seat. I¡¯ve ordered some desserts. I hope they are to your liking.¡± She then gestured for the server to serve their food. Soon, a few delicate desserts were served. Sonya shed a satisfied grin. ¡°Oh, how nice of you, Aubree. You still remember that I like sweet food. Lucian isn¡¯t as thoughtful as you.¡±They chatted for a while before Gina casually mentioned Roxanne¡¯s existence. ¡°By the way, Aubree visited Old Mr. Queen a few days ago and bumped into the woman who divorced Lucian six years ago. When did shee back? Do you know about this?¡± Sonya¡¯s smile slipped. ¡°Roxanne? Roxanne Jarvis? How dare she show up here? I wouldn¡¯t have known if you didn¡¯t tell me about it!¡± Back then, Roxanne left the divorce agreement behind and left without saying goodbye. A yearter, Este was sent back to their family without a guardian. Sonya was furious whenever she recalled the past. How dare Roxannee back to Chanaea? Gina feigned surprise. ¡°Didn¡¯t you know? Aubree saw Lucian there, too. He seemed to be on friendly terms with that woman. I thought you wanted her toe back so she can take care of Essie.¡± Sonya frowned in displeasure. ¡°The nerve of her! If I knew about this, I wouldn¡¯t have allowed her to even meet Essie!¡± Roxanne left the country stubbornly and was heartless enough to abandon her daughter. I¡¯ll never let someone as cruel as here any closer to Essie! Gina and Aubree had seen thating. Aubree shot her a cating smile. ¡°Mrs. Farwell, calm down. Perhaps Lucian doesn¡¯t think that way.¡± She lowered her gaze in dejection as her smile became forced. Sonya¡¯s fury increased. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Did Lucian bully you?¡± Aubree merely shot her mother a conflicted look. Gina broke the silence. ¡°I¡¯ll be frank with you. Lucian didn¡¯t show up when we had a meal together. I told Aubree to invite him over, but he seemed to insinuate that he wanted to break off the engagement with her. Aubree didn¡¯t tell me anything. If I hadn¡¯t realized she seemed dispirited and urged her to tell me the truth, she would¡¯ve kept it a secret until now!¡± Whipping her head around, she red at Aubree before turning back to look at Sonya. ¡°I asked you out to confirm the matter. If you¡¯re nning on asking that woman to return to the Farwell family, I¡¯ll ask Aubree to give up now.¡± Aubree hung her head low, appearing utterly crestfallen. She didn¡¯t utter a word. That was the first Sonya had ever heard of it. Her gaze turned dark. ¡°Did Lucian say that for real?¡± Both Gina and Aubree said nothing. It was a silent acquiescent. ¡°Got it.¡± Sonya grabbed her bag and rose to her feet. ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Aubree. We¡¯vee to an agreement, so you¡¯ll be my daughter-inw. I won¡¯t agree if Lucian insists on marrying someone else! There¡¯s no way I¡¯ll allow him to remarry Roxanne.¡± Belonging to N?velDrama.Org. Aubree shot her a doleful look. Sonya felt bad for her. ¡°Don¡¯t be afraid. I¡¯ll head back home to deal with the matter right away.¡± Chapter 103 Chapter 103 Chapter 103 Want To Get Back With Her Content held by N?velDrama.Org. On the way back from the caf¨¦, Sonya grew more worried the more she thought about it. Hence, when Elias got off work, she called him to go to the manor together. Lucian went to pick up Este after work. As soon as the two entered the door, they noticed the elderly Farwells sitting on the couch with a solemn expression. It was apparent that they had something to say. ¡°Dad, Mom, why didn¡¯t you tell me you wereing over? Is there a problem?¡± Lucian queried in puzzlement. Those words had barely left his mouth when Sonya nodded solemnly. ¡°There¡¯s something we wish to talk to you about.¡± Upon seeing the grave expression on his mother¡¯s face, Lucian knitted his brows. He turned his head and handed Este to Catalina to allow her to take the little girl upstairs first.Catalina obliged. Este also greeted her grandparents obediently before following her caretaker upstairs. Lucian sat down on the single couch beside his parents. ¡°What¡¯s the matter that made youe here sote?¡± ¡°Is Roxanne back?¡± Sonya went straight to the point. When he heard that, Lucian¡¯s gaze darkened as he admitted frankly, ¡°Yes, we have met.¡± As expected, Sonya snorted and continued to ask, ¡°Why didn¡¯t you tell us? Don¡¯t tell me you still want to get back with her!¡± Lucian¡¯s frown deepened, but he did not answer right away. Sonya¡¯s heart lurched when he kept silent. ¡°I don¡¯t care what you think, but I¡¯ll never agree to let that woman be a part of our family! Back then, she left without a word and even had the heart to abandon her child. Now, she wants toe back? I¡¯ll never allow it! If I allow it, what do we do if history repeats itself? Although you can ept it, Essie has already grown up. Can she bear it?¡± After she finished speaking, she waited for a while. Yet, she received no response from her son. Sonya¡¯s expression changed as she tried to persuade him by bringing up Este. ¡°Think carefully about what Essie had gone through all these years. The child had a weak constitution since childhood. What do you think is the reason for that? If that woman had taken good care of her for some time after giving birth before sending her back, I wouldn¡¯t say anything. However, she just abandoned Essie like that, causing the child to be in poor health. Luckily, we have the means and managed to improve Essie¡¯s health after much effort. But as a result, Essie developed an autistic temperament and was called a bastard child without a mother outside. Do you think this will not lead to the worsening of her autism? It¡¯s all because of that woman! Should you insist on letting here back, I¡¯ll take Essie to our ce and raise her. In any case, I¡¯ll never hand Essie over to her!¡± After saying that and seeing her son¡¯sck of reaction, Sonya looked at her husband anxiously. She had deliberately brought Elias there because she knew that his words were more effective than her own. Elias also felt sorry for his granddaughter, so he said earnestly after hearing his wife¡¯s words, ¡°Your mom is right. I won¡¯t care about your other matters, but I¡¯m concerned about letting that womane back and take care of Essie. You should consider it carefully.¡± Upon hearing his father¡¯s words, Lucian finally reacted and looked up to meet their gaze. Sonya secretly sighed with relief, thinking that he had listened to their advice. At the thought of Aubree¡¯s aggrieved look that afternoon, she could not help but utter, ¡°It¡¯s all thanks to Aubree for staying by your side all these years. She even helped to take care of Essie and did all she could for us as though she were our biological daughter. From this perspective, how is she not better than Roxanne? A girl¡¯s youth doesn¡¯tst forever. You can¡¯t just keep her waiting.¡± Chapter 104 Chapter 104 Chapter 104 Aubree Takes Este To School Lucian remained silent until the couple had finished speaking before stating calmly, ¡°You¡¯re overthinking things. I¡¯ve no ns to let Roxannee back.¡± At least not now. While his parents were speaking earlier, he kept thinking about his interactions with Roxanne during this period and concluded that most of them were because of Este. As that thought urred to him, Lucian strangely felt a little ironic. Judging from Roxanne¡¯s attitude when we first met, she would¡¯ve probably avoided me if it wasn¡¯t for Essie¡¯s presence, and the matter that my parents are worried about now is even less likely to happen. Sonya¡¯s expression lightened up a little when she heard her son¡¯s words. ¡°I¡¯m d to hear that. In terms of Aubree, when do you n to settle down with her? The sooner you do that, Este will have Content held by N?velDrama.Org. someone to take care of her.¡± Lucian frowned as he turned her down, ¡°Compared to Roxanne, I¡¯m more worried about leaving Essie to Aubree. Essie has always distanced herself from her, so I still need to consider carefully about marriage.¡±However, Sonya made nothing out of it. ¡°Isn¡¯t Essie distancing herself from Aubree because you¡¯ve been unwilling to ept her? If you had married her earlier and let her spend more time with Essie, they would ultimately develop a good rtionship. Besides, we can tell that Aubree had always been devoted to caring for Essie all these years.¡± Hearing this, Lucian knitted his brows a little impatiently. ¡°Let¡¯s talk about thister. I¡¯m tired.¡± Over the years, although Aubree had always acted innocent and harmless before them and treated Este well, he did not think that the little girl would avoid her for no reason, aside from not having any feelings for Aubree. Now that his mother kept mentioning her, it only annoyed him further. Sonya sighed as her remaining words were cut off by him. ¡°We won¡¯t force you either. In any case, you should think about it carefully. Before that, let us take care of Essie first.¡± After speaking, she raised her voice to instruct Catalina to bring Este down from upstairs and extended her hand toward the little girl with a smile. Unaware of the confrontation between the adults, Este obediently buried herself in her grandmother¡¯s embrace. ¡°Be good, Essie, ande over to our house to y for two days, okay?¡± Sonya affectionately pinched Este¡¯s chubby cheek. The little girl blinked nkly and instinctively looked at her father. Lucian¡¯s expression tensed. ¡°Essie¡¯s living well at home, Mom. I can also take good care of her.¡± Sonya was displeased. ¡°You know very well why I want to take Essie away. Besides, your father and I miss her. So what if we want her to go over and apany us for two days?¡± Elias said in a deep voice to defuse the tense situation, ¡°I heard that Essie has just recovered from being sick, and you have been very busy these days, so let us take care of her first.¡± Hearing his father¡¯s words, Lucian could not help but feel troubled. He naturally knew that his mother intended not to let Este have any interactions with Roxanne, but he also could not refute what his father said. While he remained silent, Sonya got up and left with Este in her arms. Lucian did not say anything in the end, thinking that he would just head over and pick up the little girl in two days. Este was very well-behaved with her grandparents and fell asleep obediently after dinner. Meanwhile, Sonya called Aubree, telling her toe over in the morning to send Este to kindergarten, as she always felt that the little girl did not like Aubree because they spent too little time together. The following morning, Aubree arrived early, and after greeting the elders, she reached out to take Este¡¯s hand. Este had just eaten breakfast, and her face fell when she saw Aubreeing over. Upon seeing the ¡°Be good, Essie. Ms. Pearson is sending you to kindergarten. If you don¡¯t leave now, you¡¯ll bete,¡± Sonya patiently persuaded for a long time. Hearing this, Este hesitated for a while. However, at the thought that she would be able to see the two little boys when she arrived at the kindergarten, she dragged herself into the car. Chapter 105 Chapter 105 Chapter 105 Este Was pped On the way to the kindergarten, Este sat in the backseat while hugging her backpack with her gaze lowered, looking a little upset. Aubree was also determined to win the little girl over. At least, they had to appear close on the outside. Looking at Este¡¯s state through the rearview mirror, she pretended to ask in concern, ¡°Are you not feeling well, Essie? Do you want me to take you to the hospital?¡± Este did not even lift her head upon hearing her voice. Aubree frowned and continued to express concern in a sweet voice, ¡°How about I excuse you from school, and we head back to rest for the day?¡±Despite those words, she still received no reply. After waiting for a while, Aubree grew impatient. ¡°I¡¯m asking you a question, Este Farwell. What¡¯s with that expression? I can¡¯t even have a decent conversation with you?¡± Hearing her displeased tone, Este shuddered and hugged her backpack tighter. Upon noticing Este¡¯s visible resistance to her and recalling Sonya¡¯s words the night before regarding the reason Lucian was unwilling to marry her, Aubree grew angrier the more she thought about it. If it weren¡¯t for this little brat¡¯s attitude toward me, would Roxanne have any reason to be by Lucian¡¯s side now? I also won¡¯t have to feel on edge because Roxanne is back in the country! After thinking for a while, Aubree drove the car to the side of the road in displeasure and mmed on the brakes. Este was caught off guard and tipped forward unsteadily. She pursed her lips as she looked up and promptly met Aubree¡¯s burning gaze through the rearview mirror. As soon as they locked eyes, Este¡¯s eyes constricted, and she looked around frantically. Every time this awfuldy does something to me, she always has this expression, but there¡¯s no way for me to ask for help now¡­ Aubree¡¯s anger rose upon seeing her frightened look. She opened the car door and entered the back seat before mming the door closed. Este hurriedly moved to distance herself from Aubree, but thetter grabbed her arm roughly. ¡°What is the meaning of this, Little Mute? You¡¯re disying hatred toward me for your dad to see, isn¡¯t it?¡± Aubree looked at her ferociously as she exerted more force into her grip. ¡°Have I not treated you well all these years? I¡¯m so close to worshipping you like my ancestor, yet this is how you repay me? Do you truly think I dare not to do anything to you?¡± Este was in so much pain that her eyes reddened, but she still bit her lip and made no sound, merely lowering her eyes and not daring to look at the woman. Aubree grew angrier at herck of response. She pulled Este onto herp and pped the little girl¡¯s bottom without holding back. ¡°Stupid mute. Do you truly think that I would appease you if it wasn¡¯t for the sake of being with Lucian? Disrespectful creature. It¡¯s one thing not repaying me, but daring to show affection toward Roxanne, that b*tch? Such an ungrateful child! Let me tell you this. You have to ept my marriage to your dad no matter what! Otherwise, don¡¯t me me for what happens next.¡± The crisp ps echoed within the car alongside Aubree¡¯s vicious cursing. Despite her reddened eyes and tears threatening to roll out, Este stubbornly bit her lip, unwilling to cry in front of the wicked woman. ¡°You¡¯re still being stubborn!¡± Upon seeing that the little girl remained silent, Aubree pinched her inner thigh mercilessly. ¡°Let¡¯s see how much you can tolerate!¡± N?velDrama.Org ? content. Este kicked her leg in pain as tears flowed out uncontrobly. While crying silently, she tried to get off the woman¡¯sp by struggling hard. Chapter 106 Chapter 106 Chapter 106 It Was Supposed To Hurt Aubree only allowed Este to get off of her when she heard the child beginning to get out of breath from crying so much. Este immediately crawled toward the window on the other side of the car while enduring the pain and clutching her schoolbag to her chest as she continued sobbing. ¡°Good! It was supposed to hurt,¡± Aubree scoffed as she red at the little girl. ¡°If you tell anyone about what happened today, I swear to God that you¡¯ll never see that woman ever again.¡± Only then did she go back to the front seat and drove Este to the kindergarten. ¡°We¡¯re here. Wipe those tears off of your face,¡± Aubreemanded after they reached the kindergarten. Este hurriedly dried her face, afraid that she really wouldn¡¯t be able to see her beloved Ms. Jarvis after this because of Aubree¡¯s threat. Aubree nced at her and felt like her face seemed clean enough. She opened the door, and as they walked toward the gates together hand-in-hand, she hissed, ¡°Don¡¯t cry or make a fuss again. If anyone can see even a single mark of a tear on your face, you¡¯ll know what I have in store for you.¡±Right after she had hissed at Este, Aubree looked back up again with a sweet smile stered on her face. Este did her best to hold her tears back and obediently walked toward her teacher, bowing toward her. ¡°Hello, Este!¡± her teacher greeted cheerfully. She spotted the hastily dried tears on Este¡¯s cheeks and frowned in concern. ¡°What happened? Why have you been crying?¡± Aubree¡¯s expression changed rapidly but settled just as quickly. ¡°I don¡¯t know what¡¯s gotten into her. N?velDrama.Org ? content. She was making a huge fuss today and didn¡¯t want toe to school. We spent the longest time having to coddle her before she finally let us drag her out here.¡± The teacher frowned in confusion upon hearing that. ¡°Really? Este has never hated school before. What happened?¡± Aubree frowned but quickly covered it up with a smile, hurriedly changing the subject. ¡°Maybe she¡¯s not feeling too well today. After all, her fever has only just gone down. Please keep an eye on her. If anything happens, please contact me.¡± The teacher agreed with a smile, not looking too much into it. Aubree handed Este over to the teacher and pretended to give her a couple of words of advice before turning to leave. She had only just gotten into her car when she spotted a familiar Mercedes-Benz parked in front of the kindergarten. Roxanne brought her two children out of the car soon after. Este¡¯s expression cleared up, and she began to look as right as rain once the three of them showed up. Aubree¡¯s expression darkened rapidly. She watched bitterly as Roxanne chatted casually with the teacher before handing the kids over, and her expression remained gloomy until Roxanne got into her car and left. She only stopped watching once the Mercedes-Benz disappeared at the end of the road. If she remembered correctly, the Farwell family had invested in the kindergarten. She couldn¡¯t help but be extremely suspicious. Lucian must have bumped into Roxanne at least once whenever he picked up or dropped off Este. Besides, as a shareholder, there was no way he wouldn¡¯t know that Roxanne¡¯s kids studied here. Este also showed how much she liked the woman, so who knew how much they had going on behind Aubree¡¯s back? Aubree felt more uneasy the more she thought about it. She spotted the teacher still standing there and decided to just get out of her car, all the while wearing a solemn expression on her face. Seeing that she had returned, the teacher asked with a smile, ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Miss? Is there anything I can help you with?¡± Aubree bowed slightly. ¡°Hello. I¡¯d like to introduce myself. I¡¯m the owner of Pearson Group and would like to make a donation of some yground equipment to this kindergarten. Could I please speak to the head of the kindergarten?¡± Chapter 107 Chapter 107 Chapter 107 Expel Those Two Children The teacher immediately agreed with a smile once she heard that Aubree wanted to donate to the kindergarten and called the head of the kindergarten. She hung up after a short conversation and brought Aubree to the head¡¯s office. He had been waiting in his office for a while and immediately poured a cup of tea for Aubree the moment they entered. ¡°Please take a seat, Ms. Pearson,¡± he said with arge smile on his face. Aubree took the cup of tea from him and sat down on the opposite seat. ¡°I assume you¡¯ve probably heard of my reason foring here.¡± The head of kindergarten nodded. ¡°I heard you wanted to donate some equipment to the kindergarten. I want to thank you on behalf of the children.¡± He had just finished talking when he noticed how stoic the person in front of him looked. Aubree sipped her tea with a chilly expression and said just as coldly, ¡°That¡¯s not all. I¡¯m willing to donate five million to this kindergarten as well. You can do whatever you want with it, in exchange for one simple favor.¡±The head of kindergarten looked at her in confusion. ¡°Which is¡­?¡± ¡°A little while ago, the kindergarten seems to have taken in Roxanne Jarvis¡¯ children. I would like for you to expel them from this institute.¡± Aubree narrowed her eyes, her expression frosty. The head of kindergarten and the teacher looked at each other in confusion upon hearing Aubree¡¯s words. Lucian had mentioned it to them before, but he had taken it back rather quickly. Now, they were hearing it again from Aubree. ¡°If you don¡¯t mind me asking, Ms. Pearson, what happened between you and Ms. Jarvis?¡± the head of kindergarten asked cautiously. Aubree red at him. ¡°You don¡¯t need to know so much. All you need to know is that I don¡¯t want her children and the Farwell children in the same school. I believe you¡¯re notpletely unaware of the arranged marriage between the Pearson family and the Farwell family.¡± The head of kindergarten nodded frantically. ¡°Yes, I¡¯ve heard about it.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve had some personal issues with Roxanne in the past. I¡¯ll be Este¡¯s mother soon, and if my daughter gets bullied by her son, will you be responsible for that?¡± Aubree threatened mildly. At the mention of the Farwell family, the head of kindergarten thought about how Lucian had said himself to not expel those children. Didn¡¯t that mean that he wanted them to stay in this kindergarten? But now that the future Mrs. Farwell was making such a request, the head of the kindergarten didn¡¯t really know what to do. Aubree noticed his hesitation and ced her teacup down, clinking it loudly against the table. The head of kindergarten¡¯s heart clenched nervously due to knowing her power. ¡°The Farwells have also invested in this kindergarten quite a bit, right? Imagine what a few words from me could do to your future. You definitely won¡¯t have their investments to look forward to,¡± Aubree said, adding fuel to the fire. The head of kindergarten broke out in a cold sweat. He couldn¡¯t really go against her will because of her constant mentions of Lucian, so after a long bout of hesitation, he finally relented. ¡°I got it. I will expel them.¡± Aubree smiled in satisfaction. ¡°I want to hear news of those kids getting expelled by tonight. If so, the five million will be going straight to the kindergarten¡¯s ount.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. The head of kindergarten nodded feverishly to everything she said. ¡°Since our deal has gone through, I won¡¯t be staying for much longer,¡± Aubree said as she stood up. Both the teacher and the head of kindergarten sent her off at the gate. When she was about to leave, Aubree seemed to remember something and turned back to warn them coldly, ¡°I almost forgot. Please keep everything that went on today under wraps. I don¡¯t want Roxanne She was mainly afraid that Lucian would hear about her doing things without his approval, but she didn¡¯t want the head of kindergarten to feel suspicious. That was why she just used Roxanne¡¯s name. The head of kindergarten nodded in agreement. Chapter 108 Chapter 108 Chapter 108 What Exactly Does Lucian Mean That night, Roxanne rushed over after work, barely in time to pick Archie and Benny up from school. Only the two of them were left at the kindergarten gates and their teacher was taking care of them. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry foring sote,¡± Roxanne said with an apologetic smile, reaching out to hold her children¡¯s hands. Unexpectedly, Pippa moved to stand slightly in front of them and smiled ufortably at her. ¡°I¡¯ll help you look after them for just a little while more. The head of kindergarten has something to talk to you about. He¡¯s in his office right now.¡± Roxanne didn¡¯t really know what was going on, but she still went upstairs and knocked on his door. The head of kindergarten¡¯s expression also seemed strangely suspicious. ¡°Pippa told me you wanted to talk to me about something. What¡¯s wrong?¡± Roxanne asked. The head of kindergarten smiled in an extremely business-like way as he said slowly, ¡°This is the problem. I¡¯ve been observing your children for thest two days, and I feel like they are simply not suitable for our kindergarten. Maybe you should consider giving them a change of environment.¡±So he just wants to expel Archie and Benny! Roxanne frowned but remained polite. ¡°Did they do something wrong today at school? If that¡¯s the case, I will definitely tell them off at home. Please don¡¯t worry. I can promise that they won¡¯t do it¡ª¡± She wasn¡¯t done with her promises when the head of kindergarten cut her off abruptly, ¡°The two of them have done fine. However, I wouldn¡¯t like them to stay in this kindergarten any longer. Of course, I will do my best to return all of the school fees you have paid.¡± Roxanne began to feel like something was up. ¡°It¡¯s not the money I have a problem with. Since my children are doing great, then why are you expelling them? You have to give me a reason that I can at least tell my kids.¡± The head of kindergarten frowned. ¡°There¡¯s no other reason.¡± He couldn¡¯t help but feel guilty as he said it. Those two kids had, in fact, been doing extremely well in school. Compared to other kids their age, they acted like two small adults who never let their teacher worry and actually helped her take care of the other kids. The kindergarten didn¡¯t actually have any reason to expel them. Since it was amanding from a benefactor, though, he couldn¡¯t back out of it. He couldn¡¯t even look her in the eye after speaking. Roxanne did her best to control her anger and remain calm as she attempted to reason with him. ¡°I sent my kids to your kindergarten because I trusted you, but you¡¯re seriously disappointing me right now. How could you expel my kids for no reason? I can report this to the ministry of education.¡± N?velDrama.Org ? content. He was beginning to feel the guilt eating away at him but still answered, ¡°Then go ahead and report me. I won¡¯t be changing my mind.¡± With the Pearson family and the Farwell family backing the kindergarten, the ministry of education probably couldn¡¯t do anything to him. After scrutinizing the head of kindergarten, Roxanne calmed down, and her tone turned chilly. ¡°If this gets out and the other parents hear about you expelling two children for no reason, don¡¯t you think they¡¯ll be suspicious? Even if you don¡¯t get punished by the ministry of education, the other parents might not trust you anymore and change schools. That would be a problem for this kindergarten now, wouldn¡¯t it?¡± The head of kindergarten visibly panicked at that and looked at her helplessly. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, it¡¯s not difficult for you to find another kindergarten with your abilities. Why are you trying to make my life harder?¡± Roxanne was getting more suspicious by the minute. From the looks of it, someone was definitely controlling him from behind the scenes. It seemed like that person was quite an important figure too. Roxanne rxed slightly with that thought in mind. ¡°Okay, I¡¯ll stop doing that, but you have to tell me who told you to do this.¡± The head of kindergarten fell silent at the thought of Aubree¡¯s parting words. ¡°Is it Farwell Group?¡± Roxanne could only think of one possibility. The head of kindergarten hesitated before nodding slowly. Aubree was soon going to be Mrs. Farwell anyway. It wasn¡¯t exactly a lie to say it was the Farwell family, and since she kept bringing Lucian up, the head of kindergarten assumed that he was also on the same page. Roxanne¡¯s expression darkened when he nodded. What does Lucian mean by all this? Chapter 109 Chapter 109 Chapter 109 Please Let My Children Go Roxanne picked her kids up after walking out of the office. ¡°I¡¯m still a little busy, so why don¡¯t I get Aunt Madilyn to apany you two for a bit?¡± Roxanne suppressed her anger and asked the two kids with a smile. The two of them didn¡¯t think too much of it and nodded obediently, assuming she was busy with work. Roxanne handed them over to her best friend and returned to the car, her expression souring once again. She immediately drove off to the Farwell residence. ¡°Hello, Ms. Jarvis,¡± Catalina greeted. She was about to say more when she noticed the look on Roxanne¡¯s face, causing her to swallow her words. Roxanne nodded at her briefly and turned to the living room. ¡°Is Lucian here? I¡¯d like to speak to him.¡± Catalina nodded quickly. ¡°Yes, he is. I¡¯ll go upstairs and call him.¡±Soon after, she came downstairs with Lucian following behind her and Este tottering down behind both of them. Lucian still didn¡¯t trust Este with his parents and had waited at the kindergarten gates before they opened so that he could pick her up early. Este¡¯s mood had clearly improved since she didn¡¯t need to see that mean woman. Now that she saw that Roxanne was here, her gaze was simply sparkling with admiration, and she ran toward her with her arms out. Roxanne¡¯s heart softened momentarily at the sight of the child, and she caressed her head. ¡°I have something to talk to your daddy about. Go over there and y on your own for a little, alright?¡± Este nodded and began ying with her doll on the carpet next to the couch. Lucian frowned. ¡°What do you want?¡± Roxanne¡¯s long-suppressed anger exploded at the sound of his voice. ¡°Lucian, if you have a problem with me, then take it out on me. Why are you doing this to Archie and Benny? What did they ever do to you? They¡¯ve always been so respectful of you, and they took such good care of your daughter. You have no reason to bully two kids, even on behalf of Este.¡± Lucian didn¡¯t expect Roxanne¡¯s sudden visit, much less her sudden outburst. He frowned even more deeply at her usations. ¡°What did I do to the two of them?¡± Roxanne smirked coldly at his confusion. ¡°Who are you trying to fool? Who else has the power to expel people from the kindergarten? Stop trying to act innocent. It won¡¯t work on me.¡± Lucian stiffened in shock and immediately started to exin, ¡°I did talk to the head of kindergarten before, but that already¡ª¡± Roxanne didn¡¯t even let him finish his sentence before she bellowed angrily, ¡°Don¡¯t you think you¡¯re going a little bit overboard? No matter what happened in the past, it should stay between us. Juste N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. at me instead! I won¡¯t say no to that, but the kids are innocent. They don¡¯t know anything. Why are you doing this to them?¡± She dug her fingernails into her palm in an attempt to calm herself down. Trying her best to stop her voice from wavering, she continued, ¡°Yes, I shouldn¡¯t have done that in the past. That was my fault, so feel free to get revenge on me for that. But please, can¡¯t you find it in your generous, generous heart to forgive my kids?¡± She looked down after that, feeling her eyes start to water from frustration. The head of kindergarten had been right. It wasn¡¯t hard for her to find another kindergarten for the kids, but that was only if Lucian didn¡¯t interfere. If he wasn¡¯t willing to let either of them go, then she couldn¡¯t do anything no matter how much power she had. She scoffed at herself with that thought in mind. She thought that Lucian and she had been on decent terms recently. Even though they hadn¡¯t be best friends overnight or anything, they were still courteous with each other and had seemed to leave everything behind them. Disappointingly, those feelings had beenpletely one-sided on her part. Apparently Lucian still only saw her as a menace. Lucian¡¯s heart clenched at the sight of the person in front of him acting all stubborn but still letting how wronged she was feeling show through. He actually felt at a loss for words. He even began to feel bad about even bringing the matter up to the head of kindergarten. Chapter 110 Chapter 110 Chapter 110 Drawing Clear Boundaries Este was still ying with her doll on the carpet and couldn¡¯t help but nce at Roxanne every now and then. She managed to hear their conversation loud and clear. When she heard Roxanne asking her father why he expelled the two nice older boys, Este frowned in confusion. She expected to hear her father exin that he had already gotten rid of that idea, but he didn¡¯t speak for a long time. Este pouted angrily. Daddy¡¯s a liar and a bad guy! He promised me not to expel Archie and Benny but still ended up doing it! With that thought in mind, Este tossed her toy onto the floor angrily and ran upstairs without looking back. I¡¯ll never trust Daddy again!Lucian heard Este running upstairs and felt an oing headache at the sight of her. It was easy to figure out that she had overheard their conversation and misunderstood him again, causing her to throw another one of her little temper tantrums. If he didn¡¯t exin, she would probably get even angrier. Lucian massaged his temples and said in a deep voice, ¡°I did talk to the head of kindergarten before, but after Este was done throwing her tantrum, I told him not to expel the two of them. I really have no clue what you¡¯re talking about. If you want, I can ask him for you.¡± Roxanne felt like he was simply faking it and said calmly, ¡°Why should I believe you? It¡¯s already happened, and the head of kindergarten is under you. Naturally, he would stand with you no matter what you say. Lucian, do you really think I¡¯m an idiot?¡± She wasn¡¯tpletely wrong. Lucian could actually feel a headache beginning to clench in his skull, and he wanted to exin further, but the person in front of him had already stood up. ¡°I wish I never met you.¡± Her tone was calm, and she enunciated each word clearly. As soon as the words left her lips, she turned around and left. At this, Lucian¡¯s face immediately darkened, and he watched as she stalked off, almost boring a hole in her back with his stare. As her figure slowly disappeared from his field of sight, Lucian took his phone out and called Cayden. ¡°Go and find out what happened at the kindergarten. Find out why the hell they went against my direct orders!¡± Cayden could hear the pure rage in his boss¡¯ voice and immediately obeyed. Roxanne began feeling exhausted after driving away from the Farwell residence and looked around, deciding to stop by a dark roadside so she could simply zone out. Why is Lucian doing this? If he knew he was doing this to his own sons, how would he feel? What would her two kids feel if they knew how much their father hated them? Roxanne didn¡¯t even want to think about how the two of them would feel. Besides, with Lucian there, she really didn¡¯t know where to send her two kids to. She was afraid that every other kindergarten would turn her down for the same exact reasons. Roxanne felt full of guilt toward Archie and Benny when she thought about what might happen to them in the near future. Her eyes began to redden once again, and countless tears began to fall like a string of broken pearls down her cheeks. She took in two deep breaths and forced herself to calm down. This had finally made it clear to her that Lucian would never ept Archie and Benny as his own. Archie and Benny only had her now, so she had to be strong for them. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Luckily, it was just a matter of not going to kindergarten. It was a good opportunity to really draw clear boundaries with Lucian. From today onward, she would make sure they no longer had anything to do with each other. Chapter 111 Chapter 111 Chapter 111 Guilty But Pitiful Roxanne sped back home after thinking things through. The kids had already eaten, and Madilyn was watching a science channel with them. The three of them stood up and rushed toward her when she walked in. Her two sons could tell that their mom wasn¡¯t in the best mood and hugged one leg each, looking at her in concern. ¡°Mommy, did something happen? You look so tired.¡± Roxanne¡¯s heart warmed up at the sound of their concern, and she did her best to force out a smile. ¡°Nothing¡¯s wrong. Just some stuff at work that is a bit hard to deal with.¡± Knowing how hard their mother¡¯s job was, the two boys didn¡¯t question it andforted her, ¡°Mommy, you can definitely do it! You¡¯re the best!¡± Roxanne nodded and looked at the time, ushering them to go upstairs and sleep.The two of them obediently went upstairs, leaving only Roxanne and Madilyn in the living room. Madilyn could already tell that her best friend was feeling down the moment she walked in and asked, ¡°What happened? Don¡¯t even think about lying to me. I could tell you were lying just now.¡± Roxanne hesitated for a few seconds before telling Madilyn about everything that had happened today. When she heard about Lucian being petty enough to take it out on the two kids, Madilyn was extremely pissed off. ¡°What kind of man is he? How can he do that to kids? I won¡¯t let this happen to my godsons! I¡¯m going to tell him off.¡± She was about to storm out of the house, but Roxanne quickly pulled her back. They sat down on the couch and Roxanne chuckled. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I¡¯ve already gone to talk to him. On the way back, I thought it through. You know what? This is a good chance to really cut things off with him. I don¡¯t have to worry about him stealing the boys away from me anymore.¡± However, Madilyn still couldn¡¯t let it go. ¡°What about Archie and Benny? How are you going to exin to them?¡± Roxanne was still stressing out about that. She hesitated before replying, ¡°I¡¯lle up with something.¡± The two of them continued chatting about the matter for a little while until it gotte and Madilyn went N?velDrama.Org ? content. home. Early the next day, the two kids woke up right on time and ate breakfast, waiting for their mother to send them to school. Roxanne hadn¡¯t slept for almost the entire night trying toe up with an excuse, but the moment she saw the two of them sitting there all bright-eyed, she almost cracked. Still, she went along with the excuse she hade up with. ¡°I¡¯ve been thinking about it and I feel like you two don¡¯t have to go to kindergarten anymore since you guys are well past that stage. I¡¯ll send you two to some specialty sses instead, okay?¡± The two of them seemed like they didn¡¯t really know what was going on. Roxanne chuckled and said, ¡°Benny, you¡¯re interested inputing, right? How about I sign you up for prefer something else?¡± The two kids finally realized what was going on and looked at their mother in confusion. ¡°Why aren¡¯t we going to kindergarten anymore, Mommy? We didn¡¯t even say goodbye to Essie. If she doesn¡¯t see us, she¡¯ll definitely start crying.¡± Roxanne felt her heart prickle at the memory. Lucian had brought Este over personally, and she had gotten along perfectly with her two sons. They all had a rather good time. She was even worried that Lucian would sense something was off. She definitely hadn¡¯t expected something like this to happen just a few dayster. With this in mind, Roxanne shook her thoughts away and said, ¡°I¡¯ll talk to Essie for you guys, so why don¡¯t you go get prepared? I need to stop by the school so they can do all the necessary procedures.¡± The two boys still didn¡¯t really know what was going on, but since their mother seemed to already have made up her mind, they just nodded. Once Roxanne walked off, the two of them ran over to the house next door and knocked. Madilyn opened the door and saw the two of them standing in her doorway. When she thought about what Roxanne had saidst night, she couldn¡¯t help but feel both guilty and pitiful at the same time. She couldn¡¯t withstand the two boys¡¯ interrogation for long and told them everything. When they heard that their father had expelled them from kindergarten, Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s expressions immediately darkened, and they began to look disappointed. Chapter 112 Chapter 112 Chapter 112 I Will Not Keep Annoying You After learning the truth, the two of them bid goodbye to Madilyn and trotted home sadly. Madilyn didn¡¯t know she could be won over so easily. When she saw how disappointed the two kids were, she hurriedly applied for a leave from work and went over to apany them. Archie and Benny werepletely down. All this time, they had been under the impression that their father probably didn¡¯t really hate them. Now that they knew he had expelled them from school, they realized that he did actually hate their guts. Benny couldn¡¯t help but tear up at the thought, and his small hands clutched at the couch cover nervously, his small mouth pressed into a straight line. Archie was also extremely disappointed, but he was slightly calmerpared to his brother. When he saw the tears in Benny¡¯s eyes, he began tofort his brother. ¡°Don¡¯t cry over that bad man. If he doesn¡¯t like us, then we shouldn¡¯t like him either. Besides, Mommy doesn¡¯t seem like she wants us to know about it, so let¡¯s pretend like we don¡¯t know, okay? Let¡¯s not make her worry.¡±Benny sniffed and nodded silently. Meanwhile, Roxanne had just finished up at the kindergarten when she bumped into Lucian, who was sending Este to school. Este looked as if she was in another mood and was pouting, barely letting her father drag her to school. When their eyes met, Este¡¯s gaze lit up as if she were excited about something. Roxanne¡¯s heart lifted for a second but dropped again at the sight of the man next to the child. The two of them quickly approached her. Este tugged at Roxanne¡¯s skirt lightly as she looked up at thetter with watery eyes, as if waiting for her to say something. Roxanne fell silent before stepping back slightly, removing her skirt from Este¡¯s grip. ¡°Archie and Benny won¡¯t being here anymore, so you should take care of yourself, okay? You can make friends with the other kids.¡± She saw the light in Este¡¯s eyes slowly fading off as she spoke and Roxanne looked away, trying her best to sound calm. ¡°I have to go to work. Goodbye.¡± After that, she walked past them and was about to go back to her car when arge hand grabbed her wrist. Roxanne stopped abruptly and turned back, meeting his gaze dully. ¡°Is there something you need, Mr. Farwell?¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. Lucian frowned. ¡°Expelling the boys was not my idea. This is a misunderstanding.¡± Roxanne scoffed at that. ¡°I can¡¯t believe you¡¯re still trying to defend yourself now, Mr. Farwell. I¡¯m willing to hear your excuses, though. Who¡¯s the lucky one you chose to frame this time?¡± Lucian didn¡¯t seem annoyed at her tone and said in a deep voice, ¡°I asked Cayden to look into it. This is all because of Aubree. Because of what I said previously, the head of kindergarten was under the assumption that I was okay with it.¡± Lucian trailed off, full of regret about what he had said. He had never felt so much regret in his life than the moment he learned about the reason behind the kids¡¯ expulsion. If he hadn¡¯t said that before, then the head of kindergarten wouldn¡¯t have misunderstood. He wanted to salvage the situation, so he had personally made a trip here today. Unexpectedly, he had bumped into Roxanne. Roxanne¡¯s expression became even more scornful at his exnation. ¡°Aubree? So basically it was your idea too, right? Who in Horington still doesn¡¯t know about the marriage between the Pearson family and the Farwell family? Aren¡¯t you afraid she¡¯ll feel bad after hearing how desperately you¡¯re trying to clear boundaries with her right now?¡± She pulled her wrist out of the man¡¯s grasp and said coldly, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mr. Farwell. I¡¯m not shameless, and I won¡¯t annoy you anymore, so you don¡¯t have to exin anything to me.¡± After that, she walked off without looking back. A dark cloud formed over Lucian¡¯s expression as he watched her leave. Este began crying uncontrobly after standing in shock for a few seconds. She tossed her father¡¯s hand aside and started to run after Roxanne¡¯s car. She had a feeling that she might not see Roxanne again after this. Este felt immense panic at the thought and she didn¡¯t know what to do. In her panic, she tripped over a rock on the ground and fell. Chapter 113 Chapter 113 Chapter 113 Her Autism Was Triggered Lucian watched in astonishment while his daughter chased after Roxanne¡¯s car frantically. She hasn¡¯t even met Roxanne that many times, so why is she so attached to her? While Lucian was mired in bafflement, the girl suddenly fell over, jolting him to his senses. He promptly hastened over to embrace her. ¡°Are you okay? Let Daddy have a look at you.¡± Este refused to let go of the arms she had wrapped tightly around his neck, and while he worried about her plight, he heard the little girl break into a sob. For a moment, Lucian thought his ears were ying tricks on him. Even if she was merely crying, that was the very first time she had broken her silence growing up. Este bawled her heart out and clung to him so tightly that he really felt it around his neck. In spite of the emotional turmoil he was experiencing, he endured it quietly and directed his own attention toward ¡°Ms. Jarvis¡­ want Ms. Jarvis¡­¡±Este¡¯s abrupt and stuttering enunciations of these words took Lucian aback, as he had never expected those to be her first words. To think that that woman would matter so much to her. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. The thought of that left a bitter taste in his mouth. In the end, he could only tell the girl the truth between gritted teeth. ¡°Ms. Jarvis is gone, but Daddy will be right here with you, so don¡¯t cry anymore.¡± Este¡¯s incessant weeping took so much out of her physically that her tiny body started trembling. Bereft of options, Lucian could only ask for her to be excused from school and take her home. On the way back, the little girl settled down, slowly but surely, only sniffling from time to time while she sat in the back seat in utter silence. Disregarding everyone when they got back in, she went straight back to her room and mmed the door behind her. Lucian assumed that Este must be on one of her usual tantrums, considering the frequency with which simr such outbursts from her had urred before. On top of everything else, his presence at thepany was still very much needed that day. After some deliberation, Lucian nheless asked Catalina to keep an eye on the girl before he drove over to the office. When he was just about finished with his work in the afternoon, a call came in from Catalina. ¡°Please She sounded almost panicky to him. With his heart in his throat, Lucian immediately set aside whatever he had on hand and drove homeward like a bat out of hell. ¡°After you left, I tried to console Ms. Este but saw that she had no reaction whatsoever no matter how I spoke to her¡­¡± Catalina was so unnerved that her voice was quivering. With swift strides and a tremendous sense of urgency, Lucian made his way into Este¡¯s room. Sitting curled up in the corner with vacuous eyes, the girl did not respond to their entrance. ¡°Daddy knows how upset you are, Essie, but you will still get to see Ms. Jarvis in the future, all right? This, I promise you.¡± In the past, the mention of Roxanne would at least elicit some sort of reaction from Este, but this time, she waspletely and unflinchingly immersed in her own world. Lucian¡¯s heart sank when he saw that. From the girl¡¯s reaction, it was evident that her autism had worked up. That realization prompted Lucian to phone and request the immediate attention of his good friend, James Lann. James was a well-regarded professional in the field of psychology and had been the one responsible for treating Este over the years. Very quickly, James came by to check on Este. He, too, became solemn after assessing her condition. Turning to the other two persons in the room, he said, ¡°Please step outside. I¡¯d like to try talking to her for a while.¡± Lucian and Catalina cooperatively did as asked. Inside the room, James patiently spoke to Este, but whatever he said was only met by her unfocused stares. Compared to their previous sessions together, this situation was proving to be significantly more challenging. Chapter 114 Chapter 114 Chapter 114 Unhappy With Him Close to an hourter, James stepped out of the room, looking quite exhausted. Nothing had worked to the effect that he was hoping for, in spite of him having doled out every trick in the book that he knew of just to coax some manner of response from Este. ¡°How did it go?¡± Lucian inquired anxiously. James shook his head. ¡°Essie haspletely shut herself in. She has refused tomunicate with anyone and is resistant even to me. My guess is that she must have been triggered by something. The only way to resolve this is by identifying the source of her trauma.¡± Lucian¡¯s expression dimmed when he heard that. Seemingly unaware of the change in his friend¡¯s mood, James continued to ask of thetter in earnest, ¡°Has Essie encountered any situation recently that might have brought about this change in her emotional state?¡± Memories of the kid breaking her silence because of Roxanne came flowing back to Lucian. The answer thus became obvious to him.After a moment¡¯s pause, Lucian recounted the events that N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. transpired earlier that morning. James was stunned after learning how that woman managed to bring about such a sharp fluctuation in Este¡¯s emotions. ¡°Perhaps this woman may be the key. Essie¡¯s condition may see some improvements if we could just get her toe over.¡± Getting that woman toe to Essie? Recalling the manner of the former¡¯s departure that morning caused Lucian¡¯s brows to bunch up in frustration. ¡°Got it. I¡¯ll try to talk to her about this.¡± James nodded. Elsewhere, Roxanne remainedpletely in the dark about Este¡¯s predicament. Unsure whether it was owing to what Lucian said to her, she had been feeling rather unsettled since leaving the kindergarten premises behind. As she reflected upon it, the man¡¯s tone of voice and expression did not seem feigned, but she had logical cause to believe that Lucian must be somehow involved. All the way home, Roxanne¡¯s mood had been in the doldrums but driven by concerns that her children would notice, she did her best to collect herself. The two wee ones had already sorted themselves out. When they saw her enter, they approached docilely. ¡°Are you done with the paperwork, Mommy?¡± Smilingly, Roxanne nodded as though nothing was wrong. She even mentioned her meeting with Este. ¡°It¡¯s done. I¡¯ve also spoken to Essie on your behalf.¡± ¡°Thanks, Mommy!¡± The children expressed their gratitude biddably. Patting them on the head gave Roxanne a greater sense of rootedness. Opposite them, the sight of the drama between the trio that was ying out in front of her pained Madilyn, who had be increasingly unhappy with Lucian. Leading their mother by her hands, the two kids sat her down on the couch excitedly. ¡°Since we can¡¯t go to kindergarten but haven¡¯t enrolled for tuition yet, would we be allowed to take a short break?¡± The doting mother of the pair of boys consented to their stated request without hesitancy. ¡°Sure. I can make arrangements for you to attend tuition after you¡¯ve rested enough.¡± ¡°In that case, could you also take a break for a while?¡± Benny hugged Roxanne¡¯s arm, appearing adorable. ¡°It¡¯s been so long since we¡¯ve been here that we¡¯ve gone out together. Take us out to y, won¡¯t you, Mommy? Archie and I would really like to go visit Universe Park because Aunt Madilyn told us that it is lots of fun!¡± In their discussion prior, they hade to the conclusion that their father¡¯s decision to have them expelled from the kindergarten could have saddened their mother no less than it did them, so they thought about getting her to go out and take a load off. Roxanne appeared a little apprehensive. Guessing as much how they felt, she thus chose to amodate them. ¡°I haven¡¯t been there in quite a while too. Seeing that I¡¯m on leave today, why don¡¯t we head there together?¡± Coupled with the fact that there she had nothing pressing to do over at the research institute, Roxanne was in no mood to go in for work anyway. Hence, she dispensed with her own hesitancy and assented. Gathering a few things, the four of them then set off for Universe Park together. Chapter 115 Chapter 115 Chapter 115 We Will Protect You Soon enough, the four of them arrived at Universe Park. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Even though Archie and Benny wanted to make their mother feel better, they had also been wanting to have some fun since before they arrived and had alreadye up with a n. Right after they entered, both of them tugged at Roxanne¡¯s hands, saying that they wanted to go to Jurassic Park to see the dinosaurs. She agreed to it and brought them to the park. Both children were so engrossed in their surroundings. Once they left Jurassic Park, they headed straight to the ET Adventure Ride for a trip to space on bicycles with the alien, ET. Roxanne was already feeling a little tired after the two rides. However, Archie and Benny were still in high spirits, and they went on many other rides after that. Each time they went on a new ride, they would insist on getting their pictures taken, and their mother would do as they wished every time. All the negative emotions from the past few days were forgotten having been distracted by their antics. After the discussion with James, Lucian still felt that it would be best if they called Roxanne over as soon as possible. Hence, he quickly gave her a call. However, she never picked up the call.His expression dimmed at that. After spending some time with her, he had almost forgotten how ruthless the woman could be. Not only would she not listen to his exnation, but she had also blocked his number on her phone too. It was as though she was trying to show him how resolute she was. ¡°How is it?¡± James¡¯ heart sank when he noticed the man¡¯s expression. Time wasn¡¯t on Este¡¯s side. The longer they waited, the worse her condition would get. Lucian followed his gaze and nced at the little girl¡¯s room, his voice low as he said, ¡°Please stay here and look after Essie. I¡¯m going to go look for her now.¡± Once he was done speaking, he headed straight for Roxanne¡¯s house with Cayden tagging along. The one who opened the door for them was the housekeeper from before. Seeing that it was them, she greeted with a smile, ¡°Are you here for Ms. Jarvis? She¡¯s not here right now. Do you want to head in and wait for her?¡± Lucian¡¯s face darkened at her words. ¡°Where did she go?¡± ¡°I think she went to Universe Park. Is something the matter? Should I inform her of your visit?¡± Lysa said. However, the man had already turned and left by the time she finished her sentence. Cayden then said with a smile, ¡°No need. We¡¯ll head there to look for her.¡± Then, he quickly followed closely behind Lucian. ¡°Mr. Farwell, where¡­¡± He had only made something up earlier as he did not know what thetter was thinking. ¡°We¡¯re going to Universe Park,¡± Lucian said, his brows furrowed. Hearing that, Cayden hurriedly drove to the theme park. After getting the tickets and entering the ce, both of them realized that they did not know where Roxanne was. ¡°Let¡¯s split up. Call me the moment you find her,¡± Lucian ordered coldly. Cayden nodded in response, and the both of them headed in different directions to look for the woman. Soon, the assistant called, ¡°Mr. Farwell, I think I see Ms. Jarvis.¡± Lucian asked for his whereabouts and instantly headed that way. Since it was a weekday, there weren¡¯t a lot of people visiting Universe Park. Both of them instantly saw the four figures standing outside the haunted house. It seemed as if the four of them were in a stalemate. Though, to be exact, Roxanne was at a standstill with Archie and Benny. The children were holding on to each of her arms, and she was standing rooted to the ground. ¡°Mommy! Come on in with us. We¡¯ll protect you,¡± Benny whined while tugging at her arm. Apprehension was written all over Roxanne¡¯s face. Right then, Archie chimed in, ¡°How are you going to be our role model if you¡¯re so timid, Mommy?¡± After a moment, she finally relented. ¡°All right¡­ I¡¯ll follow you guys in.¡± After saying that, she was dragged into the haunted house. At the same time, Lucian was following closely behind. Chapter 116 Chapter 116 Chapter 116 Into His Arms Everything was pitch ck the moment they stepped foot into the haunted house. Roxanne held tightly onto the children¡¯s hands while Madilyn led the way in front of them. Archie and Benny snickered silently. They had never expected their mother to be so afraid of ghosts. But she¡¯ll probably forget about whatever¡¯s been bothering her after getting scared here, right? With the n in mind, both of them decided to not tell her that their hands hurt from being held so tightly and dragged her along. The longer they walked, the more frightened Roxanne felt. She had been afraid of things like this since she was young. Even though she knew that ghosts weren¡¯t real, with the music and lights setting off the mood, she couldn¡¯t help but feel terrified. It was especially so when she didn¡¯t know when the NPCs would appear. The three people walking in front of her had been saying that they were going to console her. Yet, it seemed like they were not talking on purpose, making her more and more terrified. She wanted so much to just turn around and leave.However, at the thought of what Archie had said earlier, Roxanne braved it and continued walking ahead because she wanted to be the children¡¯s role model. Just as she was feeling restless, a pair of stiff legs appeared before her eyes. The woman froze upon seeing that, but she subconsciously looked up. Under the dim lights, a pale face with its tongue out hovered before her face. ¡°Ah¡­¡± At the sight of this, Roxanne felt as though her heart was about to jump out of her chest. She couldn¡¯t even make a sound out of shock. It was already toote by the time Archie and Benny realized that something was wrong with their mother. The woman flung her hands away from them and ran in the direction they came from. It¡¯s too terrifying. I want to leave! ¡°Mommy!¡± The children were stunned by her reaction. Nheless, they quickly chased after her once they snapped back to their senses. Madilyn turned around and saw the hanging ghost that had appeared some time ago. She couldn¡¯t help N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. but feel exasperated seeing this. The NPC had appeared at such perfect timing. It wasn¡¯t there when she and the children walked over. Yet, it had appeared right in front of Roxanne. The three of them went after the woman hastily. However, she was nowhere to be seen after taking two turns. At that moment, Madilyn, Archie, and Benny couldn¡¯t help but worry. They knew how much Roxanne feared these things. They only wanted to take her mind off of things when they brought her in here. No one had expected something like this to happen. She would have been shocked to the core if she ended up encountering a horrifying part of the haunted house alone. ¡°It¡¯s all my fault. I shouldn¡¯t have insisted that Mommye in here,¡± Benny mumbled guiltily. Madilyn didn¡¯t know what to say to console him at that point. Taking a look around, Archie took his brother¡¯s hand and said, ¡°This is not the time to be ming yourself. Let¡¯s look for Mommy now. If we really can¡¯t find her, we can go to the employees here for help.¡± At that, they started to look for Roxanne in the haunted house. Meanwhile, the woman was clueless about their worries. Fear had taken over her, and all she could think of at that moment was the stiff legs and the NPC¡¯s pale face. She had even forgotten about the three¡¯s existence as all she wanted was to leave the ce. Roxanne ran around the haunted house for a long time, but she was still unable to find the exit. She couldn¡¯t stop herself from feeling despair, and she started to mumble while running, ¡°Please don¡¯t scare me¡­ Please¡­¡± Suddenly, while in the dark, she bumped into someone¡¯s firm chest. The woman¡¯s body stiffened, and she let out a scream a momentter. Her mind had already gone nk. The four of them were nowhere in sight by the time Lucian and his assistant entered the haunted house. It turned out that they had gone through different entrances. Both of them spent so much time looking for them but to no avail. Just as he was starting to feel frustrated, someone fell right into his arms. Right when he was about to push the person away, he heard the screaming from the person. He paused instantly and started to take the person into his arms. B¨¬nh Lu?n (0) Chapter 117 Chapter 117 Chapter 117 What Is There To Exin Roxanne was scared out of her mind. Her body was trembling as she instinctively tried to burrow further into his embrace. When he felt her body tremble, Lucian¡¯s heart softened, and he asked, ¡°Why did youe in here if you¡¯re so scared?¡± She was too stunned to react when she heard his voice. Sighing, the man said, ¡°I¡¯ll bring you out.¡± Roxanne slowly snapped back to her senses. She felt that the voice was really familiar, and the scent surrounding her senses made her heart sink. Lucian? No. Why is he here?She looked up in confusion and met up with the man¡¯s worried eyes. Roxanne froze as soon as their eyes met. She responded immediately after, and all fear seemed to have left her body. Her face turned expressionless as she struggled to free herself from his embrace. Lucian could feel her resistance, and he quickly became cold toward her, allowing her to move away from him. ¡°Why are you here?¡± she asked, watching the man before her warily. Taking some time to recollect himself, Lucian replied indifferently, ¡°To find you.¡± Upon hearing that, Roxanne furrowed her brows slightly. ¡°I think I¡¯ve already made it clear enough. Seeing that you¡¯re doing so much to look for me, there must be something you want, right?¡± She had already blocked Lucian on all tforms after she left the kindergarten in the morning. Now that he had found her, all her efforts had gone to waste. Besides needing her help, Roxanne could not think of any other reason why he would look for her. Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened at her words. He originally nned to get straight to the point and tell her what he was after, but it felt as though her question had pierced right through his heart. If he were to tell her that he needed her help, the woman would havee up with something sarcastic to ridicule him. Staying silent for a few seconds, Lucian approached her in another way. ¡°I just think that I haven¡¯t given you a proper exnation regarding Archie and Benny getting kicked out of school. I hope that you¡¯ll N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. calm down and hear me out.¡± Roxanne was already determined that he was the one behind this incident. All she felt was irony when she heard what was just said. Exin? What¡¯s there to exin? Did he not have enough of his fun over the past few days? At the thought of this, a cold glint shed through her eyes. Her tone was distant as she said, ¡°Mr. Farwell, you hold great power, so do whatever you want. You don¡¯t have to deliberately exin after doing what you did. I don¡¯t want to hear it either.¡± The man scrunched up his brows as he said, ¡°I always have a clear conscience whenever I do things, and there¡¯s nothing I wouldn¡¯t admit to. However, this isn¡¯t my doing. I¡¯ve been med by someone else for no reason. I admit that I have spoken to the head of the kindergarten to kick Archie and Benny out when I found out that they were in the same school as Essie. But after the fuss she made that day, I promised I would never do it again as a consideration for my daughter¡¯s feelings. The only reason this whole thing had happened was that Aubree saw that the boys were studying there when she sent Essie to school that morning. She took the liberty of telling the head of the kindergarten to expel the boys. I only found out about this when you came looking for me.¡± In the end, he was saying that Aubree was behind everything. This made Roxanne feel more ridiculed. ¡°So? What makes you different from her? You made the request first, and as your marriage partner, when Aubree brought it up again, do you think that the head of the kindergarten would not have thought about what you said? Ultimately, this all happened because of you!¡± Upon hearing her putting Aubree and him together again, Lucian couldn¡¯t stop himself from feeling frustrated. ¡°She¡¯s her own person, and I¡¯m my own. Why do you always lump us together? I have no reason to intervene in Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s lives. I¡¯ve already warned the head of the kindergartenst night. The boys can return to kindergarten any time now.¡± Chapter 118 Chapter 118 Chapter 118 Not Her Child Roxanne found his words humorous. She could still clearly remember how the man had sworn that he would not marry anyone else but Aubree six years ago. He had even treated her coldly because she had taken Aubree¡¯s ce. Yet, now that six years had passed, he was separating himself from that woman. Roxanne wondered how Aubree would feel if she were to hear what Lucian had said. Nheless, regardless of the truth, the head of kindergarten had still received thetter¡¯s orders. Besides, Roxanne had already made up her mind to draw a clear line between her and Lucian. If something like this could happen once, there was a possibility for a second urrence. She didn¡¯t want her children to get hurt even when they were innocent. Having thought of that, Roxanne gathered her emotions, not wanting to obsess over this issue anymore. ¡°I¡¯ve already listened to your exnation. If there is nothing else, I will be leaving now,¡± she said apathetically.With that said, she turned to leave. She didn¡¯t want to stay any longer in this haunted house. Now that she was in a more reasonable state of mind, she was sure that she would be able to find the exit quickly. I can wait for Madilyn and the boys once I¡¯m outside. The woman had only just turned around when the man grabbed her wrist. Roxanne halted her steps and turned back to ask icily, ¡°What else do you want, Mr. Farwell?¡± Pausing for a moment, Lucian decided toe clean. ¡°I need your help with something.¡± At his words, she bit her lower lip in disdain. I knew it. If he didn¡¯t need my help, why would he work so hard to find me? ¡°You know that Essie had made a fuss when she didn¡¯t see Archie and Benny at the kindergarten the bigger fuss. Her autism was triggered when she saw you leave this morning, and she locked herself up. Nothing works no matter what we say. Her psychologist said that it might work if you came, so I¡¯d like you to follow me back.¡± Lucian¡¯s expression was grim, and he did not loosen his grip on her wrist, seemingly afraid that she would leave just like that. Roxanne was briefly stunned at his words. I can¡¯t believe Este¡¯s condition is so bad that they even need to hire a psychologist. Based on his words, it seems like even the psychologist can¡¯t do anything about it. What¡¯s more, she¡¯s only like this because of Archie and Benny¡­ I didn¡¯t know that they¡¯re so important to her. She started to falter at the thought of Este¡¯s teary face thest time she went to look for them. However, she remembered that she was Aubree¡¯s daughter, and a determined glint shed across her eyes. ¡°You¡¯ve been saying that Archie and Benny getting expelled was all because of Aubree, Mr. Farwell. Why do you think I would help you? She has been bullying my children like that, so why should I help her daughter? Do you think I¡¯m a saint?¡± Roxanne questioned coldly after she snapped back to her senses. Then, she struggled to free herself from Lucian¡¯s grip. The man tightened his grip on her, a hint of bewilderment written on his face. Seeing the look on his face, Roxanne frowned in puzzlement. Lucian snapped out of it a momentter and narrowed his eyes. His voice was cold as he asked, ¡°What do you mean? Did you think that Essie is Aubree¡¯s daughter?¡± The woman thought that he was about to drag her away forcefully and was prepared to attack him. Yet, she was taken aback by his question. In an instant, she felt a tug at her heartstrings. Nheless, she pretended to be calm and replied with Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. a question, ¡°Is she not?¡± Besides Aubree, she couldn¡¯t think of any other woman. Chapter 119 Chapter 119 Chapter 119 What Will You Do To Mommy Lucian¡¯s expression darkened, and he stared attentively at Roxanne. However, he couldn¡¯t identify any trace of disingenuousness. Lucian looked away eventually, his heart throttled, and he was swarmed by a wave of confusion. All this while, Roxanne thought that Este was Aubree¡¯s child! He was under the impression that Este was abandoned by Roxanne. When Roxanne acted aloof toward Este when she returned to the country, Lucian thought that Roxanne was a cold-hearted woman. However, from the way she spoke earlier, she seemed to not know that Este was her child. What is going on? Or is she such a great actor that she¡¯s managed to deceive me? Lucian was perplexed and dumbfounded.It was only after a long time that Lucian managed to recollect his thoughts. He held on to her slender wrist, lowered his voice, and uttered word-by-word in precise rity, ¡°Since when did I say that Este is Aubree¡¯s child?¡± Roxanne¡¯s wrist started to hurt, but she was distracted by his mind-blowing statement. Shock and suspicion filled her heart. Este is not Aubree¡¯s child! No wonder Aubree was not there that day when Este was sick. However, from what she knew, no one else got together with Lucian besides Aubree. Who can it be? Who¡¯s Este¡¯s mother? The thoughts started to overwhelm Roxanne, and she struggled to resist popping the question. ¡°Mommy!¡± two familiar voices called out to Roxanne. ¡°We finally found you! Are you okay?¡± The children ran frantically toward Roxanne, whose wrist was clutched tightly by Lucian. Archie and Benny exchanged nces before scrambling toward Roxanne. N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. ¡°Mommy, don¡¯t be worried. We will protect you!¡± Benny extended his arm and stood in front of Roxanne. He looked up, and he finally saw Lucian¡¯s face clearly. Archie, too, walked to Roxanne¡¯s side and held on to her arm. With a deadly stare, he looked Lucian ferociously in the eye. Realizing that it was Lucian, Archie¡¯s face tensed as he pursed his lips. He then stormed furiously toward Lucian, mustered all his strength, and pushed Lucian away forcefully. ¡°Let go of my Mommy! What do you want to do to her?¡± Lucian frowned before releasing his grip. He quickly exined, ¡°I¡¯m just asking your Mommy for help. I¡¯m not going to harm her.¡± Archie nheless continued to stare at him warily. Benny turned backward and held on to Roxanne¡¯s hand. He shook her hand gently and said, ¡°Mommy, are you okay? Did he bully you? Archie and I will protect you!¡± Roxanne, however, had yet to recover from her discovery about Este¡¯s background. In response, she shook her head mindlessly. ¡°Don¡¯t worry.¡± Looking at her troubled expression, Benny became even more worried. Enraged, he red in response at Lucian. Stupid Daddy! It¡¯s one thing to bully us, but now he¡¯s bullying Mommy when we¡¯re not around! When I grow up, I will teach him a lesson! All of a sudden, the atmosphere became tangibly stiff. While Madilyn was displeased with Lucian, she managed to keep her cool. Understanding that it was not an appropriate ce for a conversation, Madilyn walked up and pulled them over. ¡°Maybe you should take this conversation outside.¡± After that, she tapped lightly on Roxanne¡¯s shoulder. ¡°If you¡¯re afraid, then we should pass on the haunted house. Let¡¯s head out.¡± Roxanne finally came back to her senses. She nodded and followed Madilyn out, ignoring Lucian in the process. Benny gripped Roxanne¡¯s hand tightly, worried that she would be frightened. Like a knight in shining armor, he protected Roxanne while she walked. Chapter 120 Chapter 120 Chapter 120 Must Protect Essie Lucian followed right behind. The exit was not difficult to locate. However, Roxanne was lost because she was frightened by the sophisticated gimmicks, causing her to panic. After calming herself down, she managed to find her way out of the haunted house in a short time. The sunlight shone on her face, dazzling Roxanne a little. Lucian, who was right behind Roxanne, couldn¡¯t take his eyes of her. At this point, both of them had different thoughts running through their minds. Noticing that the atmosphere was tense, Madilyn pulled Roxanne to a side and whispered softly, ¡°What¡¯s going on? What is he asking for?¡± Roxanne snapped back into her senses. She gazed at Lucian, only to notice his anxious and worried Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. look. The next second, she recalled what Lucian said in the haunted house.It didn¡¯t seem like he was lying. With that thought in mind, Roxanne started to feel worried about Este. Before this, she had always thought that Este was Lucian and Aubree¡¯s child. After knowing that Aubree was not involved, Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but like Este even more. ¡°Nothing, just some personal matters.¡± Roxanne smiled. Madilyn, however, was in doubt. What personal matter did they have to discuss between them anyway? Even baffling was the fact that Lucian came here all the way. Just as Madilyn wanted to pry further, she realized that Roxanne had already left her and was walking toward Lucian. Madilyn¡¯s doubts intensified. Lucian saw Roxanne walking toward him. He furrowed his brow and wanted to continue asking her for help. Roxanne, nheless, spoke first. ¡°Let¡¯s take a stroll.¡± Lucian immediately heaved a sigh of relief. He thanked her profusely, saying, ¡°I truly appreciate this.¡± After deciding to pay a visit to Este, Roxanne took over Archie and Benny from Madilyn and said, ¡°I think you may head back first. We¡¯re going with him.¡± She knew that Este was reliant on Archie and Benny. With the two of them around, it could aid in her recovery. Madilyn decided not to pester Roxanne further. Quietly, she stared at the four of them leaving, behaving no differently from any other adoring family. Aftering out of Universe Park, Roxanne, together with Archie and Bernie, got into Lucian¡¯s car, leaving behind Madilyn and the car that they came with. Cayden was already waiting in the car. He revved up the engine and sped toward the Farwell residence. While on the way, Lucian briefly exined Este¡¯s condition to Roxanne and her history of medical treatments. Roxanne was disheartened to find out about the mental illness and hardships that Este faced at such a young age. It appeared that Este¡¯s condition had deteriorated. Holding that thought, Roxanne began to feel some guilt. If she knew that Este¡¯s condition was that severe, she would not have said those things in front of her. Archie and Benny sat quietly beside Roxanne. They listened attentively to Lucian, and their hatred toward him was slowly reced by heartache. Este was about the same age as they were, but she had to endure such horrific grievances in life. Even in kindergarten, she was ostracized by the others. We must protect Essie! Cayden was driving at a zing speed, and they arrived at the manor shortly after. After getting down from the car, Lucian led Roxanne, Archie, and Benny and rushed toward the second floor of the building. Meanwhile, James was waiting upstairs. Because of Este¡¯s resistance, he had to keep his distance while monitoring her, fearing that she would harm herself. Hence, he left the door slightly ajar and silently stood at the entrance. When he saw the four of them, James had his brows slightly knitted before nodding. ¡°Ms. Jarvis.¡± Roxanne nodded in reply, and her attention was focused exclusively on Este. ¡°Where¡¯s Essie? Let me take a look at her.¡± James pointed toward the corner of the room. Chapter 121 Chapter 121 Chapter 121 What Went Wrong Roxanne walked in that direction, and she saw Este curled in the corner with her knees tucked in, and her eyes looked empty like a soulless doll. Recalling how Este used to wee her with a sweet, bright smile, Roxanne¡¯s heart was wrenched in pain, suffocating her. This morning, Este grabbed her skirt with a pair of twinkling eyes, but she descended into such a piteous state so unexpectedly. Roxanne tiptoed into the room and squatted down beside her. With a soft and gentle voice, she called out to her, ¡°Essie, I¡¯m here.¡± Este, however, had no response. Roxanne was taken aback by Este¡¯s condition. Behind Roxanne, James reminded softly, ¡°Ms. Jarvis, Este is nowpletely shut off from the outside world. You need to keep talking to her, in order to lure her back into reality. Patience is necessary to achieve that.¡±Roxanne calmed herself down and nodded. She started talking to Este again, ¡°Essie, look who is here too! Archie and Benny are here! They¡¯re all here!¡± Archie and Benny strode over to join Roxanne and Este. Benny started making faces at Este. ¡°I¡¯m here to visit you! Don¡¯t you cry!¡± Archie frowned and stared at Este¡¯s eyes. ¡°You can just zone out for a short while, okay? We¡¯re waiting for you to y together. Would you like to join us?¡± Previously, when they said this, Este would burst intoughter. However, this time, Este did not respond. She sat motionlessly on the same spot and did not even lift a finger. The smile on Benny¡¯s face slowly faded, and it quickly turned into a frown. ¡°Hey, we¡¯re talking to you. Are you unhappy that you¡¯re going to school? Archie and I are joining you soon. We can bring you anywhere that you want, and we can do everything together! Doesn¡¯t that sound nice?¡± With a sullen expression, Archie threatened, ¡°If you don¡¯t talk to us, we don¡¯t want to y with you anymore!¡± Be that as it may, Este still did not respond. Archie and Benny took a deep breath and changed their methods. Instead of anticipating a response, they started babbling incessantly about all sorts of topics, even mentioning what happened at Universe Park. They also promised to bring her there once she recovered. In spite of their relentless attempts to get her to talk, Este didn¡¯t even blink once. Their eyes started to well up, and they used Roxanne¡¯s sleeves to wipe their tears. ¡°Mommy, Essie doesn¡¯t seem to be able to hear us. What should we do?¡± Their voices started to break. Roxanne¡¯s eyes were also slightly red. She kept herposure and patted Archie and Benny on the head. ¡°Essie will surely recover. Why don¡¯t the two of you take a break? I will speak to her.¡± Archie and Benny struggled to resist crying, at least not in front of Este. Quietly, they retreated behind Roxanne. Roxanne extended her hand gently and carried Este in her arms. Roxanne started talking about everything under the sun, irrespective of whether Este could hear her. Este was also like a doll, leaving herself to the whims and fancies of Roxanne. That very sight pulled at Lucian¡¯s heartstrings. He was even more certain that Roxanne did not know that Este was her daughter. Otherwise, Roxanne would not have treated Este that kindly, given that she purportedly abandoned Content held by N?velDrama.Org. her own daughter. What went wrong? Chapter 122 Chapter 122 Chapter 122 She Finally Recovered For the entire day, Roxanne was there with Este. Despite that, Este never responded. As darkness fell, Roxanne had to leave, albeit unwillingly. ¡°I will visit you again tomorrow. You have to get better, okay?¡± Roxanne hugged Este tight. Archie and Benny too, embraced her. When the three of them were about to leave, Roxanne felt a force pulling the corner of her skirt. Stunned, she turned around. Este¡¯s gaze was still fixated somewhere else, without any emotion, but her hand remained gripped on Roxanne¡¯s skirt tightly. At the door, Lucian and James exchanged nces, shocked. They thought that Estepletely shut herself off and would not respond to any external stimuli. Much to their surprise, Este could feel Roxanne¡¯s presence. On top of that, she didn¡¯t want Roxanne to leave.Roxanne almost lost her breath. She stood there for a few seconds before gradually walking back to Este. She squatted down and looked her in the eyes warmly. ¡°Essie, you know I¡¯m here, right?¡± Este¡¯s eyes still looked nk, but her hands remained gripped on Roxanne¡¯s skirt. Archie and Benny quickly asked, ¡°Mommy, can we bring Essie back with us?¡± Bring Essie back with us! Roxanne was tempted slightly, and she apprehensively looked toward the duo standing at the door. If Este was willing to tag along, Roxanne had no hesitation in taking Este under her wing. However, Roxanne feared that Este was not willing to leave her father. James¡¯ expression stiffened. ¡°I think that¡¯s fine. It¡¯s a huge improvement to even see Essie respond to something. Perhaps her chances of recovery will be significantly higher if she stays with you for a while.¡± Finishing his sentence, James turned toward Lucian. Lucian stared at Este¡¯s hands, and his heart felt like it was run over by a huge truck. A numbing pain soon consumed him. Shortly after, he snapped back into his senses and said in a deep voice, ¡°I¡¯ll send you back. But give me a second, I¡¯ll get Catalina to pack some of Essie¡¯s daily essentials.¡± Roxanne, Archie, and Benny were shocked and pleased at the same time. Archie and Benny rushed toward Este, their faces filled with joy, and hugged her. ¡°We will take really good care of you!¡± Later that day, Lucian sent the four of them back. Este curled up in Roxanne¡¯s arms like a doll. Even when they got in the car, she clung closely to Roxanne, and her hands subconsciously clutched Roxanne¡¯s skirt. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Archie obediently sat in the passenger seat. Throughout the journey, Lucian exined in detail the things to pay attention to when taking care of Este. Although Catalina was there, Lucian was the one who took care of Este personally. Hence, he was well aware of her quirks and needs. Lucian remembered everything, including how Este always woke up at midnight, that she needed to drink milk before sleeping, and that she was picky when it came to food. Lucian then stared at the rearview mirror and said to Roxanne, ¡°I¡¯ll leave Essie with you for the next few days. Thank you for helping her.¡± Roxanne replied calmly, ¡°I¡¯ve said this, and I will say it again. The child is innocent, and I will take good care of her.¡± Lucian did not overstay his wee. Seeing that they had set up Este¡¯s room, he bid goodbye and left after that. Roxanne felt strange. Lucian confidently left Este with me, just like that? However, her attention was subsequently directed back to Este, and her lingering thoughts immediately vanished. Outside Roxanne¡¯s house, Lucian¡¯s expression darkened almost immediately. He then took out his phone and rang Aubree. ¡°Lucian, is there anything wrong?¡± Aubree¡¯s said coyly. Most of the time, it was Aubree who took the initiative to call Lucian. Hence, she was surprised to see Lucian calling her back, thinking that he had finally realized the good in her. Lucian¡¯s voice was cold and distant. ¡°Meet me half an hour at Lake Frosa.¡± Then, he put down the phone. Chapter 123 Chapter 123 Chapter 123 Should Have Just Killed Her Aubree tensed up when she heard Lucian¡¯s tone, and whatever hope she had earlier was gone in an instant. Under normal circumstances, she would dress herself up before meeting Lucian. Since he had asked her to get there within thirty minutes, she only had time to grab her handbag before rushing over. As her house was quite far from the restaurant, the taxi driver had to floor the elerator just to get her there in time. Lucian was already waiting for her by the time she entered the restaurant. He looked up from his seat next to the window when he heard the door open, the look in his eyes colder than the night outside. ¡°What is it, Lucian?¡± Aubree asked with a guilty look on her face while sitting down in front of him. Lucian was exuding a terrifying aura as he red at her in silence.Aubree clenched her fists out of nervousness but made sure to maintain a calm smile on her face. ¡°You dropped Essie off today morning?¡± Lucian asked all of a sudden. Aubree nodded profusely. ¡°Yeah. Mrs. Farwell asked me to help out, so I did.¡± Lucian let out a cold snort upon hearing that. ¡°Did my mother also ask you to see the head of the kindergarten and expel the two kids in the name of Farwell Group?¡± Aubree went pale instantly as she wasn¡¯t expecting him to find out so soon. After brainstorming for a few seconds, she came up with an excuse and said, ¡°I saw those two kids bullying Essie when I dropped her off, so I got mad and confronted the head of the kindergarten¡­¡± She then looked up at Lucian nervously as she continued, ¡°I just couldn¡¯t stand seeing them bully Essie, Lucian! I¡¯m sure you understand, right?¡± Lucian arched an eyebrow at her in response. ¡°I do, but I would also like to know where that alleged bullying took ce.¡± ¡°A-At the entrance of the kindergarten,¡± Aubree replied with a trembling voice. The look in Lucian¡¯s eyes grew increasingly colder. ¡°All right, I¡¯ll have someone check the surveince Content held by N?velDrama.Org. camera footage. I¡¯ll let this slide if it is proven to be true. However¡ª¡± ¡°I-I got it wrong!¡± Aubree cut him off anxiously when she heard him mention the surveince camera footage. ¡°I-It didn¡¯t take ce at the kindergarten! It was at¡­ Um¡­¡± She kept stammering and stuttering as she tried to think of something, but nothing came to mind. Lucian red coldly at her until his patience eventually ran out. ¡°I won¡¯t question how many more times you¡¯ve abused Farwell Group¡¯s name for your own benefit. However, your actions today have triggered Essie¡¯s autism! I will not show you any mercy if anything happens to her!¡± Aubree felt a shiver down her spine when she looked up and met his gaze. She had no reason to doubt the veracity of his words at all. Lucian then shot her another cold nce before getting up from his chair. ¡°Lucian!¡± Aubree called out to him when she saw him leaving. Lucian turned around and asked with an expressionless look on his face, ¡°What more do you have to say for yourself? You¡¯d better give me a convincing exnation.¡± Aubree¡¯s lips trembled, but she eventually lowered her head in silence. It doesn¡¯t matter what I say. My lies will be exposed once Lucian checks the kindergarten¡¯s surveince camera footage. By the time she looked up again, Lucian was nowhere in sight. The look of fear in Aubree¡¯s eyes slowly turned to anger and hatred. D*mn it! How did things turn out like this? Lucian found out about what I did, and it¡¯s all because of that little b*tch! She¡¯s such a pain in the neck! I should¡¯ve just killed her this morning! Chapter 124 Chapter 124 Chapter 124 Who Could Have Done This Roxanne went to make dinner after instructing her two kids to look after Este. She had noted down all the important points that Lucian mentioned earlier, and she also made sure to prepare the food ording to Este¡¯s preferences. When dinner was ready, Roxanne had Archie and Benny bring Este downstairs. Like princes and princesses in fairy tales, the two boys each held one of Este¡¯s hands as they went down the stairs at her pace. Seeing the three of them like that filled Roxanne¡¯s heart with warmth, but the thought of Este¡¯s current condition brought a sympathetic frown to her face. Archie and Benny then let Este sit next to Roxanne at the dinner table while they sat beside her. Roxanne patted them on their heads before taking her seat and feeding Este.Perhaps because the food was prepared ording to her preferences, Este was able to finish everything without any issues. After dinner, Roxanne had Archie and Benny return to their bedroom before bringing Este into hers for a bath. Este showed no response whatsoever when Roxanne helped undress her. As the pants came off, Roxanne was greeted by horrifying bruises and welts all over Este¡¯s buttocks. ¡°It must¡¯ve been really painful, huh?¡± Roxanne asked while caressing the little girl¡¯s cheeks, feeling sorry for her. Este simply stared nkly at her in response. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll make sure to be gentle, and we¡¯ll give Daddy a call once we¡¯re done with your bath,¡± Roxanne continued with a heavy heart after a brief moment of silence. After giving Este a quick bath and a change of clothes, Roxanne had her wait on the bed while she gave Lucian a call. The call got through within seconds. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Did Essie cause you any trouble?¡± ¡°Was Essie¡¯s autism really triggered by Archie and Benny being expelled?¡± Roxanne asked solemnly. Lucian frowned. ¡°What do you mean by that?¡± Roxanne felt her heart ache when she realized he was probably oblivious to what happened, but the thought of him being an irresponsible parent upset her as well. ¡°Come have a look yourself!¡± she said in displeasure and hung up immediately after. The look on Lucian¡¯s face turned gloomy after hearing that, and he quickly rushed over to Roxanne¡¯s house. ¡°Mr. Farwell, I¡¯m sure you know where Essie got these wounds from, right?¡± Roxanne asked while pulling Este¡¯s pants down to show him the bruises. Judging by how Lucian¡¯s expression grew vicious instantly, Roxanne could confirm that this was news to him as well. ¡°What¡¯s the meaning of this? Are you seriously unaware of your daughter¡¯s injuries?¡± she asked while furrowing her brows. Lucian shook his head. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t eveny a finger on her, let alone abuse her like this. I¡¯ve been really busy with worktely, so I had Catalina look after Essie. It¡¯s unlikely for her to do such a thing, though¡­¡± Although Roxanne agreed with him on that statement, she had him summon Catalina anyway. ¡°In that case, you should try asking her about this. She might know something you don¡¯t.¡± N?velDrama.Org holds ? this. Lucian nodded and had Cayden drive her over immediately. ¡°Do you know anything about these wounds?¡± Catalina had a pained look on her face when she saw the bruises on Este¡¯s body. ¡°What happened to her? She was just fine yesterday! Who could¡¯ve done such a cruel thing to Ms. Este?¡± The look in Lucian¡¯s eyes grew increasingly cold. ¡°That means this incident happened today¡­¡± Chapter 125 Chapter 125 Chapter 125 Confronting Aubree Realizing that she was the most suspicious individual due to her unresolved conflict with Lucian, Roxanne was quick to exin, ¡°Just so you know, I didn¡¯t do this! I¡¯ve always believed that children are innocent! Besides, Archie and Benny like Essie a lot, so I would never hit her!¡± Plus, since she had spent some time alone with Este, she would have no way of exining herself if Lucian decided to suspect her. Her anxiety got so intense that it even started showing on her face. Lucian shot her a confused nce upon hearing what she said. ¡°I¡¯m not suspecting you or anything. In fact, I think I know who did this.¡± Roxanne breathed a sigh of relief before asking worriedly, ¡°Who could it be?¡± The temperature in the room seemed to decrease as Lucian went into deep thought.Mom and Dad brought Essie out of the house yesterday without exining why. While their behavior does seem a little strange, I know for a fact that they love Essie very much, and that they would nevery a finger on her. The only other person that has been in contact with Essie sincest night is Aubree! I know that Essie has always disliked her, but I didn¡¯t think she¡¯d hurt Essie like this! ¡°Well? Who is it?¡± Roxanne asked anxiously when she saw his gloomy expression. Lucian tried his best to suppress his anger as he said, ¡°I¡¯ll be leaving Essie in your care for a bit. There¡¯s something I need to take care of.¡± He then turned around and left the house while Roxanne watched on with a displeased frown. As if not knowing about his daughter¡¯s injuries wasn¡¯t bad enough, he¡¯s seriously just going to leave her here after finding out about it? Aubree was so terrified by Lucian¡¯s intimidating aura earlier that she sat there in the restaurant for quite some time before heading back. Even when she got home, her mind was still a mess as she recalled Lucian¡¯s questioning from earlier. Aubree was about to call Elias and Sonya for help when she heard her doorbell ring. She then put her phone away and had the butler open the door. The butler returned momentster with her visitor, and Aubree went pale when she saw who it was. ¡°L-Lucian? What are you doing here?¡± Those words had barely left her mouth when Lucian stepped forward and grabbed her by the throat. Aubree¡¯s eyes were filled with fear as she asked in a trembling voice, ¡°Lucian, what¡¯s the meaning of this?¡± Lucian¡¯s bloodthirsty expression made him look like a demon that had crawled straight out of hell. ¡°Were you the one who gave Essie those wounds?¡± he asked while tightening his grip on her neck. Aubree tugged at his wrist as she struggled to breathe. ¡°L-Lucian, I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re talking about¡­ Let go of me, and we¡¯ll talk this out¡­¡± Lucian narrowed his eyes and asked coldly, ¡°How long do you intend to keep this act up, Aubree?¡± ¡°I really don¡¯t know anything! I love Essie very much, so there¡¯s no way I¡¯d hit her! I know nothing about Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. these wounds you¡¯re talking about! I¡¯m not sure why you¡¯d think I did it, but this really is a misunderstanding! You have to believe me, Lucian!¡± Aubree protested with her face as white as a sheet. Chapter 126 Chapter 126 Chapter 126 She Should Just Die She even tried turning on the waterworks as she pleaded with him, but Lucian did not loosen his grip in the slightest. It took Aubree every ounce of energy she had just to get a breath of air in, but she still stubbornly refused to admit to what she had done. If Lucian is being so vicious toward me simply because he suspects me, then there¡¯s no telling what he¡¯d do to me if I admit to it! Cayden was shocked when he came in after Lucian and saw Aubree¡¯s face turning purple. Fearing that Lucian would identally kill her, he quickly ran forward to stop him. ¡°Let go of her, Mr. Farwell! She¡¯ll die if you don¡¯t!¡± Instead of letting go, Lucian simply tightened his grip on her neck even further. In that very moment, Aubree had no doubt that he would actually strangle her to death. Eventually, Cayden had no choice but to step in and forcefully pry her out of his grip.Having been drained of all her energy, Aubree slumped to the floor immediately after being released and panted heavily. After taking a moment to regain hisposure, Lucian red at her as he said, ¡°Fine, you can keep that act up for as long as you like. I¡¯ll ask Essie about it when she gets better, and I wille for you if you really are the one behind this!¡± He then stormed out of the house with Cayden following closely behind, leaving Aubree on the floor with a mix of anger and fear all over her face. D*mn it! Why won¡¯t that little b*stard just die? Now I have to live in fear of her telling on me! The mere thought of what Lucian would do to her terrified her to no end. Lucian had beenpletely silent after getting into the car with Cayden. ¡°Mr. Farwell, would you like to go check on Ms. Este?¡± Cayden asked cautiously after a while. ¡°Take us back to the manor,¡± Lucian replied while suppressing his anger. Although Cayden didn¡¯t understand the reasoning behind his request, he drove them back to the Farwell residence anyway. ¡°Wait here,¡± Lucian instructed and got out of the car by himself. Momentster, he came back with a dark-colored bottle in hand. ¡°Take me to Roxanne¡¯s,¡± he ordered after getting back into the car. Cayden nodded and did as told. Roxanne had been keeping Estepany after Lucian left earlier. She then had Archie and Benny watch over her while she fetched a first aid kit from downstairs. The two kids tried their best to entertain Este, only to feel a little disappointed when they received no response from her. ¡°It¡¯ll take some time for Essie to recover, so we must be patient,¡± Roxanne said while patting them on the head. The two kids nodded obediently and reluctantly returned to their room after hearing that. Moments after tucking Este in, Roxanne was about to get some rest when she heard the doorbell ring. ¡°I thought you said you had some business to take care of? Why have youe back so soon?¡± she asked upon seeing Lucian at the door. ¡°I went back to get Essie some ointment. Could you apply it for her?¡± Lucian replied while handing her the bottle of ointment. Roxanne¡¯s feeling of displeasure decreased slightly upon recognizing it as a fairly expensive medical ointment that was extremely effective for treating bruises. N?velDrama.Org ? content. I assumed that he had left Este with me to take care of work, but he actually went to get her some medical ointment¡­ Chapter 127 Chapter 127 Chapter 127 Abandoning Mommy And Bullying Us With that in mind, Roxanne nodded and led him upstairs. As Este had already fallen asleep, the room was only illuminated by a nightmp at the time. Afraid that she would wake her up, Roxanne made sure to be extra careful and gentle. While standing by the door with his hands in his pockets, Lucian shifted his gaze from Este to the decoration in the room. Not only did the room look exceptionally neat and tidy, but the dolls that Roxanne¡¯s kids brought over also added a warm and homely feel to it. Looking at the room caused the anger that Lucian was suppressing to vanishpletely and filled his heart up with warmth. After applying the ointment, Roxanne made sure that Este was still fast asleep before getting up. ¡°It¡¯s done.¡± Her gaze met Lucian¡¯s the moment she turned around, and the two of them locked eyes in silence for a few seconds.Eventually, Lucian snapped out of it and said with a nod, ¡°Thanks.¡± Roxanne then closed the door behind her and walked him downstairs. After giving him a brief summary of Este¡¯s condition, Roxanne tried to end the conversation when she saw that it was quitete. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte, so you should head back and get some rest. Don¡¯t worry; I¡¯ll take good care of Essie.¡± Lucian nodded and got up from the couch. ¡°I¡¯ve spoken to the person in charge of the kindergarten. If you don¡¯t mind what happened before, you may let Archie and Benny continue studying there.¡± Roxanne agreed to it immediately. ¡°I will. Also, I think Essie should study there and hang out with the other kids too.¡± Having her return to an environment that she¡¯s familiar with might just help improve her condition. She then anxiously waited for Lucian¡¯s response as his permission was necessary for that to happen. Roxanne had assumed that Lucian would at least ask her for a reason, but he simply went silent for a few seconds before saying, ¡°Okay, just go ahead and do as you wish. There¡¯s no need to inform me about it.¡± As Roxanne was Este¡¯s biological mother, she had every right to make such decisions on her behalf. Huh? Isn¡¯t Lucian trusting me a little too much? On second thought, maybe it¡¯s just because he loves Essie deeply. He knows that Essie has taken a liking to me, so he¡¯s cing her fully in my care. With that in mind, Roxanne replied with a nod, ¡°Okay.¡± Lucian said nothing further and left after that. The next morning, Roxanne woke the three kids up early in the morning and got them ready for kindergarten. They were about to leave the mansion when they saw Lucian standing at the door. ¡°Please, allow me to help with sending the kids to school. It¡¯s the least I can do after cing Essie in your care.¡± Roxanne, Archie, and Benny froze upon hearing that. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. The two kids then turned to look at Roxanne and waited for her answer. Roxanne nced at Este, who was still holding on to the hem of her shirt, and epted his offer after a brief moment of hesitation. The four of them got into the car and took the same seats as the night before. While Lucian was driving, Archie kept stealing nces at him with a conflicted look in his eyes. He felt that he should be hating Lucian for abandoning Roxanne and bullying them, but he just couldn¡¯t bring himself to do so. Roxanne was the only one talking to Este along the way. Everyone else simply kept quiet throughout the entire drive. Chapter 128 Chapter 128 Chapter 128 Make Sure No One Bullies Her The teacher at the kindergarten felt both happy and awkward when all five of them showed up together. ¡°Ms. Jarvis¡­¡± Although it was Aubree who demanded the expulsion of Archie and Benny, Pippa still felt bad about it and wanted to apologize. ¡°Looks like I¡¯ll be cing Archie and Benny in your care again!¡± Roxanne cut her off with a smile. Pippa nodded profusely. ¡°Of course! They are both very obedient children, so taking care of them is truly a pleasure!¡± Roxanne nodded. ¡°Also, Essie seems to be acting a little strangetely. She doesn¡¯t really talk to people much, so please keep a close eye on her.¡± Fearing that Este would feel hurt if she heard about her autism, Roxanne chose to not mention it directly. Pippa nodded and reassured her that she would take good care of them.Archie and Benny too, each held one of Este¡¯s hands as they said, ¡°We¡¯ll help look after Essie too! We won¡¯t let anyone bully her!¡± Roxanne simply patted them on the head with a smile. Pippa was preparing to bring the kids inside for ss when she saw Roxanne still standing there with Lucian behind her. His icy-cold gaze sent a shiver down her spine. ¡°I-Is there anything else I can help you two with?¡± ¡°I¡¯m just a little worried about them. Would it be okay if I watch them for a bit while you teach?¡± Roxanne said with a smile. Pippa didn¡¯t dare say no with Lucian around, so she had no choice but to let them into the ssroom as well. Roxanne sat down in a corner and felt a strange sensation deep down inside when Lucian sat down beside her, but decided to keep her feelings to herself. Just like that, the two of them sat there in a corner and watched the kids y games in ss. In order to help improve Este¡¯s mood, Pippa even arranged for her to be in the middle of the group. With Archie and Benny acting as examples, the other kids took turns interacting with her as well. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. However, Este simply kept her head low and showed no response whatsoever. It didn¡¯t take long before her behavior started to affect the mood of the other kids as well, much to Roxanne¡¯s dismay. She had assumed that having Este return to a familiar environment would help with her emotions somewhat, but it didn¡¯t seem to work at all. Although Este still didn¡¯t respond much, she seemed to have grown attached to Archie and Benny after a few games. Not only did she follow them around all the time, but she would also show some response whenever they yed with her. Roxanne was still a little worried even after observing them for about an hour, but it was time for her to head over to the research institute. Lucian too, left shortly after she excused herself. After spending an entire afternoon at the research institute, Roxanne saw that it was time to pick up the kids from kindergarten and quickly rushed over. To her surprise, Lucian was already waiting there by the time she arrived. Oh? Looks like he¡¯s nning on sending the kids to and back from kindergarten¡­ With that in mind, Roxanne greeted him and waited for Pippa to bring the kids out the door. It wasn¡¯t long before ss was over, and the kids walked through the door in a straight line. Archie and Benny could be seen escorting Este on both sides as they came out. After the five of them got into Lucian¡¯s car, Benny kept tugging at Roxanne¡¯s sleeve with a huge smile on his face. Unsure of why he was grinning from ear to ear, Roxanne shed him a confused look in response. ¡°Essie seemed to have a bad dream after waking up from our afternoon nap today! She kept crying even though Ms. Ward and the other kids tried tofort her. In the end, Archie and I were the ones who calmed her down! Do you think she knows us, Mommy?¡± Chapter 129 Chapter 129 Chapter 129 Are You Injured Roxanne had felt the same way earlier that morning, so hearing about it filled her heart with a warm sensation. ¡°Maybe. I¡¯m really d that you two are able to look after Essie.¡± Benny patted himself on the chest confidently as he said in his childish voice, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Mommy! Archie and I will continue to keep Essie safe!¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but giggle when she heard that. Lucian nced at them through the rear-view mirror when he heard Benny¡¯s promise and Roxanne¡¯s having. She sure has raised those boys well. They¡¯re so much more mature than the other kids around their age. Lucian was nning on leaving after dropping them off at the house as he had seen for himself how well Roxanne took care of Este. On top of that, Archie and Benny were treating Este like their own sister too, so there was no reason for him to stay and make them feel ufortable. While getting out of the car, Roxanne nced at Este and said after a brief moment of hesitation, ¡°How about you join us for dinner? I¡¯m sure Essie would have a much better time with you around.¡± Lucian gave her a strange look and paused briefly before replying, ¡°Thanks, I¡¯ll take you up on your offer.¡±Roxanne kept quiet and led the kids inside while Lucian followed behind after parking the car. Upon entering the kitchen, she quickly washed her hands and started making dinner. Archie and Benny led Este into the living room and yed with their Lego set to kill time. Lucian was a little hesitant at first, but decided to stand next to them and help out when needed. With the two boys working closely together, the scattered Lego pieces were soon transformed into a When it came to attaching the final piece, Archie nced at Lucian with a hesitant look in his eyes. Lucian then held his hand out, prompting Archie to ce the Lego piece in his palm. The boy pursed his lips and lowered his head wordlessly as he watched Lucian attach the final piece. Este, who was watching Lucian attach the Lego pieces together, reached out to grab a Lego piece all of a sudden. Both Archie and Benny¡¯s eyes lit up with excitement when they saw that. After a brief pause, Este began assembling the Lego pieces herself at a pace simr to theirs. Thinking that Este had recalled ying Lego with them in the past, Archie and Benny exchanged joyful nces. Lucian froze in shock when he saw that, only to have a warm smile spread across his face seconds Looks like Essie really likes theirpany, huh? Seeing as they were all focused on ying with the Lego set, Roxanne chose not to disturb them and proceeded to serve up dinner. She had just stepped out of the kitchen when her elbow bumped into the door frame, causing her to drop the bowl of soup onto the floor. Everyone in the living room turned around in unison upon hearing the noise. Naturally, Lucian was the first to respond. ¡°Are you injured?¡± he asked while running toward her. As he took a closer look at her, he noticed a red spot on the fair skin of her forearm. Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Before she could even respond, Lucian cautiously grabbed an uninjured part of her arm and led her toward the sink, holding it under running water. Although Archie and Benny were worried about her, they knew they were unable to help with her wound, so they decided to clean up the floor instead. ¡°Don¡¯t touch it, you guys! You could get scalded by the hot soup! Get Essie away from here!¡± Roxanne called out to them when she saw what they were doing. Archie and Benny hesitated for a bit, but did as told and prepared to lead Este out of there. However, Este stubbornly refused to leave and struggled to remain where she stood. Unsure of what to do, Archie and Benny were about to ask Roxanne for help when they heard a sobbing noise beside them. Everyone paused and turned toward Este in shock, only to see tears flowing from her reddened eyes. Chapter 130 Chapter 130 Chapter 130 Este Recovered Archie and Benny were stunned when they saw tears running down Este¡¯s cheeks. They did not know if they should console her or not. After all, it seemed like she was crying because their mother was hurt. In a way, she was responding to the outside world. It was great news for them. However, their hearts broke at the sight of Este¡¯s watery eyes. They then turned to seek help from their mother, but the next thing they saw was their mother, frowning in pain as she washed her wound. At that, Archie and Benny calmed down. Their eyes continued to flit between their mother and Este, nevertheless. A whileter, Lucian grabbed Roxanne¡¯s arm and pulled it away from the running water. Roxanne lowered her eyes to look at the site of the wound. Although it was still red, it did not hurt as much anymore. When Lucian noticed her action, he frowned as concern seeped into his eyes. He asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Does it still hurt a lot?¡± Roxanne tensed up for a second but shook her head. ¡°I¡¯m feeling much better. I¡¯ll treat the wound, and it should be fine after that.¡±With that, she shook off Lucian¡¯s hand and walked toward the door. Just as she turned around, she saw the helpless gazes of her two sons. Roxanne turned in the direction they were looking, only to see Este sobbing miserably. Her small body was shaking, but no sound wasing from her. It was the first time Roxanne had ever seen her cry after her autism diagnosis. Moreover, it seemed like the little girl was extremely upset, so she could not help but feel worried. ¡°Why are you crying? Were you frightened?¡± As she spoke, she crouched down in front of Este and raised her hand, about to wipe the girl¡¯s tears away. However, Este leaped into her arms as she continued sobbing, her eyes fixed on Roxanne¡¯s injured arm. Roxanne was taken aback by how the girl hadunched herself into her arms, but after the shock came delight. It was the same action as before. In the past, Este would jump into Roxanne¡¯s arms whenever she saw thetter. Although the girl was crying, at the very least, she was reacting to her surroundings. At that thought, Roxanne lifted her uninjured arm and gently hugged the girl to her. At the same time, she tentatively asked, ¡°Essie, have you recovered? Do you know who I am now?¡± The girl gave her a slight nod, but she continued to sniffle. N?velDrama.Org ? content. At that, Archie¡¯s and Benny¡¯s eyes lit up. They then walked over to Este and pointed at themselves. ¡°Then do you know who we are?¡± However, Este¡¯s gaze was fixed on Roxanne¡¯s injured arm; she did not look at them at all. The boys were disappointed. Sensing their emotions, Roxanne raised her hand to ruffle Este¡¯s hair and softly said, ¡°The boys are here too. Do you see them? They¡¯ve been taking care of you the past two days.¡± It was then Este slowly lifted her head out from Roxanne¡¯s embrace and nced at the two boys in front of her. She then gave a small incline of her head before turning to look at Roxanne again. ¡°Mommy, she sees that you¡¯re hurt, and she¡¯s worried about you,¡± Archie exined. Hearing that, Roxanne could not help but freeze. She then looked at the spot Este was looking at and realized that, indeed, the girl was staring at her injured arm. Upon the revtion, Roxanne¡¯s heart softened. She thought that they would have to put in much more time and effort to have Este recover. Yet, the girl had walked out of her own world just because Roxanne was hurt. ¡°I¡¯m fine. Don¡¯t worry about me.¡± Roxanne showed her arm to Este by lifting it. After staring at it for a few seconds, Este then carefully blew on the wound. The smile on Roxanne¡¯s face turned even more tender. She patted the girl¡¯s head and said, ¡°Thank you, Essie. It doesn¡¯t hurt anymore.¡± Finally, Este¡¯s sobbing eased a little. ¡°I¡¯m a doctor, and I¡¯m pretty good at my job. This wound is nothing. It¡¯ll recover quickly once I treat it. Why don¡¯t youe with me?¡± Roxanne stood up. At that, the girl nodded fervently and grabbed the hem of Roxanne¡¯s shirt before following her out. Chapter 131 Chapter 131 Something Happening To Mommy Roxanne led the girl to the living room¡¯s couch. The two boys soon brought her the medical kit before sitting at the side, waiting to watch Roxanne treat her wound. Roxanne epted the kit from the boys and thanked them. Just as she took out the burn cream, she realized that she had hurt her dominant arm¡ªher right arm. It would be tough for her to use her left hand.Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ¡°Mommy, let me help you out!¡± Archie kindly volunteered as he reached out toward her, hoping to help her out. It was inconvenient for Roxanne to do it herself, so she bobbed her head in response. Right as she was about to hand Archie the burn cream, arge hand intercepted them and took the tube away. Both Roxanne and Archie turned toward the owner of the hand. ¡°Let me.¡± Lucian¡¯s brows were slightly knitted as the man crouched in front of Roxanne. Archie pursed his lips and pushed Benny. The two then shifted a little more to the side to let Lucian take a seat beside their mother. When the man gently held her hand in his, something shed past Roxanne¡¯s eyes. She then lowered her gaze and muttered, ¡°Sorry to trouble you.¡± Lucian¡¯s frown only deepened at her courteous response; he did not say anything else. In the meantime, Este was holding onto Roxanne¡¯s shirt tightly as she stared at her father¡¯s hands. It was as if she was fearful that Roxanne would feel pain. Sensing the girl¡¯s nervousness, Roxanne looked at her and gave her a reassuring smile. ¡°It doesn¡¯t hurt at all.¡± Este¡¯s eyes glinted, but she continued to fix her gaze on the woman¡¯s hand. Archie was seated right beside Lucian. Although he was wracked with worry for his mother, he never spoke. On the other hand, Benny cocked his head to the side as he stared at his mother¡¯s hand. He then said, ¡°It looks serious. Will blisters form? Mommy¡¯s a doctor, and her hands are important to her. We can¡¯t let anything happen to her. Augh escaped Roxanne when she heard the boy¡¯s worries. ¡°It¡¯ll be fine. Don¡¯t you know that I¡¯m a great doctor? This cream is something I¡¯ve specially picked. It¡¯s useful for burns. I used to apply this whenever you two got burns when you were younger.¡± At that, Benny dipped his head in response. A few seconds of silenceter, he nervously asked again, ¡°Will it leave a scar? Mommy¡¯s arms are pretty. Please don¡¯t let it leave a scar!¡± Roxanne shook her head. ¡°It won¡¯t. Don¡¯t worry.¡± She was speaking to the boy, but still, she could not bring herself to ignore the man beside her. It was only mere minutes, but it felt as if centuries had passed. ¡°It should be fine now. Take a look,¡± came the man¡¯s maic voice by her ear. After a quick glimpse at her arm, she looked away and retracted it. ¡°It¡¯s all right now. Thank you.¡± Lucian¡¯s hand froze in midair. He then slowly pulled it back and quietly rose to his feet. Este tugged on Roxanne¡¯s shirt, and that brought the woman back to her senses. She then showed the girl her treated arm. Este stared intently at it for a while before raising her head and giving Roxanne a smile. Roxanne¡¯s heart lurched when she saw Este smiling at her. Nervously, she looked at the girl and said, ¡°Are you at ease now that I¡¯ve treated my wound?¡± She wanted to find out if the girl really had recovered or not. In the next second, she saw Este smiling and nodding her head. There was even a little dimple by the corners of her lips. ¡°Mommy, Essie¡¯s smiling!¡± Benny excitedly leaped out of the couch. Roxanne saw it as well, but she was so thrilled she had no idea how to respond to it. By the time she recollected herself, tears were welling up in her eyes. As she hugged Este, she said, ¡°I¡¯m d that you¡¯re getting better. Don¡¯t scare me that way anymore, okay? The boys are going to go back to kindergarten. They¡¯ll y with you next time. You have to tell us if you encounter any trouble next time, okay?¡± Este bobbed her head in agreement as she let Roxanne hug her. Chapter 132 Chapter 132 Let Us Take Care Of You Warmth seeped into Roxanne¡¯s heart at the girl¡¯s reply. Her eyes were red-rimmed, but a smile was on her face. At the sight of the two, even Lucian¡¯s heart was melting. He had to take in a deep breath before uttering, ¡°Let¡¯s eat first.¡± It was then Roxanne let go of the girl and blinked away her tears. With a smile, she said, ¡°Yes, let¡¯s eat first.¡± Then, recalling the mess in the kitchen, she stood up and walked toward the kitchen to clean up. Realizing what she was going to do, Lucian said, ¡°I¡¯ve asked Catalina toe. She¡¯ll be taking care of you all for the next two days, so sit down and eat first.¡± Roxanne halted in her tracks before turning to thank the man, ¡°Thank you.¡± She was not going to act like she was a stranger to Lucian because of Este, so she was not going to turn him down on his offer. Lucian nodded. Roxanne turned to the boys. ¡°Come on. You must be hungry too. Dig in while the food is still hot.¡± It was true that the boys were starving. Upon hearing her words, they jumped down from the couch and walked toward the dining table in a line.Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Roxanne was squeezed between them. Habitually, she tried to take care of them by taking food for them. However, she only recalled her injury right after she raised her hand. Thus, she had no choice but to use her left hand, but her movements were clumsy because of that. At the sight of the slowness of their mother¡¯s actions, Archie and Benny said to Roxanne, ¡°Mommy, you don¡¯t need to take care of us. Let us take care of you instead!¡± With that said, they both stood up to take the food that Roxanne liked for her. A tender look appeared in Roxanne¡¯s eyes as she watched the sensible boys work away. Touched, she then said, ¡°Thank you, my darlings.¡± When Este saw the boys bring food for Roxanne, she, too, mimicked them and took a little of her favorite food for Roxanne. Once she put the food on Roxanne¡¯s te, she stared at Roxanne with bright eyes, enthusiastically waiting for the woman to eat it. At that, Roxanne lifted the food into her mouth. Smiling, she patted Este¡¯s head and said, ¡°Thank you, Essie. It¡¯s delicious!¡± Hearing that, Este beamed, and she began giving Roxanne more food. For a moment, the three children kept putting more and more food onto Roxanne¡¯s te as if it was apetition. Roxanne was starting to feel too full, but when she thought about how that was the children¡¯s kind gestures, she forced herself to slowly polish off her te. ¡°That¡¯s enough. Kids, focus on your own food instead,¡± Lucian intervened, unsure if he shouldugh or sigh at the scene. He did not know if he should praise them for being sensible or chide Roxanne for being too soft-hearted. Roxanne could barely straighten her back from the overeating by then. Thus, when she heard his intervention, she lifted her head to cast him a grateful look. Fortunately, the children did not dare to go against Lucian¡¯s words, so the food on Roxanne¡¯s te did not increase further. After dinner, Catalina arrived. Roxanne helped tidy up the table a little, and just as she was about to offer more help, Catalina convinced her to stop. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, you¡¯re still injured, so do head out to keep the childrenpany instead.¡± Roxanne had no choice but to agree to that. She then stepped out to the living room to seek out the children. Just as she entered the living room, she spotted Este and Lucian standing by the doorway. The man had already put on his jacket, and it seemed like he was ready to leave. Roxanne walked over in puzzlement. ¡°Daddy¡¯s leaving first. Stay with Ms. Jarvis and the boys. Be good, and don¡¯t trouble Ms. Jarvis. Catalina will be taking care of you for the next few days here,¡± Lucian said to Este in a gentle tone. Este bobbed her head obediently. Even though she was reluctant to let her father leave, she quite liked living in Roxanne¡¯s ce. When Lucian saw Roxanne walking over, he straightened up and looked at her. ¡°Something has cropped up at mypany, so I have to leave first. Essie¡¯s just recovered, and her condition is still a little unstable. I was thinking of having her live with you for two more days. Catalina will be here to take care of her. If this troubles you, you can ask Catalina to bring her back after she¡¯s done cleaning up the table.¡± Roxanne stood transfixed for a moment before she patted the girl¡¯s head. ¡°It¡¯s all right. Let her stay here.¡± Chapter 133 Chapter 133 Mother Of Este That night, after Roxanne asked Archie and Benny to head to bed, she went back to the room to take care of Este. Once Catalina learned that Este had recovered, she stuck to the girl¡¯s side like glue. In fact, the two women even showered Este together. Catalina¡¯s heart ached when she saw the bruise on Este¡¯s bottom. Instantly, she could not help butin, ¡°Who did this? Ms. Este has always been in poor health, and Mr. Farwell can¡¯t even bring himself to be stern with her¡­¡± Hearing that, Este blinked at Catalina. Nevertheless, when she thought about Aubree¡¯s warning, she mped her mouth shut. All of a sudden, Roxanne recalled what Lucian had said back at the haunted house. The mystery of Este¡¯s mother¡¯s identity kept swirling in her head. Upon thinking about how Catalina had been working in the Farwell residence for all those years and about how she might know something, Roxanne asked in a nonchnt tone, ¡°Catalina, why didn¡¯t Essie¡¯s mothere and visit her despite how bad her episode was? Did some other emergency happen?¡± Hearing that, Catalina visibly stiffened before looking at Roxanne in shock. She thought Roxanne had known that Este was her child all along. After all, she gave birth to Este. That was why the question startled her that much. Ms. Jarvis is subtly asking me who¡¯s Essie¡¯s biological mother? How am I supposed to answer that? A moment of hesitationter, Catalina asked, ¡°Did¡­ Mr. Farwell not talk to you about this before?¡±Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. Roxanne thought that her response was strange, but she could not fathom why. Hence, she replied, ¡°He only told me that Essie¡¯s biological mother isn¡¯t Aubree.¡± So Mr. Farwell knows about this as well, but he didn¡¯t tell Ms. Jarvis about it. Catalina came to a conclusion at that. She then smiled at Roxanne and said, ¡°Did you think that it was Ms. Pearson all along? Ms. Este looks nothing like her. I¡¯m not sure why you thought that.¡± Roxanne chuckled. ¡°Then can you tell me who¡¯s Essie¡¯s biological mother?¡± Catalina shook her head. ¡°This is Mr. Farwell¡¯s personal matter. I wouldn¡¯t dare to tell anyone about it. It¡¯s best for you to wait until Mr. Farwell tells you about it himself.¡± With that said, Catalina threw herself back into her work. She dared not continue the topic any longer, for she was afraid that she might let something slip. When Roxanne noticed how Catalina was avoiding the topic, she stopped prodding for more information. Still, a trace of suspicion lingered in her mind. After all, she had seen for herself how obsessed Lucian was with Aubree all those years ago. In fact, the man had even dered that Aubree was the only one worthy of being his wife. How did he end up having a child with another woman then? What kind of feelings does he have toward Aubree? Could it be that their feelings for each other are fading after six years? Roxanne simply could not seem to find an answer no matter how hard she tried. Instead, she only made herself frustrated. After bathing Este, Roxanne brought the girl to bed. Even then, she continued to wonder about the subject. It seemed like Este could see that Roxanne had something on her mind, for the girl buried herself into Roxanne¡¯s arms slowly before looking at the woman with big, concerned eyes. As Roxanne looked at the girl¡¯s clear eyes, she recollected herself and hugged her. Her heart melted when her arms wrapped around the small and soft body. At the same time, she found herself letting go of the niggling question. The identity of Este¡¯s biological mother and the current rtionship between Lucian and Aubree had nothing to do with her at all. She and Lucian should have been strangers. They were only interacting because of Este. That was all. Overthinking things would only make her feel even more frustrated. Chapter 134 Chapter 134 Chapter 134 To Not Be With Him Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. In the meantime, at the Farwell residence, Sonya and Elias were about to rest. When they heard the sudden ringing of the doorbell, they hastily opened the door. Instantly, they were greeted by the apologetic faces of Samuel and Gina. Aubree was behind them, her eyes red. ¡°What happened?¡± Sonya asked in confusion when she registered the trio¡¯s expressions. Gina turned to shoot Aubree a re. Aubree¡¯s eyes were bloodshot, and remorse was written all over her face. Even her voice was a little hoarse as she said, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, I¡¯vee to apologize.¡± Sonya became even more puzzled by that response. She then led the three to the couch and had the maid pour them cups of tea before asking, ¡°What happened? Why are you apologizing to me?¡±Aubree kept her head low, not daring to look at Sonya at all. ¡°You convinced Essie to get into my car yesterday morning, so I thought she¡¯d be quiet while I bring her to the kindergarten. However, she began kicking up a fuss and insisting on getting down from the car midway. She even tried to open the door despite how dangerous it was. I tried to stop her, but she refused to listen to me. In the end, I got too anxious and hit her a few times after I stopped the car.¡± The moment Sonya and Elias heard that Sonya hadid a finger on Este, their expressions darkened. Aubree continued in a miserable tone, ¡°I really didn¡¯t mean it. I know it¡¯s my fault; I shouldn¡¯t have done anything to a kid. Este¡¯s so cute, and she¡¯s your precious princess. Even now, I feel like pping myself for having done that. If only I was more patient at that time.¡± At the sight of her remorseful demeanor, Sonya¡¯s dark expression lightened up a little. ¡°If you know that you¡¯ve done wrong, you should know that it¡¯s pointless toe to us. You should be apologizing to Essie instead. You can¡¯t do this anymore in the future.¡± A conflicted look crossed Aubree¡¯s face. ¡°Mrs. Farwell, that¡¯s what I thought too, but Lucian found out about this matter. He¡¯s furious¡­¡± ¡°It¡¯s normal for him to be mad. Have a good talk with him.¡± A line appeared between Sonya¡¯s brows. She felt that Lucian had gone a little overboard with his response. Just as she said that, she saw Aubree turn even paler. ¡°I don¡¯t mind doing anything as long as Lucian forgives me, but¡­¡± the younger woman trailed off. Gina, who was beside her, then said, ¡°Sonya, you have no idea how severe things are. Lucian¡¯s absolutely livid. It was as if he had lost his mindst night. He even attacked Aubree. Look.¡± She then lifted Aubree¡¯s hair from behind her back to show Sonya the mark on Aubree¡¯s neck. Both Sonya and Elias froze when they saw the bruise on Aubree¡¯s neck. They never thought that Lucian would be so rough with her. Once they rposed themselves, Sonya asked, ¡°How¡¯s¡­ your bruise? Is it bad?¡± Aubree pursed her lips and shook her head. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. As long as Lucian forgives me, this injury is nothing.¡± The upset Sonya felt toward Aubree withered quite a bit when she saw the regretful look and bad bruise that Aubree had. After all, they had witnessed with their own two eyes what Aubree had done all those years. Furthermore, it was true that Este was rather aloof and stubborn. It would be quite challenging for outsiders to take care of her. Therefore, Sonya could understand why Aubree had hit Este. ¡°Lucian¡¯s just caught up in his anger. I apologize to you on behalf of him. Don¡¯t take this incident to heart,¡± Sonya apologized to Aubree. However, tears fell from Aubree¡¯s eyes. ¡°I¡¯m fine, but¡­ I might not be able to be with Lucian anymore. I can¡¯t even take care of Essie. I¡¯ve betrayed the trust you¡¯ve given to me. If Lucian chooses Roxanne, I¡¯ll definitely give them my blessings.¡± Chapter 135 Chapter 135 Chapter 135 Not Letting Her Into The Family At that, Sonya frowned. ¡°Aubree, what are you talking about? It¡¯s impossible for Lucian to be with Roxanne anymore. I¡¯ve asked him about this before, and he told me that he¡¯s not thinking of getting back together with her, so don¡¯t overthink it.¡± Still, Aubree continued to sob. ¡°But Essie is with Roxanne all day long now. In fact, she¡¯s living at Roxanne¡¯s ce. Essie likes her so much. If Lucian isn¡¯t nning to be with her anymore, why would he have her take care of Essie?¡± Although Lucian had berated her about it, she still kept sending people to spy on Roxanne. The moment she found out that Este was staying at Roxanne¡¯s ce, Aubree panicked. That was why she told her parents everything. After getting scolded by them, she was then brought over to apologize to Sonya and Elias. Then, when she heard Sonya forgiving her, she could not help butin to her. Sonya never thought that Lucian would let that woman take care of Este. She instantly fumed, ¡°This is ridiculous! Who told him to do this?¡±Then, she forced her anger aside and consoled Aubree. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. There¡¯s no way they¡¯ll be together again. Even if Lucian wants to do that, I won¡¯t let that woman Aubree shifted her doe eyes to Sonya to make sure that Sonya was serious about her words. Sonya uttered grimly, ¡°That woman gave up on Essie herself back then. There¡¯s no way I¡¯m going to let her take care of Essie again!¡± A tiny sliver of confidence finally crept into Aubree¡¯s heart at her promise. The few of them then chatted for a while longer before Gina led Aubree away. They had gotten Sonya¡¯s promise, so they had achieved what they hade for. All that was needed was a few drops of tears from Aubree. Not only did Sonya not me her for hitting the child, but she even felt that she had wronged Aubree. In addition to that, she even promised not to let Roxanne into the family. In other words, they had hit two birds with one stone. Sonya could not sleep almost the entire night because of Aubree¡¯s words. Consoling Aubree was not the only reason she had told Aubree that she was not going to let Roxanne into the family. It was also because she genuinely hated that ruthless woman. That ruthless woman was capable of abandoning Lucian and Este once, so Sonya was sure that she would do it again. I have no idea what my son¡¯s thinking about. I can¡¯t believe he¡¯s actually thinking of having her marry into the family again. The more Sonya thought about it, the angrier she became. That night, she sent men to find out where Roxanne was living, nning to visit her the next day. By the time Roxanne woke the next morning, Catalina had already made breakfast. Just as she was eating breakfast with the three children, someone rang the doorbell. Roxanne then asked Catalina to take care of the children as she went to open the door. Originally, she thought that Lucian hade to pick them up for kindergarten, but she was dumbfounded by the person outside upon opening the door. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Do you not recognize me anymore?¡± Sonya was dressed to her nines by the doorway. The older woman looked at Roxanne from head to toe coldly before her eyes flicked to the inside of the house, wanting to find out if Este really was at Roxanne¡¯s ce. Roxanne snapped back to her senses. Although she did not know why Sonya was there, she knew that the other woman must not havee for a friendly visit. She was wary, but she still politely greeted, ¡°Mrs. Farwell.¡± Sonya inclined her head a little before shooting her a displeased re. ¡°Is this the manners you have? You let your guests stand by the doorway?¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Roxanne knitted her brows and forced down the rising emotions in her as she stepped aside. ¡°Please Sonya scoffed and strode in. She headed straight to the living room¡¯s couch and sat down. Chapter 136 Chapter 136 Chapter 136 Give Up Roxanne watched her sit down on the couch before she turned to close the door. After taking a seat on the armchair, she looked the older woman in the eyes and said, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, may I know what¡¯s the reason for your early visit?¡± Sonya did not beat about the bush at all. ¡°I¡¯vee to tell you to stay away from Lucian. Also, don¡¯t you try winning over Essie. She has nothing to do with you. You were the one who chose to get a divorce and leave without telling anyone, so you don¡¯t have the right toe back now.¡± Hearing that, Roxanne nearly scoffed. She tly replied, ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I never thought ofing back when I chose to leave back then.¡± ¡°Is that so?¡± Sonya sneered. ¡°Then exin why you met Lucian. Also, why is Essie here with you?¡± Sonya then stared at Roxanne contemptuously. She said she¡¯s noting back, but everything she¡¯s doing is to curry favor with them. What a liar!Roxanne¡¯s brows drew together as she changed into a more aggressive demeanor. ¡°I think you¡¯ve misunderstood something. It¡¯s but a coincidence that I met Lucian. Lucian had gone to meet Old Mr. Queen when I was treating him. Also, Essie is going to the same kindergarten as my children. They¡¯re friends, so she oftenes to y with them.¡± Roxanne did not tell her about how Este had been clingy to her when she was sick. With how hostile Sonya was to her, Roxanne was sure that she would assume that Roxanne was deluding herself. Yet, unexpectedly, despite Roxanne rifying everything and doing her best to draw the line between her and Lucian and his daughter, Sonya still refused to let her go. ¡°How can something so coincidental happen? It shouldn¡¯t be tricky for you to check the kindergarten with the status you now have. Why did you end up picking the one the Farwell family is investing in?¡± Sonya questioned. For a moment, Roxanne did not know how to exin it to Sonya. Madilyn was the one who had rmended the kindergarten to her. Naturally, she would not think about looking into the kindergarten. If she had done an investigation, she would not have sent her two sons there in the first ce. When Sonya heard nothing from Roxanne, she assumed that Roxanne was feeling too guilty to answer her. Thus, she scoffed and said, ¡°Regardless of what kind of n you have, I¡¯m not going to let you join the family again. Give up!¡± Roxanne nodded. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ve never thought of going back there.¡± ¡°I hope you¡¯ll remember what you¡¯ve said,¡± Sonya warned. Just then, the three children were done with their breakfast. When they came out, they saw Sonya. Archie and Benny were confused, but they could sense the hostile attitude that Sonya had toward their mother. Thus, they ran over to Roxanne, wanting to protect her. On the other hand, Este recognized her grandmother and ran toward Sonya. She then looked at her grandmother with wide eyes, perplexed. Sonya ruffled her granddaughter¡¯s hair when she saw Este. ¡°Essie, be good ande home with Grandma, okay?¡± Hearing that, Este shook her head without hesitation. She then turned around, ready to return to Roxanne¡¯s side. Sonya could see what she wanted to do, so she instantly shot out her hand to grab Este¡¯s arm. Este thrashed, but she could not struggle out of her grandmother¡¯s grip. Within seconds, her face was red with anxiety. ¡°Be good ande home with me!¡± Sonya¡¯s tone was getting sterner and sterner by the second, and subconsciously, she gripped the girl tighter. Este could feel the pain, but she did not want to leave Roxanne. The corners of her lips turned N?velDrama.Org ? content. downward, and she began crying silently on the spot. It was only then Sonya realized that she seemed to have responded too harshly. Frowning, she let go of the girl, but Este never stopped crying. Chapter 137 Chapter 137 Chapter 137 End Up Just Like Them When Catalina saw Este sobbing her eyes out, she quickly stepped forward and said, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, Ms. Este had an episode again, and Ms. Pearson hit her. Her condition has only started improving today and hasn¡¯t stabilized yet. Please don¡¯t scare her.¡± Catalina had mulled over the incident the night before, and she could mostly guess who had hit Este. To convince Sonya to stop, she had no choice but to steel herself and tell the other woman her spection. However, Sonya seemed unfazed by that. ¡°Sonya has told me about this already. Essie was the one who had not been obedient, and Aubree only punished her in that way in her panic. She has already apologized to me. Essie is at fault too. Aubree will be her stepmother in the future, but she¡¯s still kicking up fusses like these.¡± Hearing that, Catalina realized she could not say anything else. All she could do was cast a pitying look at Este. The girl had just walked out of her own world recently. After this crying session, Catalina was afraid that she might revert to her state from the day before. After Archie and Benny heard their conversation, they guessed that the unfamiliar woman was Este¡¯s grandmother. Nevertheless, they did not hold themselves back as they refuted, ¡°Essie didn¡¯t kick up a fuss. That bad woman is in the wrong to have hurt a kid! Why would you listen to an outsider and scold Essie? She¡¯s been badly hit, but you don¡¯t feel upset for her at all? If not for my mommy¡¯s care, Essie Content held by N?velDrama.Org. might not have recovered by now!¡±Sonya was disgruntled with the way the children were chiding her. ¡°What do you know? Children shouldn¡¯t be intervening in the business of adults!¡± With that said, she grabbed Este¡¯s arm again. ¡°Look at them. They¡¯repletely uncultured. If you keep staying here, you¡¯re going to be just like them. Come home with me right now!¡± Este remained rooted to the spot, but her arm ached from Sonya¡¯s pull. Tears kept rolling down her cheeks as resistance shone brightly in her eyes. Roxanne had decided not to intervene in Este¡¯s matters after the earlier conversation, but she was reminded of how the girl was like the day before at the sight of her tears. Hence, she drew her brows together and said, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, I¡¯ve heard that you dote on Essie a lot, but is this the way you dote on her? Essie¡¯s crying, but you won¡¯t even heed what she wants?¡± Sonya gave her a side-eye. ¡°Who knows how you¡¯ve bewitched my granddaughter?¡± Just as the two were at a stand-still, someone rang the doorbell again. Knowing that it must be their father, Archie dashed to the door to open it. Lucian froze for a second when he saw the boy. Then, he noticed the tinge of anger on the boy¡¯s face. When he lifted his head to look straight ahead, he saw his mother grabbing Este¡¯s arm tightly and Este sobbing in utmost distress in the living room. At that, Lucian frowned and strode over to pry his mother¡¯s hand away. ¡°What are you doing?¡± Sonya¡¯s scowl deepened. ¡°If I hade anyter, my granddaughter was going to be someone else¡¯s granddaughter.¡± She then shot her son a discontented look. She could not believe that he had not told her that an outsider was taking care of her granddaughter, let alone the fact that the outsider was Roxanne. Lucian¡¯s eyes then flicked toward Roxanne, who had a simr cold look on her face. The tension in the living room was palpable. Finally, Lucian looked back at his mother and uttered, ¡°Let¡¯s have a talk.¡± Right as he said that, he turned and exited the mansion. Sonya stared at her son¡¯s retreating figure dubiously and hesitantly for a few seconds before she followed him out. Just as she stepped out of the house, she said to her son, ¡°Let me tell you now that, no matter what you say to me, I¡¯m still going to take Essie away from here with me!¡± Chapter 138 Chapter 138 Chapter 138 You Have Gone Overboard Upon hearing his mother¡¯s words, Lucian gave her a nomittal nod. Assuming that he had agreed, Sonya turned around and prepared to take Este with her. However, Lucian¡¯s voice suddenly rang out. ¡°You might not be aware of how Essie was over thest two days.¡± His words caused her to stop abruptly. Although she had heard from Catalina about Este¡¯s autistic episode over thest two days, she wasn¡¯t aware of how serious it was. ¡°Essie¡¯s episode this time was more intense than thest. Even James had no solution for it. Only when she¡¯s with Roxanne does she behave like a normal child. Furthermore, Roxanne has even managed to get her to talk the other day. Do you know how significant this ispared to the past?¡± Lucian questioned with a deep voice.Essie has talked? Sonya was filled with shock, as she had mentally prepared herself for Este to remain mute her entire life. I can¡¯t believe that woman managed to get her to speak! When he saw the astonishment on Sonya¡¯s face, Lucian pursed his lips. ¡°I was equally surprised, but there¡¯s no denying it. In fact, Essie refuses to leave Roxanne¡¯s side despite not even knowing thetter is her mother. Even if you refuse to admit it, there¡¯s no way you can erase the instinctive bond between them.¡± Sonya knitted her brows in displeasure. She knew that Lucian was right despite her unwillingness to ept the truth. At that moment, she couldn¡¯t find the words to rebut him. ¡°Mom, we have spent many years trying to cure Essie to no avail. But now, we finally have hope. Even if Essie epts Roxanne, I have no objections as long as she can fully recover.¡± Lucian spoke in a mellow and convincing voice. ¡°Given how much you love Essie, I¡¯m sure you, too, want the best for her. Therefore, I hope that you won¡¯t disrupt their lives anymore, as Essie can¡¯t afford to suffer another blow.¡± Even though the thought of Este¡¯s autism caused Sonya to waver, she still couldn¡¯t get over the past. She questioned angrily, ¡°Are you saying that you¡¯re willing to ept her even after what she has done to you?¡± Lucian replied, ¡°That¡¯s between the two of us. I¡¯ll deal with it properly.¡± Sonya pressed on. ¡°What about Essie? By allowing her to grow close to Roxanne, what¡¯s going to happen when she finds out that she was once abandoned by thetter? How will she feel? Will she be able to take it?¡± Lucian furrowed his brows together. Given that the matter was potentially a misunderstanding and it wasn¡¯t fully investigated yet, he had no intention of exining. He simply answered, ¡°There¡¯s no need for you to worry. Whatever Essie deserves to know, I won¡¯t hide it from her.¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. In other words, he would continue his rtionship with Roxanne and also allow Este to do the same. Cognizant of her son¡¯s character, Sonya knew that whatever she said would be useless. Nheless, she still couldn¡¯t help but remind him of Aubree. ¡°What about Aubree? What do you expect her to do? After she waited by your side for so many years and sacrificed so much for us, do you n to abandon her just like that?¡± Lucian was filled with hatred at the mention of Aubree. ¡°Do you know why Essie resents her?¡± Stunned, Sonya exined at once, ¡°Is it because of what Aubree did to Essie? Didn¡¯t she exin it to us already? She didn¡¯t do it on purpose and was only worried about Essie¡¯s safety. It only happened under desperate circumstances. Moreover, she regrets her action and has apologized to us about it.¡± Just as she finished, she turned the tables on him. ¡°As for you, you have gone overboard with your recent behavior toward her!¡± Chapter 139 Chapter 139 Chapter 139 Will You Really Cancel The Engagement Sonya¡¯s intentions were clear. She still hoped that Lucian would marry Aubree. Over thest six years, she had pestered him many times about it. Lucian cocked a brow in annoyance. ¡°I know what I¡¯m doing. There¡¯s no need for you to interfere.¡± Sonya was upset. ¡°You know what you¡¯re doing? Are you really nning on canceling the engagement?¡± Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Before Lucian could reply, Sonya¡¯s expression drastically changed while the resolve in her voice hardened. ¡°No matter what, you personally agreed to the engagement with the Pearson family. You cannot disappoint her after how long she has waited. I forbid you from reneging on your word, so don¡¯t ever bring it up in front of me again!¡± Subsequently, Sonya threw her son a stern look before shooting a re at the mansion¡¯s main door. It was as if she could pierce through it with her eyes and see Roxanne inside. In the end, she recovered her gaze before storming off.After watching his mother¡¯s silhouette disappear, Lucian collected his emotions and returned to the mansion. Este had stopped crying in Roxanne¡¯s arms and didn¡¯t appear to be badly affected. The moment she saw him enter, she jumped out of Roxanne¡¯s embrace and ran to hug his thigh. When she stared nkly at him, he could see that her eyes and nose were a bit red. After stroking her head tofort her, Lucian shifted his gaze in Roxanne¡¯s direction. ¡°I¡¯m sorry that my mom has caused you trouble. I didn¡¯t expect her to suddenlye here.¡± Having regained herposure, Roxanne nodded calmly. ¡°It¡¯s fine. I¡¯m not the least bit surprised by her attitude. After all, I left the Farwell family on very bad terms. Besides, she never approved of our marriage, and time has proven her right.¡± Back then, Roxanne had married Lucian in spite of Sonya¡¯s objections. Unfortunately, they tormented each other in the end. When she returned to the country, she had considered the possibility of the Farwell family giving her trouble. Nevertheless, she never expected to be involved with Lucian again, let alone encounter Sonya under such circumstances. Lucian frowned slightly at her answer but didn¡¯t know what to say, for Roxanne was merely stating the facts. In fact, his mother¡¯s prejudice against her had never decreased one bit. Suddenly, silence descended upon the living room. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, Mr. Farwell,¡± Catalina remarked carefully. ¡°It¡¯s time to send the children to school.¡± Both of them were jolted back to their senses. When Roxanne held her sons¡¯ hands, she hesitated for a while before looking at Lucian. ¡°As for Essie¡­ Do you want to take her, or do you want me to continue looking after her?¡± Sonya¡¯s words earlier had reminded Roxanne that Este couldn¡¯t stay by her side forever. Just when Lucian was about to reply, Este released his leg and ran back to grab Roxanne¡¯s dress. Both Roxanne and Lucian were shocked by her reaction. When Este heard for the second time that morning that she was going to leave Roxanne, her already reddened eyes moistened further. Giving Lucian a pleading look, she looked like she was going to continue crying if he were to decide to take her away. As he had no such intention, Lucian replied, ¡°Please continue watching over her as her condition has yet to stabilize. When it¡¯s inconvenient for you to do so, you can let Catalina bring her home.¡± When Roxanne saw how pitiful Este looked, she nodded with a wavering heart. Upon Roxanne¡¯s agreement, Este¡¯s miserable expression was reced by a delightful smile. Chapter 140 Chapter 140 Chapter 140 Patience Is Required On the way home from Roxanne¡¯s house, Sonya pondered upon the matter and decided to give Aubree a call. Meanwhile, Aubree was puzzled to receive Sonya¡¯s call so early in the morning. ¡°Aubree, I have already spoken to Lucian, and he will not speak of canceling the engagement with you again.¡± Even though Sonya had requested it unterally, she conveyed the decision simply because her son didn¡¯t object to it. Aubree was ecstatic to hear the news. ¡°Is it true, Mrs. Farwell?¡± Just as she spoke, she inquired further, ¡°But what about Roxanne? She seems to be very close to Lucian. Furthermore, Essie likes her too.¡±Sonya¡¯s tone turned grim at the mention of Roxanne. ¡°Just ignore her, as only you can be Lucian¡¯s future wife. With regard to Essie, you have to be more patient with her, for she¡¯s still just a child. I¡¯ll let the matter slide this time, but you had better not do that again!¡± Aubree readily agreed, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, please rest assured that I¡¯ll treat Essie as if she¡¯s my own daughter.¡± Nevertheless, the thought of Este staying with Roxanne over thest two days continued to unsettle her. Hence, she pried further, ¡°By the way, has Essie gone home yet? I want to find an opportunity to apologize to her.¡± Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Sonya replied in ackluster tone, ¡°Not yet. I wanted to bring her back, but her condition hasn¡¯t stabilized. She wants to stay with Roxanne, and it¡¯s also good for her recovery. By the time she feels better, I¡¯ll bring her back again.¡± In response, an icy glint shed across Aubree¡¯s eyes. That despicable kid is still together with Roxanne! Prior to this, she has been the reason why Lucian doesn¡¯t like me and refuses to marry me. Now that she is growing closer to Roxanne, she might be the reason for him to remarry thetter! The more Aubree thought about it, the more upset she became. Aware that her only hope continued to rest on Sonya, she maintained a cordial tone while speaking. ¡°I understand, Mrs. Farwell. Essie¡¯s well- being takes priority.¡± When Sonya heard Aubree¡¯s caring words, she advised in a solemn tone, ¡°Aubree, you have to be patient when ites to getting what you want. Do you understand what I mean?¡± ¡°I do, Mrs. Farwell. Don¡¯t worry,¡± Aubree replied calmly. Sonya nodded in satisfaction. ¡°Soon, I¡¯ll invite your parents to finalize your marriage. There¡¯s no need to feel anxious, as that will not help you achieve sess.¡± With the doubts in her heart removed, Aubree¡¯s eyes lit up as she agreed with a smile. In the evening, Roxanne arrived at the kindergarten on the dot to collect the three children. There, Lucian was already waiting. She had assumed that he would stay for dinner just like the day before. However, he left right away after dropping them off at the door, saying that he was busy. Upon entering the house, they were weed by the dinner Catalina had prepared. After finishing their food, Roxanne yed with the children for a while downstairs before ushering them to bed. Roxanne tucked Archie and Benny in and returned to her room, where Catalina had just given Este a bath. Having put on her bunny pajamas, Este looked like a stuffed toy as she sat starry-eyed on the bed while waiting for Roxanne. The moment she saw thetter enter, she broke into a sweet smile and stretched her arms out for a hug. As Roxanne picked Este up, thetter wrapped her arms around Roxanne¡¯s neck obediently. When Esteid her face against hers, Roxanne felt as if her heart was about to melt from the sensation. Chapter 141 Chapter 141 Chapter 141 Getting Involved Again The next morning, Roxanne sent the children to school alone as Lucian didn¡¯te. When Pippa saw Roxanne by herself, she was surprised. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, where¡¯s Mr. Farwell today?¡± Roxanne was briefly stunned by thement. She wasn¡¯t expecting Pippa to notice that Lucian had brought the children to school with her over the As it gave the impression that she and Lucian were close, Roxanne was stumped for an answer. Nheless, Este brought out her notebook and wrote: I¡¯m living with Ms. Jarvis now! She then raised it up with a vibrant smile on her face.When Pippa saw how cheerful Este was now in contrast to her listless expression from two days ago, she couldn¡¯t help but beam and stroke Este¡¯s hair. ¡°I see.¡± Subsequently, she returned her gaze to Roxanne and was bowled over by how much Este liked Roxanne and her sons. Roxanne heaved a sigh of relief in her mind when she saw Este answer on her behalf. After handing the children over, she remarked, ¡°Thanks for taking care of them.¡± With that, she bid farewell to the children before driving off. Due to how busy she was taking care of Este and managing the affairs of the research institute, she didn¡¯t manage to visit Alfred even though it was time for his next treatment. With that thought in mind, Roxanne turned her car around and headed to the Queen residence after Content held by N?velDrama.Org. confirming with Jonathan that it was a good time to visit. In the meantime, Jonathan was already waiting at home. He gave Roxanne a warm wee the moment she entered. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, I was already about to call you because you hadn¡¯t gotten in touch.¡± Roxanne smiled apologetically. ¡°Something came up thest two days. How is Old Mr. Queen doing?¡± In truth, Jonathan was just making idle chatter and didn¡¯t mean to me her. In response to her question, his eyes glistened in admiration. ¡°Thanks to your amazing medical skills, Grandpa¡¯s condition has improved significantly. Or else, I would already be pestering you.¡± Relieved to hear that Alfred was doing well, Roxanne went upstairs with her medical kit. Following her from behind, Jonathan furrowed his brows when he identally caught a glimpse of her hand that was holding the kit. ¡°Did you hurt yourself?¡± Roxanne thought nothing of it. ¡°I identally scalded myself when I spilled soup on it. It¡¯s not a bother at all.¡± After a momentary pause, she added, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, it won¡¯t affect Old Mr. Queen¡¯s treatment.¡± Alfred had received advance notice of her arrival, so when they entered his room one after another, he was already sitting in bed. Roxanne took a seat by Alfred¡¯s bed and began the treatment after greeting him cordially. Even though the wound on her hand looked nasty, she no longer felt any pain due to the effectiveness of her own medication. Therefore, it wasn¡¯t a hindrance to her when she inserted the needles into Alfred¡¯s body. Once the treatment waspleted, Roxanne started to pack up. Seeing that, Jonathan came over to help. Cognizant that he was concerned about her wound, Roxanne didn¡¯t stop him despite being briefly stunned. Upon arriving downstairs, Jonathan called out to her when she was about to leave. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, please hold on.¡± Stopping in her tracks, she gave Jonathan a puzzled look as he retrieved something from a drawer and walked up to her. ¡°This is my family¡¯s best medication for burn wounds. As a doctor, you have to take good care of your hands, as they¡¯re indispensable.¡± Just when she was about to thank him, Frieda¡¯s cynical voice rang out. ¡°Jonathan, you had better not be so kind. Otherwise, you might end up making someone fall for you.¡± Chapter 142 Chapter 142 Chapter 142 Not What I Meant In the end, Roxanne¡¯s thanks never left her mouth. Jonathan, too, was stunned. Frowning at Frieda, he reprimanded her, ¡°Frieda, what are you bbering about?¡± With a shrug of her shoulders, Frieda replied in nonchnce, ¡°I¡¯m being serious. Even though someone has broken up with Lucian without saying a word back then, she¡¯s still thick-skinned enough to cling to him now. Doesn¡¯t she already know that Aubree is with Lucian? What¡¯s the difference between her and a third party?¡± As she spoke, Frieda threw Roxanne a contemptuous look. I just can¡¯t stand her, and she¡¯ll never earn my respect even if she cures Grandpa. Although she didn¡¯t name names, it was clear that she was talking about Roxanne.As a gloomy expression gradually descended upon Roxanne¡¯s face, she said coldly, ¡°Ms. Queen, instead of making Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. snidements, you had better learn some proper manners yourself before going around patronizing others.¡± With a drastic change in her expression, Frieda shot Roxanne a re. ¡°How dare you use me of being ill-mannered!¡± Roxanne met her gaze with an emotionless face. ¡°What has my affairs with Lucian got anything to do with you? This is my personal matter, and you have no right to interfere. As ady of a prominent family, don¡¯t you think it¡¯s unbing of you to stick your nose in the business of others?¡± Roxanne¡¯s admonishment rendered Frieda speechless. She was worried about beingbeled as uncultured if she continued the argument. Recovering her gaze, Roxanne warned, ¡°To me, you¡¯re nothing but a stranger. At most, you¡¯re just a family member of my patient. Hence, you better not question me about my personal affairs!¡± With that, Roxanne bade goodbye to Jonathan and left before Frieda could react. Watching Roxanne¡¯s leaving silhouette, Frieda gritted her teeth in anger, for she had seen how Aubree stayed by Lucian¡¯s side over the years. If it wasn¡¯t for her, Lucian would already have married Aubree. And now that she has returned, she managed to draw Lucian¡¯s attention again. I don¡¯t know what gives her the cheek to even put on such airs! Aubree has treated Grandpa very well over the years and isn¡¯t inferior to her in any way. How dare this homewrecker use me of being ill-mannered! When Jonathan saw the rage on Frieda¡¯s face, he shot her a re before chasing after Roxanne. ¡°Dr. Jarvis!¡± Roxanne stopped and turned around upon hearing his voice. She was greeted by the sight of him running toward her. Giving him a baffled look, she asked, ¡°What is it?¡± Jonathan was visibly apologetic. ¡°I¡¯m here to say sorry on my sister¡¯s behalf. I don¡¯t know what has gotten into her. She seems to be easily agitated recently and keeps making snarky remarks. Please don¡¯t take what she said to heart.¡± Roxanne smiled inly. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I won¡¯t. I won¡¯t stop treating Old Mr. Queen because of her words either.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not what I meant.¡± Jonathan felt helpless. He admired Roxanne and felt that she would make a good friend. Yet, regardless of what he said, she would always steer the conversation back to Alfred¡¯s treatment. In no mood for idle chatter, Roxanne asked out of courtesy, ¡°Is there anything else?¡± As it would be rude to hold her back, Jonathan replied, ¡°That¡¯s all. Goodbye.¡± Roxanne nodded before getting into her car. Chapter 143 Chapter 143 Chapter 143 Picking Up The Children After watching Roxanne drive away, Jonathan returned to the mansion. Frieda, who was drinking coffee on the couch with a scowl on her face, gave him the side-eye before recovering her gaze. Jonathan¡¯s expression darkened when he caught her reaction. ¡°Why are you behaving this way? What has Dr. Jarvis done to you for you to be so hostile to her? Don¡¯t forget that she is Grandpa¡¯s savior!¡± Frieda looked at Jonathan and refuted, ¡°Savior? It¡¯s not like we didn¡¯t offer her anything. We¡¯re just getting what each of us needs out of it.¡± Filled with displeasure, she inquired further, ¡°Jonathan, why are you standing up for her? Has she tricked you too? In response to you asking me how she has offended me, I should be asking you if she has gotten in your head.¡± Jonathan red at her. ¡°Stop spewing nonsense. Whatever is going on between Dr. Jarvis and Lucian is between the two of them. We have no right to question her. You better not bring it up again!¡± Noticing Jonathan¡¯s anger, Frieda kept her mouth shut despite the indignance she felt inside.Even though Roxanne had no intention of taking Frieda¡¯s words seriously, she couldn¡¯t help being affected by them. Therefore, she still felt disheartened when she returned to the research institute. After going on her rounds and realizing there wasn¡¯t much to do, she decided to go home and rest so that she could collect her thoughts. Just when she was about to leave, someone knocked on her door. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Opening it, she saw that it was one of the reputable professors of the research institute. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, thank goodness you¡¯re still here. We have encountered a problem with our formtion during our experiments. We¡¯ve been trying the entire morning, but we can¡¯t seem to figure out what¡¯s wrong with it. Can you take a look at it for us?¡± With a solemn expression, Roxanne changed into herb coat and followed him back to theb. After going through it, she realized that the issue was indeed a serious one. As it was rted to an important project of the institute, she dived into the research without any dy. Before she knew it, it was already the evening, and she had forgotten about the children at school. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, your phone is ringing,¡± someone meekly reminded her. Jolted back to her senses, Roxanne picked up her phone from herb pocket to check. When she saw the caller ID on the screen, her brows couldn¡¯t help but knit together. Ever since she started taking care of Este, she had removed Lucian¡¯s number from her cklist. Why is he calling me at this hour? ¡°What is it?¡± Roxanne answered after a brief hesitation. Over at the other end, Lucian nced at the time before asking in a deep voice, ¡°Where are you now?¡± Roxanne replied, ¡°I¡¯m at the research institute. We¡¯re still figuring out a problem that we have encountered. What¡¯s wrong?¡± Lucian frowned at her answer. ¡°I understand. The kindergarten just called and said that they couldn¡¯t get you on the phone. Apparently, no one has picked up the children. Since you¡¯re busy, I¡¯ll collect them instead.¡± Only then did Roxanne remember that the children were still at school. With regard to the boys, they were used to her picking them upte when she was bogged down by work. However, the concern was that Este, who had just shown some progress, might be affected by it. Holding that thought, Roxanne began to feel bad. ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I was too caught up with work and didn¡¯t hear my phone. Why don¡¯t I go and pick them up?¡± Lucian was already on his way to the elevator with his jacket in his hand. ¡°It¡¯s fine. It doesn¡¯t matter which of us does it. You should continue with your work.¡± Just when Roxanne was about to say something, the call had already ended. Chapter 144 Chapter 144 Chapter 144 Why Are You Picking Us Up Staring at her phone, Roxanne hesitated briefly before putting it away and continuing with her research. Since she needed more time for work, she was d that Lucian was able to take the task off her Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. hands. Meanwhile, the three children were sitting on a bench at the kindergarten field with their bags behind their backs. Used to the fact that Roxanne would runte due to work, the boys sat upright and chatted with Pippa asionally. Sitting between the two brothers, Este started out feeling anxious. However, after a while, she began to be slowly distracted until she cupped her chin with her hands and listened intently to their conversation. Even when Lucian arrived, none of them noticed his presence. When he saw the three of them sitting together, Lucian felt his heart warm up. Subconsciously, he quickened his pace and hurried up to them. ¡°Mr. Farwell,¡± Pippa greeted when she saw him.Only then did the children look up and reacted with disappointment at the sight of him. Faced with the drastic change in the children¡¯s expressions, Lucian cocked a brow but didn¡¯tment. Instead, he informed Pippa, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, I was caught up with work. I¡¯ll be picking Archie and Benny up, too.¡± Well aware that the three children were always together the past few days, Pippa didn¡¯t inquire any further. After handing them over to him, she took her leave and went home. In spite of that, the children continued to sit on the bench without moving. Lucian stared at them in amusement. ¡°Do you still feel like sitting here for a while?¡± Benny shook his head in reflex, for he didn¡¯t want to continue staying there. The air was cold, while the bench was hard. Moreover, his bag was heavy, and he could already hear his stomach growling. Archie looked at Lucian with a serious expression. ¡°Where¡¯s Mommy? Why are you the one picking us up?¡± Este, too, stared at her daddy and awaited his reply. ¡°She¡¯s still busy at the research institute, and it would be toote by the time she¡¯s done. I came over first to take all of you to dinner,¡± Lucian summarized. ¡°Besides, I¡¯m sure all of you are hungry. Come with me.¡± Nevertheless, Archie remained hesitant. As for Benny, he was famished and also excited that he finally had an opportunity to spend time with his father. However, when he didn¡¯t hear Archie¡¯s response, he, too, fell silent and waited for his brother to express his thoughts. When it came to Este, she had no objections, for she was used to eating with Lucian. In spite of that, she remained seated when she didn¡¯t see any movement from the boys. Noticing the expectant look in Benny¡¯s eyes, Archie paused for a moment before indicating his agreement by getting off the bench. Behaving just like hisckeys, Benny and Este followed suit. Even though no words were exchanged, Lucian recognized their tacit agreement to have dinner with him. After the four of them got into the car, Lucian drove, while the children sat in a uniform row behind. ¡°Since I don¡¯t know what you like, I¡¯ll just bring you to one of Este¡¯s favorite restaurants.¡± Lucian decided on the spot. Benny answered without another thought. ¡°I¡¯m fine with that!¡± Just as he spoke, he felt a tug from Archie and proceeded to keep his mouth shut sheepishly. Without another word, Lucian drove them straight to the restaurant. The high-end restaurant they were brought to had a historical look to it. Since Archie and Benny grew up overseas, they had never seen such a design before. Hence, they looked around curiously once they took their seats. Lucian felt a warm sensation in his heart when he saw how their interest was piqued. ¡°What would you like to eat?¡± Chapter 145 Chapter 145 Chapter 145 I Dislike Him For Leaving Us Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Feeling famished, Benny recovered his gaze from the decorations the moment he heard Lucian mention food. He counted with his fingers. ¡°I would like pork ribs, fried fish, drumsticks¡­ All these are our favorite food!¡± Lucian subsequently turned his attention toward Archie, who wasn¡¯t keen on answering initially. However, since Benny had replied on his behalf, Archie had no choice but to quietly nod. After ordering the food based on the children¡¯s taste, Lucian didn¡¯t know what to talk to them about, causing an awkward silence to fall upon the table. Once the dishes arrived, Lucian instructed the waiter to ce them in front of the boys. It was only then that Archie uttered in a cordial yet distant tone, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t mention it.¡± Lucian nodded in acknowledgment. His tone sounded awkward as he had seldom spent time interacting with them.During dinner, he would serve them food even though he didn¡¯t feed them as Roxanne did. Nheless, the children wolfed down their food. ¡°Is the food right to your taste?¡± Finally, Lucian thought of what to ask after struggling to find a topic. Raising his head, Benny rubbed his stomach before giving the question some thought. In the end, he responded in an earnest tone, ¡°It¡¯s delicious but not as good as Mommy¡¯s cooking.¡± Lucian cocked his brow in surprise. ¡°Does your mommy cook often?¡± Without thinking twice, Benny replied candidly, ¡°Mmm-hmm. She¡¯ll cook for us when she¡¯s not busy. But when she¡¯s overwhelmed by work, she won¡¯t even have time to eat.¡± At that moment, a concerned expression emerged on his face, for he was sure that she had yet to eat. Meanwhile, Este¡¯s eyes lit up in envy. She, too, wanted to have Roxanne¡¯s cooking every day. Oblivious to what was going through their minds, Lucian remained curious about Archie and Benny¡¯s daily lives. ¡°In that case, how do you cope when your mommy is busy?¡± The moment the words left his mouth, Lucian regretted it at once. If Roxanne is busy, their father would naturally be the one to take care of them. There¡¯s no way the three of them lived overseas alone. With that thought in mind, Lucian couldn¡¯t help but think about Roxanne. Compared to six years ago, she looked sterner now. He figured that her losing weight might be one of the reasons behind it. Unaware of what was going through Lucian¡¯s mind, Benny answered naively, ¡°When Mommy is busy, her professor or assistant will help to babysit us. Sometimes, she¡¯ll even bring us to the research institute, where her colleagues adore us.¡± Rattled back to his senses, Lucian was baffled and a little displeased. ¡°What about your daddy? Why doesn¡¯t he take care of you?¡± His words stunned the brothers. Daddy? Our daddy is sitting right in front of us. He just doesn¡¯t know it. Putting his cutlery down, Archie furrowed his brows and stopped Benny from speaking. He stared at Lucian and demanded, ¡°What do you want to know?¡± Lucian was slightly shocked. A brief momentter, he pursed his lips as if nothing had happened and replied, ¡°Nothing, I was just showing some concern.¡± After staring at Lucian for quite a while, Archie recovered his exasperated gaze before asserting in a firm tone, ¡°Ever since we were born, we have not seen our daddy. He¡¯s a viin for abandoning Mommy and us. Therefore, I don¡¯t like him!¡± When he finished, Archie raised his head to give Lucian another nce before going back to his food. Chapter 146 Chapter 146 Chapter 146 Disappointment Meanwhile, Benny, who had something to say, swallowed his words after his brother¡¯s tirade. I have almost forgotten that Daddy is a viin, and we were supposed to ignore him! Lucian frowned when he sensed the unhappiness in the boys. Realizing that he had asked an inappropriate question, he apologized, ¡°I¡¯m sorry. I didn¡¯t mean to bring up your painful past.¡± Despite opening his mouth, no words came out after that, for he didn¡¯t know how else tofort them. Archie lowered his head and pretended to focus on his food. ¡°It¡¯s all right. We have gotten used to it, anyway,¡± he said. At that moment, the atmosphere at the table grew tense. Unable to restrain himself after eating in silence, Benny raised a teary-eyed gaze at Lucian. ¡°Mr. Farwell, do you like children?¡±Lucian was dumbstruck by the look on Benny¡¯s face. Benny continued with his soliloquy. ¡°I suppose you do, as I can see that you treat Essie very well. Since you don¡¯t hate children, why do you dislike us then?¡± While speaking, Benny looked at Lucian with puppy eyes. It¡¯s clear that you don¡¯t hate kids, so why did you abandon us, Daddy? He was on the brink of vocalizing the question in his mind. Startled by his brother¡¯s words, Archie was well aware of what the former wanted to ask. Hence, he preempted the question by serving him some food. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say that you were hungry? Here, eat up.¡± Despite the sadness within him, he didn¡¯t want to show it in front of Lucian. Furthermore, he knew that Roxanne didn¡¯t want Lucian to know their identity. Having been reminded by his brother, Benny pouted and continued to eat the food on his te. However, he no longer took any extras. In the end, Lucian had no answers to Benny¡¯s questions. In fact, he was intrigued about the actual N?velDrama.Org ? content. genesis of the questions. Subsequently, the tension at the table intensified with no one saying another word until dinner was over. When Este, who didn¡¯t speak anyway, saw the somber mood the brothers were in, she felt equally glum. As the only adult at the table, Lucian tried to liven up the atmosphere with new topics but failed when the brothers just refused to talk. Once dinner was over, he sent the children back to Roxanne¡¯s house. As Roxanne wasn¡¯t back yet, Catalina, who was feeling worried, was relieved to see Lucian and the children. Instead of leaving right away, Lucian stayed to make small talk with Catalina while watching the children y in the living room. It wasn¡¯t until around eight o¡¯clock that Roxanne finally returned from work. However, the children only threw her a nce and didn¡¯t rush to wee her like they usually did. From their response, Roxanne could sense that something was amiss with their mood. Since Lucian was still around, she went over and asked, ¡°What has gotten into them? Were they bullied in school?¡± Furrowing his brows slightly, Lucian gave her an apologetic look. ¡°They became like that after I inquired about their father during dinner. I¡¯m sorry, I didn¡¯t do it on purpose.¡± Roxanne was startled by his words. After she regained herposure, her expression was a bit dark. ¡°What did you ask them such a question for?¡± Unable to figure out the reason for it, Lucian was momentarily speechless. Roxanne suppressed the panic within her and gave him a stern warning. ¡°Both of them grew up without a father and don¡¯t like others bringing it up. Therefore, Mr. Farwell, please do not ask them such questions ever again.¡± Chapter 147 Chapter 147 Chapter 147 Heartache Lucian assumed that Roxanne was angry because the children were upset. Thus, he promised in an apologetic tone, ¡°I didn¡¯t know that before. Now that I do, you can rest assured that I won¡¯t mention this in front of them again.¡± After ncing at the children, who were ying Lego, Roxanne suddenly felt what a close shave it was for Lucian to talk to the boys about their father. With nothing else to say to him, she hinted for him to leave. ¡°It¡¯s gettingte, Mr. Farwell. Why don¡¯t you head home first? Thank you for taking the trouble to pick the kids up on my behalf today.¡± After a brief hesitation, Lucian nodded before leaving. On the journey home, he felt extremely unsettled but couldn¡¯t put a finger on what it was. When he arrived, he removed his tie in frustration and sat on the couch for a while. Even then, he continued to feel disturbed. Subsequently, he brought out a bottle of wine from the cab, sitting by the window to drink alone.After two sses, images of what happened at dinner gradually emerged in his mind. The children were giving him angry yet pitiful looks while demanding to know why he didn¡¯t like them. With their faces and tone in his mind, Lucian couldn¡¯t help but feel a piercing pain in his heart. After Lucian was gone, Roxanne yed with the children for a while before sending them to bed. Having tucked Este in, Roxanne pondered a moment before knocking on the boys¡¯ door. Meanwhile, both of them were unable to sleep as they were still disturbed by the event earlier. ¡°Mommy, what is it?¡± Archie asked curiously when he opened the door and saw her. Roxanne tousled his hair. ¡°I just want to have a talk with both of you. Let¡¯s go inside.¡± Archie nodded before climbing back up to bed. He looked exceptionally adorable in his cow-print pajamas while his loose fringes billowed in front of his eyes. As her heart softened, Roxanne closed the door and settled down by the bedside. She asked softly, ¡°Did Mr. Farwell ask you about your daddy during dinner?¡± The boys nodded in unison. Archie added in his squeaky voice, ¡°We told him that we don¡¯t have a daddy and also the fact that we dislike our daddy.¡± Roxanne felt her heart m up in response. She could sense a faint sadness in the boy¡¯s tone. After all, she had kept their family origins from them and told them that they didn¡¯t have a father. However, if I were to tell them the man they had dinner with was their daddy, how would they react? ¡°Boys¡­ Do you feel that you¡¯re different from other children? Have you ever thought of wanting a daddy?¡± Roxanne asked after a momentary pause. The boys shook their heads. ¡°No.¡± Roxanne¡¯s brows knitted slightly. ¡°But¡­¡± They¡¯re clearly saddened by the events of the evening. N?velDrama.Org ? content. With each of them holding one of her arms, they put on a serious expression. ¡°Even though we don¡¯t have a daddy, we still have you, and you are the best mommy in the whole wide world! No one can As if to prove a point, Benny gave Roxanne an earnest look. ¡°Although Essie has a daddy, she still prefers you because you¡¯re the best. Therefore, we don¡¯t need a daddy at all!¡± Roxanne was both touched and heartbroken at the same time. Hugging the children in a tight embrace, she didn¡¯t say a word for a long time. Chapter 148 Chapter 148 Chapter 148 Making It Up To Her Feeling bad for making the boys sad, Lucian didn¡¯t show up for the next few days. Instead, he would asionally send a message to check in on Este. As for Roxanne, she heightened her vignce after what happened and was secretly relieved that he didn¡¯t drop by. When she saw that his messages were not rted to the boys, she replied to all of them ordingly. From the frequent messages that he sent, Roxanne could see how much he cared for Este. Since he cares so much about her, why hasn¡¯t he made an appearance? Is he not worried about leaving her with me just like that? I really have no idea what¡¯s going through that mind of his. Luckily, Este was adorable. Not only did she have exquisite features, she was also exceptionally obedient. Every time she cozied up to Roxanne, Roxanne would be reminded of the daughter she had lost. If she managed to grow up safely, she would be Essie¡¯s age. With that thought in mind, Roxanne treated Este as if she was family. Deep down, she felt that being nice to thetter was her way of making it up to her lost daughter.After spending a lot of time together, Archie and Benny began to see Este as their own sister. Whether they were at home or in kindergarten, they would constantly protect her. Meanwhile, Este smiled all the time during her stay with Roxanne. When Roxanne saw how happy Este was, she could feel her heartstrings being tugged. At the rate they were progressing, Este¡¯s condition quickly stabilized. In other words, she would be able to go home soon. Holding that thought, Roxanne began to feel reluctant to part with Este. During the weekend, Roxanne nned to take them out for the day, as they have not gone on an outing ever since Este started staying with them. ¡°Mommy!¡± Archie and Benny approached her enthusiastically. ¡°Let¡¯s take Essie to the aquarium!¡± Hearing that, Roxanne looked in Este¡¯s direction to seek her opinion. Thetter nodded obediently. As long as I can stay with Ms. Jarvis, Archie, and Benny, it doesn¡¯t matter where I go. With that, Roxanne got the children to pack up before heading to the aquarium together. Since Lucian was usually busy with work, he seldom brought Este out. As for Archie and Benny, it was the first time both of them visited an aquarium in the country. The moment the children entered the aquarium, they were captivated by the smorgasbord of marine life in it. From time to time, they would stop to interact with the fishes. Roxanne would patiently wait and take pictures for them. Furthermore, she would also provide an exnation of the fish that she recognized. As a result, the children had a st inside. Afterward, Roxanne took them to the children¡¯s activity center where she sat by the side and waited. Just then, her phone rang. When she saw who it was, her brows slightly knitted. Lucian? He has only been sending messages recently, so why is he calling now? Lucian¡¯s voice rang out once the call connected. ¡°Where are you?¡± Roxanne was briefly stunned. ¡°Did somethinge up?¡± Lucian replied in a deep voice. ¡°I brought Essie something, but Catalina told me that you guys have gone out. Where are you? I¡¯ll go over instead.¡± He dropped by early in the morning to see Este but didn¡¯t find her there. When Cayden asked him Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. whether he wanted to go home, Lucian hesitated before giving Roxanne a call. Since it was about Este, Roxanne pondered briefly before replying, ¡°We¡¯re at the aquarium.¡± Over the line, Lucian¡¯s voice rang out at once. ¡°I¡¯ll head over right away.¡± Chapter 149 Chapter 149 Chapter 149 Este Spoke Again After hanging up, Roxanne could not help but worry as she watched the three children ying happily. Due to what happened previously, she was concerned that Lucian would bring up Archie and Benny¡¯s background again. Furthermore, she did not want Lucian to find out about Este¡¯s present condition and decided to take her back. Soon, Lucian called again. ¡°I have arrived. Which attraction are you at?¡± At the same time, the three children urged Roxanne to bring them to a beluga whale performance. Thus, Roxanne agreed to the children¡¯s requests and replied to Lucien, ¡°We will wait for you at the beluga whale aquarium.¡± After hanging up, Roxanne went to the beluga whale aquarium with the children. Meanwhile, Lucian and Cayden bought tickets before heading there too. Roxanne led the children to sit in the front row near the side. Soon, Lucian came in and saw them N?velDrama.Org ? content. instantly. He went to sit beside them. Este greeted Lucian happily upon seeing him but soon turned her attention back to the beluga whale performance.On the other hand, Archie and Benny only nodded in his direction and did not bother to say hi. Lucian could see Archie and Benny still did not want to talk to him. He knew it was due to what happened during dinner that night and felt frustrated. Meanwhile, Roxanne also only greeted him briefly before turning her attention to the performance. Seeing this, Lucian had no choice but to remain silent. An aquarium staff stood below the stage and alternated between directing the beluga whales to leap out of the water or getting them to spin around. The beluga whales carried out the orders perfectly and looked adorable. The children watched with sparkles in their eyes. ¡°Is there anyone among the audience who would like toe and y with our beluga whales?¡± The staff turned to look at the audience. The children raised their hands excitedly upon hearing the offer. Benny stretched his hand as high as he could and shouted, ¡°Me! Me!¡± To their delight, the staff turned to them and said, ¡°The two boys and a girl over there. I can see you like beluga whales very much. Why don¡¯t youe here to y with them?¡± Hearing that, the children jumped with joy but did not forget to seek Roxanne¡¯s permission. As Roxanne was concerned about the children¡¯s safety, the staff added, ¡°May I ask the parents toe here with the children?¡± Therefore, Roxanne and the children held hands and went to the side of the pool. Then, they followed the staff¡¯s instructions and yed with the beluga whales for a while. Soon, it was break time, but the four of them stayed by the pool. The staff found the children¡¯s enthusiasm endearing and guided them to interact with the beluga whales. Meanwhile, Roxanne watched from the side. Archie and Benny stayed together. Benny had always been yful. He kneeled by the pool and scooped water onto the beluga whale. ¡°I¡¯m bathing you! You must stay still and not move!¡± However, why would the beluga whale listen to his instruction? It kept sshing water back at Benny. Thus, Benny and the beluga whale sshed water at each other. The water soon drenched Archie who watched from the side. Archie was annoyed and stepped further away from them. On the other hand, Este squatted quietly by the pool and gently patted a beluga whale¡¯s head. She looked at it adoringly. The beluga whale floated near the surface obediently and epted her touch. The staff saw how well Este was getting along with the small beluga whale and gave instructions to the beluga whale from behind Este. Suddenly, the beluga whale leaped out of the water¡¯s surface. The sudden movement shocked Este, and she tried to step away. However, she felt a cool sensation on her cheek. Soon, the beluga whale dived back into the water with a ssh. Este was stunned for a few seconds and turned to Roxanne excitedly to share her joy. ¡°Wow, Ms. Jarvis, the beluga whale kissed me!¡± Chapter 150 Chapter 150 Chapter 150 It Was Always Rted To Her Roxanne could hear Este¡¯s childish voice clearly through the sshing noise. She could not help but remain stunned for a moment, thinking she had misheard. Then, she looked at Este with an astonished expression. Benny was also stunned and stopped whatever he was doing. He did not even care about water sshing on him. However, Este soon continued ying with the beluga whale. She did not notice Roxanne and the others¡¯ shocked expressions. The staff finally let them return to their seats when the next segment began. Roxanne and the two boys were still stunned. On the other hand, Este held Roxanne¡¯s hand and sat down like nothing strange had happened. Lucian noticed their dazed expressions and asked with a frown, ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡±Roxanne finally came to her senses. She nced at Este before whispering, ¡°Este¡­ She seemed to have spoken just now.¡± Furthermore, she spoke fluently and has a lovely voice. Lucian nced at his daughter with a surprised expression and asked, ¡°What did she say?¡± Roxanne was taken aback by his question. She was too surprised by Este speaking suddenly and could not remember what Este said. Archie chimed in. ¡°She said the beluga whale kissed her.¡± Next to Archie, Benny could not resist his curiosity and asked, ¡°Isn¡¯t Essie mute?¡± They had always thought Este was mute. After all, they had never heard her speak since they first met her. Lucian frowned and answered, ¡°When did I ever say that Essie was mute?¡± Archie and Benny exchanged nces. Roxanne asked in confusion, ¡°Essie doesn¡¯t speak. You also prepared a notepad so that she can write tomunicate.¡± Lucian felt a little helpless as they mentioned this matter. ¡°Este was usually unwilling to speak because of autism. Even I only hear a few words from her asionally. Thankfully, she is willing to write tomunicate with us.¡± Roxanne suddenly remembered how Este was when something triggered her autism. Her heart ached for Este. On the other hand, Lucian looked conflicted. Este was diagnosed with autism when she was little. Thus, Lucian could count on the fingers of one hand the number of times she spoke. Thest time Este spoke was when she was anxious about Roxanne leaving. If what Roxanne and the boys said were true, Este spoke again in Roxanne¡¯s presence. The two times she had spoken concerned Roxanne. Could it be the special bond between a mother and daughter? Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened as he thought about this. Then, he turned to Este and asked gently, ¡°Essie, did you have fun ying with the beluga whale just now?¡± Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. Este smiled, forming dimples on her cheeks. She nodded obediently but did not speak. That prompted Lucian to frown slightly. However, he continued to attempt to coax her to speak. ¡°What did you y with the beluga whale? Can you tell me about it?¡± Benny heard Este speak for the first time just now. He was curious and wanted to hear more. Thus, he urged Este, ¡°Essie, tell me too! My beluga whale would not listen to me. I bathed it, but it sprayed water all over Archie and me! How was yours so obedient?¡± Este knitted her brow slightly and became flustered by their numerous questions. She searched through Roxanne¡¯s bag to find a pencil and paper to write to them. Lucian saw what Este was nning to do and frowned. He did not ask any more questions. Chapter 151 Chapter 151 Chapter 151 Who Dares To Ignore Him Roxanne guessed what Lucian was nning and could not help but anticipate what Este would say. Although she was disappointed to see Este taking a pencil and paper from her bag, she did not show it in her expression. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. Este has just started to improve and still needs time to stabilize. She probably only speaks when she is excited about something. So, let¡¯s be patient.¡± Lucian nodded quietly. He found himself agreeing with Roxanne. The fact that Este said something was already a good development. Thus, he should not demand too much but let her improve naturally. Este wrote for a while and took some time to think. Then, she finally answered all their questions. Lucian and Benny listened to her attentively and gave encouraging responses. The beluga whale performance came to an end, but the three children were still reluctant to leave. Roxanne saw that there was still time and continued to let them y in the marine park.Lucian was not sure why he came here today. Thus, he followed behind them and apanied Roxanne and the children as they tour around the marine park. During this time, the three children kept pulling Roxanne with them as they ran around. They seemed to have forgotten about Lucian. Lucian looked at how happy they were and had an inexplicable sense that they had forgotten him. It was bad enough that Roxanne, Archie, and Benny ignored him. Even Este had forgotten about him. Meanwhile, Cayden had received instructions not to disturb them. Therefore, he followed behind Lucian quietly from a distance. He had witnessed Lucian being left out by his family a few times. Yet, Lucian would always follow them quietly. Thus, Cayden could not help but pity him. Mr. Farwell had never suffered such indignity. Everyone in Horington knew the Farwell Group. Who would dare to ignore him? Perhaps only these four people before him. Lucian could vaguely sense that it was Archie and Benny who excluded him. Ultimately, they were still unhappy over the conversation during dinner that night. Lucian did not expect them to still hold a grudge over the matter. After figuring out the reason, Lucian did not say anything but followed Roxanne and the children quietly. They remained in the marine park until evening, nearing its closing time. By then, the children were tired and had yed at every avable attraction in the marine park. Roxanne had not expected to spend so much time in the marine park and was exhausted. She was relieved that the children were finally tired and decided to send them home. However, Lucian continued to follow them. Roxanne did not mind. She thought he only wanted to spend some time with Este and would leave soon. Then, she noticed he still followed them even when they reached the underground parking. Roxanne felt frustrated and said, ¡°Mr. Farwell, are there other matters? I¡¯m bringing them home if there is nothing else.¡± Hearing her, the three children all turned to look at Lucian curiously. Belongs to N?velDrama.Org - All rights reserved. Lucian nodded. ¡°Please wait for a moment. I have something for Este in the car.¡± After saying that, he headed to his car to get something. Roxanne was puzzled. Este had been staying at her ce for nearly a week. She did not think Estecked anything. Soon, Lucian and Cayden came over, holding arge box each. ¡°What are these?¡± Roxanne frowned slightly. One of the boxes contained a few limited edition robot figurines, while the other box had high-tech small cars and robot models. Everything looked expensive. Roxanne knew about them because Archie and Benny liked these things. Thus, she instantly recognized what Lucian had brought. She grew suspicious. None of these look like something Este would be interested in. Instead, they are the things Archie and Benny like. Chapter 152 Chapter 152 Chapter 152 Presents To Express Apology Roxanne hesitated before asking, ¡°These aren¡¯t for Este, right?¡± Lucian admitted to it straight away, ¡°I bought these for Archie and Benny. I¡¯d misspoken a few days ago. After returning home, I thought over what I said and felt I should apologize even though they were children. I noticed something simr in your house and thought Archie and Benny would like these.¡± After saying that, Lucian looked at Archie and Benny solemnly and offered a box to them. ¡°I¡¯m sorry for what I said before. I hope these are to your liking.¡± Archie and Benny looked at the toys delightedly. It was normal for boys to love robots and race cars. Furthermore, Archie and Benny had much higher IQs than their peers. Therefore, they preferred moreplicated toys and were interested in high-tech ones. They used to badger Roxanne to buy them. However, some of these were too expensive. Although they liked those toys very much, they were sensible and did not mention them to Roxanne.Thus, they were surprised that Lucian knew what they liked. Benny could not resist taking a couple of steps toward Lucian and looking into the box. It contained all the toys he coveted on the website. He nearly used the small fortune Archie earned in stock trading to get them, causing Archie to scold him. Although Archie liked the toys, he could not forget that Lucian abandoned his mother. He stood still with a stern expression but could not resist looking into the boxes. One could see Archie and Benny desired the presents from Lucian.Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Benny looked at the toys for a long time before turning to his mother and seeking her opinion. If Mommy disagrees, I will never ept the toys, no matter how much I like them. Roxanne looked at Archie and Benny¡¯s expressions and began to relent. However, she hesitated again as she looked at the things Lucian was holding. She had noticed Archie and Benny checking out those toy models and figurines on the Web. They were all highly sought-after limited editions. The race car model Lucian held cost two hundred thousand. Furthermore, the price is still rising due to market demand. Since Lucian wanted to apologize to the children, she would not stop him from giving them presents. However, those presents were too expensive. Benny seemed to understand what Roxanne was thinking. He looked at the models longingly before returning to Archie¡¯s side. Still, Roxanne relented when she saw his disappointed expression. Thus, she said, ¡°That¡¯s thoughtful of you. My sons love these toys. However, the toys are too expensive, so let me know how much they cost. I will transfer the money to you.¡± Lucian frowned upon hearing her. ¡°I prepared these presents as an apology, so how can I ask you to pay? Furthermore, you must have spent a lot on Essie¡¯s expenses. These toys are only a small gift from me. I¡¯m afraid they are not even good enough to express my remorse. Thus, if you insist on paying, there is no sincerity left.¡± Roxanne hesitated upon hearing his exnation. Although the money Lucian spent on the gifts was only a minute sum to him, Roxanne still felt ufortable epting the presents. Lucian understood what she was thinking and replied solemnly, ¡°If you insist on paying, I should also pay you much more than this for taking good care of Essie. You have improved her condition tremendously. Will you be willing to ept my payment?¡± Roxanne finally gave up refusing the presents. She nodded toward Archie and Benny. ¡°Since they are presents from Mr. Farwell, you should ept them.¡± Hearing her, Archie responded with a polite but detached tone, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell.¡± Chapter 153 Chapter 153 Chapter 153 His Speech Moved Her Lucian and Cayden brought the boxes of toys to Roxanne¡¯s car. Then, they said goodbye and left. After getting into the car, Cayden hesitated and asked, ¡°Mr. Farwell, are you not going to spend more time with Ms. Este?¡± Ms. Este has been staying in Roxanne¡¯s home all this while and rarely interacts with Mr. Farwell. I¡¯m concerned they would grow distant from theck of interaction. Lucian shook his head but did not say anything. Archie and Benny have not truly forgiven me. I have already followed them for a day and finally managed to redeem myself a little through gifts. If I continued to follow them, I would lose the little goodwill I received. Lucian felt his head throbbing as he thought about Archie and Benny¡¯s attitude toward him. Suddenly, a phone rang in the car.Lucian adjusted his emotions and answered the call with a frown, ¡°What is the matter?¡± It was a call from Jonathan. ¡°Lucian, are you free in a couple of days? It will be my grandpa¡¯s seventieth birthday soon. Initially, we did not n to organize a banquet. However, he has be much healthier recently, so we n to have a huge celebration. You muste to the banquet!¡± Lucian replied in a deep voice, ¡°Sure, I will spare some time to attend it.¡± Alfred had treated Lucian well. Furthermore, Lucian worked hard to find a way to cure Alfred. Therefore, he nned to attend Alfred¡¯s seventieth birthday banquet.Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. Meanwhile, Roxanne went home with the three children. Archie and Benny could not wait to unbox the figurines the instant they got home. They yed with the figurines until midnight. Since they did not have to go to school the next day, Roxanne did not stop them but coaxed Este to sleep. The following morning, Roxanne let Catalina take care of the children while she went to the Queen residence to treat Alfred¡¯s illness. Jonathan was present during the treatment and discussed the details of the birthday banquet with Alfred. Suddenly, Jonathan turned to Roxanne and asked, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, will you be free to attend Grandpa¡¯s birthday banquet in a couple of days? I can include you on the invitation list.¡± Roxanne had just finished with Alfred¡¯s medical treatment and was surprised to receive an invitation to the birthday banquet. She had listened to Jonathan and Alfred¡¯s conversation and knew it would be quite the affair. They had invited many prominent people in Horington and prestigious families that were closely acquainted with the Queen family. On the other hand, Roxanne was only a neer and a little-known doctor in Horington. She believed she had no ce at this birthday banquet. Therefore, Roxanne hesitated and decided to refuse in the end. ¡°I think I¡¯d better not. I¡¯m not good with such opulent social gatherings.¡± Hearing her, Alfred responded immediately, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, it is all thanks to you that I can have a birthday banquet this time. If not for your efforts, I would still be bedridden! Therefore, I hope you can attend this birthday banquet. It would make me happy to have you there. Also, don¡¯t worry. If you dislike socializing, I will make sure that no one disturbs you.¡± Roxanne did not know how to refuse in the face of Alfred¡¯s enthusiastic invitation. Then, Jonathan smiled and added, ¡°Even if you are not good at socializing, you will still have to learn it eventually. You are now in charge of a research institute, so you will have to interact with these people. Furthermore, you can use this opportunity to get to know some of them. Who knows? You might bring good business opportunities to the research institute.¡± Those words struck a chord with Roxanne. Therefore, Roxanne nodded and said, ¡°Thank you for having such good regard for me, Old Mr. Queen. In that case, I shall ept the invitation and will show up on time.¡± Before leaving, Roxanne briefly exined the subsequent treatment to Alfred, ¡°You have one session of treatment left. After this, you only have to rest and recuperate. I will prescribe some medicine for you, so you must remember to take them on time. If you do, you will gradually recover.¡± Jonathan and Alfred answered in the affirmative and thanked her. Chapter 154 Chapter 154 Chapter 154 Give Up On Him It was the afternoon. Aubree and Frieda sat opposite each other in Thousand Degrees Cafe, drinking coffee and chatting. They suddenly talked about Alfred¡¯s seventieth birthday banquet. ¡°Aubree, will you be attending my grandpa¡¯s seventieth birthday banquet?¡± Frieda asked cryptically. Aubree had heard about the birthday banquet. Since the Queen family was closely acquainted with the Farwell family, Aubree believed she would have to attend. Thus, she nodded and said, ¡°I¡¯m going. Why?¡± Frieda asked, ¡°Erm¡­ Would Lucian be attending with you? Everyone knows you are a couple!¡± Aubree hesitated upon hearing this. She knew Lucian would attend. However, she did not expect him to ask her to go with him.Although Lucian did not cancel their engagement all these years, he behaved indifferently toward her. However, Frieda was unaware of Aubree¡¯s concerns and continued, ¡°Both of you must attend together. Then, you can show that woman who you are!¡± Frieda hated Roxanne for her cold attitude toward her. That was why Frieda invited Aubree to meet and discuss the birthday banquet. Roxanne is nothing without Lucian¡¯s protection. I want to show her who Lucian truly loves! Aubree naturally knew who Frieda meant. Her heart sank as she remembered how Lucian treated Roxanne, prompting her to reply immediately, ¡°Of course. Lucian and I are in a rtionship. We will attend the birthday banquet together.¡± Frieda was delighted to hear that. ¡°That¡¯s wonderful! You have no idea how arrogant that woman was banquet with Lucian!¡± Aubree was looking forward to it too. Things had not been going well for Aubree ever since Roxanne returned to the country. Good. I can use this chance to make her give up on Lucianpletely! Then, Aubree and Frieda finished their coffee and went shopping before they parted ways. Aubree became anxious about theing birthday banquet once she returned home. Although she promised Frieda to attend the birthday banquet with Lucian, she did not know how she could convince Lucian to do that. After considering for some time, Aubree decided to summon the courage and called Sonya on the phone. ¡°What is the matter?¡± Sonya¡¯s voice sounded the second the call connected. Aubree calmed her emotions and said apologetically, ¡°Mrs. Farwell, I heard Old Mr. Queen is having a birthday banquet soon. Will Lucian be attending?¡± ¡°He will,¡± Sonya replied matter-of-factly. After saying that, Sonya remembered Aubree and Lucian had quarreled about Este. Thus, she persuaded Aubree. ¡°When the timees, you should apologize to him. I will put in a good word for you. Both of you shouldn¡¯t continue to quarrel like this.¡± Aubree agreed, ¡°I think so too. However¡­ Lucian keeps avoiding me. I fear he would not want to meet me during the birthday banquet¡­¡± Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. She made herself sound aggrieved. Sonya had not thought about this. Hearing Aubree, she considered for a few seconds before replying, ¡°That won¡¯t happen. You only have to get ready. I will tell Lucian to pick you up for the birthday banquet and attend it with you.¡± Aubree was delighted to hear this, but she pretended to sound nervous, ¡°Sure, I will get ready.¡± After that, Sonya reminded Aubree about a few other matters before hanging up. Aubree could not conceal her glee. She did not expect such an easy solution to her worries. I want to see Roxanne¡¯s face when I show up at the birthday banquet with Lucian! Chapter 155 Chapter 155 Chapter 155 On Purpose Prior to the birthday banquet, Roxanne had given thest round of treatment to Alfred. Although he couldn¡¯t stay on his feet for too long, he was in better spirits, and he could even get out of bed and move around. Roxanne had also given him medications and told him to take them on time. After that, the treatment wasplete. On the day of the birthday banquet, Roxanne went home to dress up after she finished her work at the research institute. After putting on a dress and tying up her hair, she put on simple yet elegant makeup before going to the banquet. When she arrived at the Queen residence, the banquet was just about to start. There were plenty of luxury cars parked outside, and the residence was packed with guests, all of whom were prominent figures in Horington. Since Roxanne had stayed in Horington before that, she knew most of the people there. However, very few of them knew who she was. Yet, she was the center of attention when she showed up at the venue. When the crowd saw her, they were all in awe.With her long hair tied up behind, she was unting her fair and slender neck. Besides, the crowd could clearly see her exquisite facial features, although she was just wearing a thinyer of makeup. When she smiled, her eyes were shining as bright as the stars in the sky. At the same time, her long and slender legs also charmed the crowd. Instantly, everyone was making guesses about which family was she from. Roxanne nced around and pretended like she didn¡¯t notice the attention was on her. Since no one hase forward to greet me, it would be rude of me to engage someone in small talk on my own. After mulling over it for a while, she decided to just go to a corner and chill on her own. However, Jonathan called out to her when she had only taken a couple of steps, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, you look amazing today.¡± Indeed, whenever she was giving treatment to Alfred, she would always dress in a shirt and a pair of long pants. Besides, she never put on any makeup. Although one could still see her beautiful facial features, she had never looked as stunning as that day. Upon hearing that, Roxanne halted in her tracks and nodded politely to express her gratitude. ¡°Since you¡¯re already here, don¡¯t hide! My grandpa is waiting for you!¡± Jonathan could tell she was trying to shy away from the crowd, so he invited her to see Alfred. Since the invitation was to see Alfred, Roxanne had no choice but to ept it. While enduring the Content held by N?velDrama.Org. weird stares from the crowd, she approached Alfred and greeted him. Alfred greeted her with an affectionate smile and exchanged pleasantries with her. The crowd was intrigued when they saw the warm interaction between Roxanne and the Queen family. Meanwhile, Lucian had just left the office, and he was about to attend the banquet at the Queen residence. Suddenly, he received a call from Sonya. Sonya asked, ¡°Have you finished work? Could youe and fetch me? I¡¯m getting my look done at Neon Boutique.¡± Lucian agreed after checking the time. Neon Boutique was a business owned by the Lane family, a family that was close to the Farwell family. They specialized in making evening gowns and suits. It was a business that was passed down through generations. Although their products were pricey, they were very popr among the high society in Horington. Everyone in the Lane family was involved in the fashion designing industry. Besides, they were all pioneers in their respective fields, even the younger generations. Before every event, the Farwell family would always get their outfits done at Neon Boutique. Hence, Lucian was unfazed when Sonya told him she was at Neon Boutique. When Lucian arrived, the person in charge of Neon Boutique immediately went out to greet him. By then, Sonya was ready. However, she remained seated when she saw Lucian walking in. ¡°Have a seat.¡± Lucian was confused. ¡°Are you not done? It¡¯s gettingte.¡± In response, Sonya raised her chin toward a fitting room. ¡°Wait for Aubree.¡± Upon hearing that, Lucian immediately frowned. She¡¯s doing this on purpose, isn¡¯t she? Chapter 156 Chapter 156 Chapter 156 Asserting Dominance Over Roxanne Aubree only came out of the fitting room after quite a while. ¡°Not bad. This is the one.¡± Sonya nodded in satisfaction when she saw her outfit. After shing a smile, Aubree turned around to look at Lucian. ¡°You¡¯re here, Lucian!¡± Lucian merely nodded expressionlessly. Aubree pretended like she didn¡¯t mind his aloofness. With a smile, she said, ¡°Mrs. Farwell invited me along to get my outfit done. What do you think of my outfit? Isn¡¯t it nice?¡± With that, she twirled to show her outfit. Lucian wasn¡¯t pleased with the fact that Sonya had set him up. When he heard that, he responded with a cursory nod and answered, ¡°Yes.¡±Aubree was slightly embarrassed when she saw how cold Lucian¡¯s attitude was. However, she maintained a smile on her face. Sonya finally stood up and said, ¡°Since Aubree is also going to the Queen residence, she should just ride with us.¡± Aubree smiled. ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Farwell!¡± After thanking Sonya, Aubree nced at Lucian sheepishly. Lucian furrowed his brows and uttered, ¡°Let¡¯s go.¡± Since Sonya had already said so, he couldn¡¯t have said no even if he wanted to. With that, he turned around and left without sparing Aubree a nce. Seeing that, Aubree lowered her gaze aggrievedly. Sonyaforted her by patting her arm, signaling her to not mind him. N?velDrama.Org ? content. Aubree nodded obediently and wrapped her arm around Sonya¡¯s arm affectionately before walking out with her. In the car, Lucian kept silent throughout the entire journey and didn¡¯t bother to conceal his cold attitude. In fact, he would only respond whenever Sonya asked him something. Aubree could only clench her fists under her dress to vent her frustration. I must assert my dominance over Roxaer. In the Queen residence, Alfred could only stay on his feet to exchange pleasantries with the guests for a while before his body gave in. Jonathan then brought him a wheelchair so that he could continue meeting the other guests. Roxanne thought she could excuse herself after greeting Alfred. Alfred, however, had a different idea. He told her to stay by his side. ¡°Since you¡¯re also going to interact with the guests, let me make it easier by introducing you to them.¡± Jonathan wanted her to stick around as well. Roxanne had no choice but to stay by Alfred¡¯s side. She then followed him around to greet all the guests one by one. Soon, Jonathan¡¯s parents showed up. ¡°Are you Dr. Jarvis? Finally, we¡¯ve met! Jonathan and Frieda had told me about how you¡¯ve cured Old Mr. Queen. Not only do you have superb medical skills, but you¡¯re stunningly beautiful as well, Dr. Jarvis,¡± praised Henrietta Chance, Jonathan¡¯s mother, with a smile. Roxanne smiled and thanked her politely. Jonathan¡¯s father, Zachary Queen, also thanked Roxanne. ¡°All these years, we¡¯ve looked for countless doctors to treat my father¡¯s illness. Unlike you, none of them could treat him. Thank you. From now on, don¡¯t hesitate to ask the Queen family for help whenever you need us.¡± Hearing that, Roxanne wanted to deny the gesture courteously, but Alfred chimed in, ¡°Of course! Dr. Jarvis would still need to keep my health in check in the future.¡± Roxanne fell silent and smiled with her pursed lips. Frieda wasn¡¯t happy when she heard how her parents wereplimenting Roxanne. She then scanned the surroundings to look for Lucian and Aubree. When she realized neither of them was there yet, she nced at the entrance in anticipation. Let¡¯s see if that woman could still smile when she sees Lucian showing up alongside Aubree! Frieda didn¡¯t need to wait long, though. A few minutester, Lucian showed up at the entrance of the mansion. ¡°Lucian is here!¡± Frieda eximed to get everyone¡¯s attention. Chapter 157 Chapter 157 Chapter 157 As soon as those words fell, everyone in the Qucen residence turned toward the mansion¡¯s entrance. Roxanne also did the same instinctively.Lucian was dressed in a tailored ck suit. The suit was so well-lined that it was showcasing the man¡¯s toned figure. With most of his hair stray strands of hair hanging down from his forehead prompted his gaze to appear even more icy-cold than they were. All in all, he looked cold and distant.Everyone¡¯s gazes fell on him at once.Aubree appeared behind him wearing a ck dress. Her curly hair was hanging down on her chesi, and her red lips were exceptionally eye-catching. Al that moment, her arm was seen wrapping around Sonya¡¯s affectionately as they followed Lucian from bchind. With their matching outfits and the affectionate interaction between Aubree and Sonya, it was as if they were telling the world that Aubree was bound to be the future daughter-inw of the Farwell family.Upon seeing that scene, Frieda nced at Roxanne from the corners of her eyes. Sull, she was dissatisfied when she saw Roxanne¡¯s unperturbed facial expression. Right then, she deliberately held her mother¡¯s hand and eximed, ¡°Wow! Lucian and Aubree look so great together!¡±Henrietta didn¡¯t know what they were up to, but she was aware of the close rtionship between the Pearson family and the Farwell family. Besides, Aubree was always seen together with Lucian. She nodded in agreement and ultered, ¡°It seems like they might get married soon.¡±Roxanne¡¯s expression changed slightly when she heard that. However, she quicklyposed herself and lifted her head once again.Jonathan was standing next to Roxanne when he remembered the conflict between her anded at her. He was surprised when he saw how calm she looked.Lucian wasn¡¯t happy with the attention he had gotten from the crowd. His gaze turned cold, and he walked straight toward the center of the birthday banquet. He wanted to just greet Alfred before with the Farwell family. Hence, they went up to wee the guests with a smile. ¡°Hi! Wee. This Content held by N?velDrama.Org. is¡­¡±As they spoke, both of them nced at Sonya.Sonya merely smiled in response.Next to her, Aubree seemed slightly shy when she greeted the elders politely. After that, she just listened as they chatted.As they were chatting, they were walking toward Alfred.Roxanne panicked when she saw them approaching. She averted her gaze and wanted to just bidAlfred goodbye before leaving.Just when she wanted to do that, some guests came up to her and greeted her. Roxanne had no choice but to exchange greetings with them. I¡¯ve missed the perfect opportunity to get out of here.Secondster, Lucian and the others had arrived in front of her.Roxanne kept her head hung low to make herself look as inconspicuous as possible.First, she heard the man greet Alfred in a deep voice before hearing the and raised her gaze to look at the man. When Alfred mentioned her to them, she politely nodded at them.The whole time, Lucian couldn¡¯t take his eyes off of her.When Henrietta and Zachary went up to greet him earlier on, Lucian had already noticed Roxanne¡¯s presence.When he saw her standing next to Alfred, she looked elegant but slightly disinterested. With the long white dress on, she looked as graceful as a swan. Although she didn¡¯t put in much effort to dress up, she was still rather captivating.On the other hand, she had been avoiding eye contact with him from the moment he showed up.The more she avoided him, the more Lucian wanted to take a closer look at her facial expression.Sonya noticed her son was distracted, so she followed his line of sight. Her expression turned grim when her gazended on Roxanne. Chapter 158 Chapter 158 Chapter 158 Roxanne kept silent after she greeted them. Since Alfred didn¡¯t give her a chance to leave, she had no choice but to stay and listen to their conversation.Sonya retracted her gaze from Roxanne and looked at Alfred carnestly. ¡°What a blessing it is for the Queen family now that you¡¯re fine!¡±Alfred smiled and nodded before turning toward Roxanne. ¡°It¡¯s all thanks to Dr. Jarvis. Without her, I would still be bedridden!¡±As soon as those words fell, everyone turned to look at Roxanne. Soon aHenrietta chimed in, ¡°Indeed, Dr. Jarvis is the Queen family¡¯s savior.¡±With those few words, she had directed Sonya and the others¡¯ attention toward Roxanne.Roxanne furrowed her brows slightly and smiled. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t call myself a savior, though. As a doctor, I was just doing my job. I¡¯m very d to N?velDrama.Org ? content. have cured Old Mr. Queen.¡±Alfred¡¯s admiration toward her grew when he saw how humble she was.Sonya¡¯s face fell when she noticed Alfred¡¯s attitude toward Roxanne. However, she maintained her smile and said sarcastically, ¡°Not too shabby for a young doctor like her. We¡¯ve looked for so many renowned doctors, and none of them seeded. How surprising.¡±Although it seemed like Sonya was praising her, Roxanne could sense the hostility in those words.Roxanne¡¯s heart sank, and she ignored Sonya.Aubree wasn¡¯t pleased with how everyone was putting the spotlight on Roxanne. As soon as silence ensued, she let go of Sonya¡¯s arm and went up to Alfred. In a coquettish tone, she said, ¡°Old. Mr. Queen, you¡¯re going to live a long and stress-free life now that you¡¯ve survived the illness!¡±Alfred shifted his attention toward her and smiled when he heard that. ¡°Why do you say so?¡± ¡°Well, that¡¯s what people say! I know you¡¯re going to live a long life with great prosperity, Old Mr. Queen!¡± Aubree smiled. Alfred was ted when he heard those sweet words. ¡°Thank you! Let¡¯s hope you¡¯re right!¡±aswasWith that, he shifted his gaze back toward Roxanne. It was as if he was trying to say that Roxanne deserved all the credits.Aubree noticed it, so she purposely pouted and med herself when she said, ¡°It¡¯s such a shame I couldn¡¯t find a doctor as impressive as Dr. Jarvis. Otherwise, you wouldn¡¯t have to suffer for such a long time, Old Mr. Queen!¡±Alfred hurriedly waved his hands in dismissal, and he uttered delightfully, ¡°Why would you say that? Although I¡¯ve been bedridden all these years, I¡¯m well aware of what was happening around me. All these years, you¡¯ve gone through hoops to find me so many talented doctors, haven¡¯t you?I¡¯ll forever remember your kind gestures!¡±With her reddened eyes, Aubree answered, ¡°Yet, all the doctors I¡¯ve found were useless..¡±Alfred was moved when he saw how caring she was. With a smile on his face, he said, ¡°I know you¡¯re a good person. You deserve the credit for finding me those doctors for the past years. Otherwise, I would¡¯ve suffered more.¡±Henrietta quicklyforted her as well. ¡°You¡¯ve been very thoughtful, Aubree. In fact, you¡¯ve even been treating Old Mr. Queen like your own grandpa! We¡¯re very grateful.¡±After saying that, she remembered how Lucian had also contributed to curing Alfred over the years. ¡°Lucian, you too. Thank you,¡± she added.In response, Lucian slightly nodded. ¡°We were just doing our duties as the younger generation.¡±Hearing that, Henrietta immediately nced at their outfits and couldn¡¯t help but say, ¡°Good thingse in pairs, right? Since you¡¯ve already been together with Aubree for so many years, I guess we¡¯ll meet each other again at your engagement party!¡± Chapter 159 Chapter 159 Jonathan nced at Roxanne again when he heard Henrietta mentioning Lucian and Aubree¡¯s marriage. At that moment, Roxanne¡¯s eyes were slightly lowered while wearing a faint smile. Hence, he had no idea what was going through Roxanne¡¯s mind. was Throughout the whole time, Frieda¡¯s attention was entirely on Roxanne. Needless to say, she noticed the slight change of expression on Roxanne¡¯s face when Henrietta mentioned the marriage. Frieda¡¯s excitement grew when she noticed that. ¡°Indeed! Lucian and Aubree are like a match made in heaven. Although they aren¡¯t married yet, I bet everyone has long regarded you guys as a family,¡± she chimed in. With that, she threw a hubristic nce at Roxanne.Since Sonya had been nning for it as well, she smiled and said, ¡°We¡¯ve undoubtedly been dying it for way too long. Recently, both sides of the family have been nning to hasten their engagement. We¡¯ll surely be having a discussion soon.¡± Frieda wanted to fan the mes, but Lucian suddenly said, ¡°Old Mr. Queen, since it¡¯s your birthday banquet, perhaps we shouldn¡¯t talk about my affairs.¡± Upon hearing that, Alfred was stunned momentarily before ncing at Lucian and Aubree. These two must be embarrassed. He then nodded with a smile and changed the topic. After that, the others dared not to mention the matter anymore. Right then, Roxanne¡¯s anxiousness lessened, and she breathed a sigh of relief inwardly. However, she was starting to feel out of ce when the topics that followed had nothing to do with her. She was getting annoyed after listening to their conversation for a while more. Hence, she wanted to find a ce to hide and rx. In between the conversation, Roxanne uttered softly, ¡°Old Mr. Queen, I¡¯m drained. If there¡¯s nothing else, I would like to get some rest.¡± Upon hearing that, Alfred turned toward her worriedly. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Are you feeling unwell?¡± Roxanne smiled shyly and answered, ¡°Oh, no. It¡¯s just that I¡¯ve been standing in my pair of heels for a while now. I would like to sit down for a bit.¡± Since she wasn¡¯t feeling unwell, Alfred allowed her to leave by nodding at her. Roxanne politely excused herself from the crowd and turned around to walk toward the corner. When she was turning away, she could still feel the man¡¯s gaze fixated on her. Subconsciously, she picked up the pace. ¡°Old Mr. Queen, please excuse me.¡± Lucian¡¯s gaze darkened when he saw how many pairs of eyes lingered on Roxanne when she was walking toward a couch to take a seat. Alfred was puzzled. ¡°Where are you going?¡± Considering the Farwell family¡¯s status in society, it was safe to assume that the prominent figures at Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. the birthday banquet would approach Lucian to greet him, instead of the other way around. Hence, Lucian was supposed to wait for the others to take the initiative and greet him. However, Lucian frowned and struggled to find an excuse for himself. Sonya read his mind and knew he was eager to look for Roxanne. Displeased, she grabbed his arm and smiled at him. ¡°There are a few elders over there who are coborating with our family. Logically speaking, since you¡¯re here, you should go and greet them.¡± Lucian followed her line of sight and saw a few elders who were indeed the Farwell family¡¯s acquaintances. After some hesitation, he agreed to her request. Sonya then shot Aubree a nce. Seeing that, Aubree uttered, ¡°Since I know those elders as well, I was just thinking about greeting them!¡± With that, she followed Lucian from behind with a smile. Lucian furrowed his brows. Without a reason to chase her away, he had no choice but to let her follow him. In the eyes of the public, they looked a lot like a perfect couple. Chapter 160 Chapter 160 Frieda nced at the supposedly perfect couple before looking at Roxanne, who was sitting in a corner. Satisfied, she found an excuse to get away from the other elders. ¡°Hey! Why are you sitting here all by yourself, Dr. Jarvis?¡± Roxanne finally managed to find a quiet corner to regain herposure. However, just as her mind was in aplete mess, she heard the sarcastic question. When she raised her gaze, she saw Frieda standing in front of her haughtily. Roxanne knitted her brows and got annoyed when she saw her. Frieda couldn¡¯t stop talking about how Lucian and Aubree were meant for each other in front of the elders just now. Obviously, she wanted me to hear all about it. Never had Roxanne thought that Frieda would look for her, even after she had left the crowd.Frieda didn¡¯t notice how annoyed she was. Instead, she stared at Roxanne mockingly and gestured for her to nce at Lucian and Aubree, who were in the crowd. ¡°Do you see that? Lucian and Aubree are meant to be together, and that¡¯s what everyone thinks. Who do you think you are? Are you jealous now? Know your ce, okay? You¡¯re not worthy of Lucian. Unlike you, Aubree is!¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but chuckle coldly when she heard that. xanne Frieda frowned and asked, ¡°What¡¯s so funny?¡± Roxanne shrugged nonchntly in response. ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I just find it weird to see such a dedicated minion!¡± Minion? Frieda was stumped. When she came back to her senses, her expression grew vicious. While pointing at Roxanne, she gritted her teeth and asked, ¡°Who are you calling a minion?¡± Roxanne stood up and answered calmly, ¡°Who else was I talking to, if not you? Please stop bragging in front of me, Ms. Queen. No matter who Lucian is with or meant to be with, it¡¯s none of my business. Besides, I don¡¯t give a hoot about it. You¡¯ve mentioned them to me so many times, but have you ever seen me flinch once?¡¯ Content held by N?velDrama.Org. Perhaps it was because Roxanne had stood up, but Frieda could sense that the person before her eyes had be more domineering. Flustered, Frieda opened her mouth, but not a single word came out. Roxanne smirked and walked up to her. ¡°Hence, stop appearing in front of me and talk about things that don¡¯t concern me. Do you have any idea how much of an annoyance you are?¡± With that, Roxanne walked past her without sparing her another nce. It took a long while for Frieda to regain herposure. When she did, she was so angry at what Roxanne said to her. She wanted to throw a tantrum, but Roxanne was already out of her sight. Roxanne fled pretty quickly because she didn¡¯t want to hear any more of Frieda¡¯s nonsense. In fact, she didn¡¯t even know how she would react if she were to hear them again. Since Frieda found her at the spot furthest away from the crowd, Roxanne had no choice but to find a new quiet spot to have a seat. This time around, she was a lot nearer to the crowd at the banquet Coincidentally, that spot was just opposite where Lucian was at. Lucian noticed her presence the moment she appeared in his line of sight. After that, his attention was on her again. When Roxanne was just about to enjoy the silence, a figure suddenly appeared in front of her. ¡°Hi, there. Nice to meet you. May I know which prominent family you¡¯re from?¡± A rich gentleman approached her politely. Roxanne froze momentarily before putting on a faint smile and answered, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, but I¡¯m just a doctor. I¡¯m not from a prominent family.¡± The rich gentleman also froze for a second after hearing that. After that, he quickly smiled and uttered, ¡°Judging from your demeanor, I thought you¡¯re from a prominent family. Would I be lucky enough to be your acquaintance? We could be friends.¡± Chapter 161 Chapter 161 Chapter 161 Roxanne smiled apologetically. ¡°I¡¯m sorry, but I¡¯m not in the mood for that recently.¡±Although she rejected him pleasantly, the rich gentleman was slightly disappointed. However, he turned around and left without forcing his way through.Finally, she had once again gotten the peace and quiet she longed for.Just as she was about to gather her emotions, she suddenly heard a familiar voice calling out to her. ¡°Roxanne? Is that you?¡±Hearing that, Roxanne raised her gaze in the direction of the voice. She then saw a charming man in a grey tuxedo staring at her in bewilderment.As soon as their eyes met, Roxanne¡¯s eyes lit up. In a surprised tone, she uttered, ¡°Larry? What a coincidence!¡±Larry Morrison was a senior she met abroad. Internationally speaking, he was one of the elites of the younger generation.Back then, Larry had helped Roxanne a lot when she had just gone abroad. Therefore, they shared a pretty good rtionship.When she returned to the country, she was too busy with matters concerning the research institute, so she never had a chance to reach out to him.Upon seeing that he had not mistaken someone else for her, Larry put on a bright smile and went up to Roxanne. ¡°It¡¯s been a long time.¡±Roxanne smiled and nodded. ¡°Indeed. When did youe back to the country? Why didn¡¯t you contact me?¡±Larry sized her up and said, ¡°I¡¯ve been back for a fortnight now. I did think of reaching out to you, but I was afraid that I might disturb you. After not seeing you for so long, you seem to have lost weight. Have you been busy with work in Chanaea?¡±Roxanne simply smiled and answered, ¡°You can say so.¡±Although she was busy with the research institute, her workload was nothingpared to when she was abroad. I¡¯m sure I¡¯ve lost weight because of those three little ones at home. Sull, I shouldn¡¯t reveal my personal matters to Larry.Larry looked at her worriedly and said, ¡°I know you¡¯re a workaholic, but you ought to look after yourself. Don¡¯t tire yourself out.¡± Roxanne merely nodded in response.¡°By the way, why are you here? Are you already working with Queen Group despite only returning to the country recently?¡± Larry asked with a smile.Roxanne was stunned for a moment upon hearing that. When she remembered who those guests at the banquet were, she smiled and shook her head. ¡°I¡¯ve only returned to the country recently, so how could I¡¯ve done that? I was invited because I just happened to have cured Old Mr. Queen¡¯s illness. However, I guess it¡¯s also right to say that I¡¯m working with the Queen family. They¡¯re our research institute¡¯s medicine supplier.¡±Larry was astonished. ¡°I¡¯ve heard about how bad Old Mr. Queen¡¯s condition was, and a lot of renowned doctors had failed to cure him. When I heard he was cured, I wondered who the amazing doctor was! Who would¡¯ve thought it was you?¡±Roxanne pressed her lips into a smile. ¡°I was just lucky. It just happens to fall into my area of specialty.¡±Larry arched a brow and said, ¡°Stop being so humble, will you? I don¡¯t know about the others, but I know your capabilities like the back of my hand. However, knowing that you¡¯re the one who cured Old Mr. Queen, I¡¯m still very impressed.¡±¡°You tter me too much, Larry.¡± Roxanneughed.,The two of them chatted happily about Alfred¡¯s illness and Content held by N?velDrama.Org. each other¡¯s medical fields.Nearby, Lucian saw a man approach Roxanne and left just moments earlier. His gaze darkened when he saw her talking happily with another man. He was so displeased that everyone nearby could feel the icy aura he was exuding.Naturally, Jonathan noticed what was going on, and he could tell why Lucian was displeased. ¡°Lucian, would you like to go over there and see what¡¯s going on?¡± he asked. Chapter 162 Chapter 162 Chapter 162After seeing them interacting with each other a few times, Jonathan seemed to have figured something out.At the very least, he had noticed that Lucian¡®s attitude toward Roxanne was far from what he expectedWhen he found out about their rtionship prior to that, Jonathan thought Lucian would ignore Roxanne. However, it was theplete opposite.In fact, he could tell that Lucian was helping her out in every way he could. Aubree, on the other hand, was utterly disregarded.Upon seeing their interactions, Jonathan could tell that Lucian cared about Roxanne more. Hence, that was why he had suggested so after seeing the scene before his eyes and Lucian¡¯s sudden displeasure.Lucian frowned and ignored Jonathan¡®s question while wearing a grim expression.Jonathan knew Lucian very well, so he pretended to sound troubled when he voiced, ¡°Since I¡®ve invited Dr. Jarvis personally, I don¡®t think it¡®s nice of me to leave her unattended. I¡®m going to have a chat with her. Would you like toe along?¡±Lucian only responded in agreement after a few seconds.The two of them excused themselves from the crowd and left.Meanwhile, Roxanne was still having a nice conversation with Larry. Suddenly, she saw those two approaching from behind Larry. Her smile faded a little, and she frowned.¡°Mr. Morrison, when did you return to the country? Why didn¡®t you let me know you¡®re back?¡± Jonathan patted Larry¡®s shoulder casually.Larry turned around to sh a smile. After exchanging some pleasantries with Larry, Jonathan took a quick nce at Lucian before asking Larry nonchntly, ¡°Do you know Dr. Jarvis?¡±Larry nodded and smiled. ¡°Yes. I know her well, actually.¡±Jonathan¡¯s heart skipped a beat when he heard that. When he instinctively nced at Lucian, he saw Lucian¡¯s expression had turned cold.As a matter of fact, the atmosphere turned cold instantly.Jonathan went silent as well.All of a sudden, an awkward moment ensued.¡°Jonathan, who¡¯s this gentleman?¡± Lucian¡¯s indifferent voice broke the silence.Jonathan shuddered before pushing Larry toward Lucian while retreating to the side himself.¡°Oh! I¡®ve forgotten to introduce you guys to each other. This is Larry Morrison from the Morrison family. Mr. Morrison is a medical practitioner, and he¡®s abroad most of the time.¡± With that, he introduced Lucian to Larry, ¡°This is Lucian Farwell. Mr. Farwell is the CEO of Farwell Group. You¡®ve heard of him, right?¡±As soon as those words fell, Lucian reached out his hand expressionlessly. ¡°Oh, it¡®s you, Mr. Morrison. Nice to meet you.¡±Although it was a very gentleman¨Clike gesture, Larry felt as though Lucian had considered him an enemy. After a moment of hesitation, Larry reached to shake Lucian¡®s hand. ¡°I¡®ve heard about you ages ago, Mr. Farwell! Roxanne and you are¡ª¡±As he was speaking, Larry subconsciously nced at Roxanne. When he was about toplete his sentence, Roxanne interrupted, ¡°Larry, I don¡®t know Mr. Farwell that well. You don¡®t have to talk about me to him.¡±Roxanne looked at Lucian with a distant look in her eyes as she Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. nodded at him indifferently, as a sign of greetingUpon seeing that, Larry stopped talking immediately. After ncing at Roxanne and Lucian, he changed the topic and said, ¡°I¡®m sorry. I shouldn¡®t have done that. Yet, you¡®re a famous young man, Mr. Farwell. I¡®m honored to meet you.¡±Lucian took notice of the interaction between those two.When Lucian noticed the chemistry between them, he frowned in displeasure. He had also only responded to Larry with an expressionless nod. Although he didn¡®t finish his sentence just now, I know what he was going to say. Although I¡®ve never met him, he knows about my rtionship with Roxanne. He was about to talk about what happened six years ago. Why would Roxanne tell him about that? What exactly is their rtionship like?With those thoughts running through his mind, Lucian¡®s infuriation was for everyone to see. Chapter 163 Chapter 163 Chapter 163In an instant, the atmosphere between the four stillenied as the eyes of the entire crowd fell on her.Roxanne frowned with difort. She did not want to interact with Lucian more than was necessary. Instead, she turned to Jonathan. ¡°What brings you here, Mr. Queen?¡± Jonathan chuckled after a startled pause. ¡°Il docsn¡®t seem very polite to have invited you and then not pay attention to you, so I thought I¡®de and have a chat.¡±In the ensuing silence of his promation, he shot Lucian a meaningful look. Thetter appeared indifferent. It was evident that he had no intention of rifying the matter.Jonathan had no choice but to take the me.Roxanne smiled faintly. ¡°I don¡®t mind. In fact, I happened to have run into Larry here. As we rarely see each other, we have our own catching up to do. Though I appreciate your kindness, there¡®s no need for you to entertain me.¡±Jonathan choked at her subtle dismissal. He was trying to find another excuse to stay for a chat when the sound of a pair of approaching heels drew his attention to it.¡°There you are, Lucian.¡± Aubree¡®s Content held by N?velDrama.Org. voice rang out. ¡°Your mother has been looking for you. You should go see what she wants.¡±Jonathan had no choice but to hold back the excuse he had conceived.Lucian frowned but did not leave immediately. The woman behind him had already arrived by his side, staring daggers at Roxanne as she approached.Roxanne felt nauseated at the sight of the couple standing together. ¡°It appears that you have something to do. Don¡®t let me bother you.¡±With that, she whispered something to Larry, and the pair of them turned to leave.Standing beside Lucian, Aubree constantly reminded him that Sonya wanted him, preventing him from dissuading Roxanne from leaving.¡°Mrs. Farwell seems to be in a hurry. I¡®d bettere with you.¡± Aubree felt her heart turning cold upon noticing his gaze lingering on the woman in the distance. In a panic, her reminders increased both in urgency and in pitch. Already irritable, Lucian turned to give her such a cold re that Aubree¡®s voice sputtered to a halt.The next second, the man stalked past her indifferently without even designing to give her another nce.Aubree was stunned for a few seconds before she regained herposure and marched quickly in his wake with gritted teeth.Meanwhile, Roxanne and Larry found a quiet corner to sit at.Larry could not stop himself from asking, ¡°What¡®s going on between you and Mr. Farwell, Roxanne?¡±Roxanne smiled. ¡°There¡®s nothing going on. We met by chance.¡±WOHowever, Larry¡®s gaze appeared doubtful. ¡°Really? I thought you two were nning to get back together.¡±The hostility emanating from Lucian earlier was fresh in his mind.Roxanne did not expect him to have such a misleading sense of intuition. ¡°How could that be?¡± she eximed sarcastically. ¡°Weren¡®t you paying attention? His fianc¨¦e was next to him.¡±Larry was about to ask another question, but Roxanne made her refusal to discuss the subject in by changing it bluntly. ¡°Let¡®s talk about something else. Where were we?¡±She was referring to their topic of conversation before Jonathan¡®s arrival.Obliging her wishes, Larry did not ask any further. He resumed their conversation about medicine from where they left off.As both were leaders in the field, they soon left private matters behind and were engaged in an exciting discourse.Roxanne was initially resigned to a dreary evening spent at the birthday banquet, but Larry¡®s appearance made her attendance worthwhile after all.However, she was beginning to grow anxious when the banquet did not show any signs of ending despite it being already ten at night.The three children at home, especially Essie, were waiting up for her. The little girl had only been able to fall asleep for the past few nights under coaxing. She might have difficulty falling asleep if Roxanne was not there with her.Al that rming thought, Roxanne hurriedly ended the conversation with Larry before rising to say goodbye to Alfred. Chapter 164 Chapter 164 Chapter 164Jonathan¡¯s parents and Sonya were with Alfred. After Lucian learned that he had been summoned for no apparent reason, he was just about to leave when Roxanne and Larry appeared in single file.¡°If there¡¯s nothing else, Mr. Queen, I¡¯d like to return as the children are waiting for me.¡± Roxanne politely bid him farewell.Henrietta was a little surprised. ¡°Leaving so soon? It¡¯s only halfway through the dinner party. Stay a little longer!¡±Roxanne smiled apologetically, ¡°Maybe another time. I¡¯m worried about the children at home.¡± Everyone present knew that she had two children. Thus, they decided to oblige her insistence.Alfred beckoned Jonathan over. ¡°I¡¯m worried about Dr. Jarvis returning home alone this time of night. Give her a ride.¡±The next moment, Jonathan turned to examine Lucian¡¯s expression.Taking hisck of displeasure as a sign of consent, Jonathan was about to obey his grandfather when Larry¡¯s voice rang out. ¡°Don¡¯t bother yourself. I have to get home early to attend an online seminar that¡¯s starting soon. I can drop Roxanne off on my way home.¡±Jonathan felt a tangible drop in the air pressure around him when Larry spoke. Clearing his throat, he was about to reim his errand when another cold voice cut across him.¡°I don¡¯t mind sending Ms. Jarvis home on your behalf, Mr. Morrison, seeing as you are so busy with work.¡± As if addressing the crowd was not enough, Lucian then slowed down his speech to ensure that every word of his was caught. ¡°Just as well, too. I can drop by Ms. Jarvis¡¯ to see my daughter.¡±Everybody present was stunned in an instant, with Sonya and Aubree appearing crestfallen.They had made arrangements for Lucian to attend the banquet with Aubree in an endeavor to spend romantic time together.Moreover, their public appearance would imply that their wedding was imminent to the guests present.Lucian¡¯s deration of sending Roxanne home, and the mention of his daughter, felt like a p to their faces. Aubree turned pale. Clenching her fists to restrain herself, she was dangerously close to losing her temper.¡°Your daughter?¡± Larry was puzzled. What does Lucian¡¯s daughter have to do with Roxanne?Lucian was indifferent to the reaction he had caused. ¡°My daughter has been staying at Ms. Jarvis for the past two days. Is there a problem with me stopping by to see her?¡±He did not lower his voice, and his words reached the ears of the surrounding guests.A chorus of discussion and gossip erupted after a short silence.Aubree did not expect Lucian to be that tant. Her face turned ashen as she listened to the discussion around her. Clenching her jaw, she lowered her head to avoid the guests¡¯ curious eyes.The elders of the Queen family were also very surprised.They were aware of what Este meant to Lucian. Therefore, they were surprised to learn how Lucian and Roxanne were close to the extent of having Este entrusted in her care.It sounds as if Este has been living with Roxanne for a while.That was news to Jonathan, too. As shocked as he was, he felt he should have seen iting. Upon second thought, he decided to remain silent.In an instant, the atmosphere among the crowd became very strange.Equally shocked, Roxanne bit her lip in Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. secret anxiety as she tried to calm herself down.While the crowd was more surprised that Este was living with her, Roxanne was more concerned about the fact that Lucian had announced it so outrightly.What¡¯s going on here?Racking her brains for something to say, she intended to defuse the palpable tension in the air.Before she could, somebody grabbed her wrist.¡°Weren¡¯t you in a hurry? Let¡¯s get going!¡±Lucian¡¯s cold voice sounded in her ears before the grip on her wrist tightened.Roxanne regained her senses abruptly and was forced to abandon her notion. She only had time to utter a hasty goodbye to Alfred before being dragged away by Lucian. Chapter 165 Chapter 165 Grabbed by the wrist, Roxanne was almost forcibly pulled out of the banquet in in sight of the crowd.She tried to break free several times, but the man¡¯s grip was tight enough to dissuade such an attempt. It was not until they arrived outside that the grip on her wrist ckened. Roxanne pulled away with a grimace and took several steps back to distance herself from him. ¡°Thank you for your kindness, but I can drive home on my own. There¡¯s no need to bother you, Mr. Farwell, to see me personally home. Your mother and fianc¨¦e are still inside. You should get back in there and apany them.¡± At that, she started toward the manor¡¯s gate while avoiding him. Initially nning to slip out and return on her own, Roxanne did not expect the situation to escte to such a degree. She still could not believe that Lucian was capable of such a featRoxanne¡¯s mind was a mess. All she wanted was some quiet to herself. As soon as she strode past Lucian, he caught her wrist again in a grip even tighter than before. Roxanne stopped in her tracks. Suppressing the turmoil in her heart, she looked at the figure beside her with as much calm as she could muster. ¡°Is there anything else, Mr. Farwell?¡± Frowning, Lucian found only apathy in her eyes. A trace of displeasure crossed his heart at the thought of her smile when she was conversing with Larry. ¡°As I said, I want to see my daughter. Dropping you off happens to be en route for me. I want my daughter to sleep early, so please stop wasting time and get in the car.¡±¡°I drove here,¡± Roxanne insisted. ¡°And Catalina is watching them at home. You can go ahead, Mr. Farwell.¡± His stern face darkened further at her repeated rejections while his eyes filled with anger at her defiance. ¡°You had a couple of drinks earlier tonight, if I recall correctly. Are you nning to be charged with driving under the influence?¡± Roxanne frowned instead of answering immediately. Before she could respond, Lucian grabbed her wrist and took her to the side of the car. Roxanne could not break free nor refute his reason, He wants to see his daughter, so he¡¯s not going out of his way to send me home. I would look like a churlish, self-indulgent idiot if I refused him again. Besides, he is right. I did have two drinks at the banquet. Cayden was already holding the car door for them when the couple arrived, though Roxanne was still somewhat reluctant. ¡°Weren¡¯t you in a hurry to go home?¡± Lucian demanded. ¡°Or was that an excuse for not wanting to stay at the banquet?¡± Roxanne had no choice but to get in without further dy. Lucian followed closely behind and sat beside her. She silently moved to the window to distance herself from him, wearing an ufortable glower as she did¡¯so. The journey back was spent inplete silence as neither of them spoke a word. Cayden tried his best to diminish his presence by making his movements as noiseless as possible. The car was dead silent, Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened at the sight of the woman¡¯s profile through the reflection on the car window. She was wearing a smile when she spoke to the man at the dinner party earlier. In my presence, she¡¯s Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. wearing such an expression instead. The more he pondered the matter, the more it stung. Unable to bear the silence any longer, he cleared his throat. ¡°Who is that Mr. Morrison to you? He mentioned that you know each other well.¡± Roxanne froze for a moment at the sudden question before ncing at him coldly. ¡°I don¡¯t think it¡¯s any of your business.¡± She withdrew her gaze indifferently before turning to look out the window, with obvious intent not to speak again. The carpsed once more into silence. The chill emanating from Lucian was almost tangible. Cayden wished he was anywhere else but in that car. He even breathed carefully for fear of attracting the attention of his two passengers. Chapter 166 Chapter 166 At longst, the car arrived at the gate of Roxanne¡¯s house. Almost eagerly. Cayden stepped on the brakes before stumbling out of the car to open the door for the couple seated at the back. Only upon seeing their figures enter the vi did he finally breathe a long sigh of relief. For some reason, the atmosphere is never pleasant whenever Mr. Farwell spends time with Ms. Jarvis. ¡°Mommy! You¡¯re back!¡± As soon as Roxanne walked through the door, the three children greeted her with lovely smiles. It was the first time they saw Roxanne¡¯s outfit. ¡°You look so pretty tonight, Mommy,¡± Benny said sweetly. Roxanne¡¯s mood improved when she saw the three children, and she beamed at hispliment. ¡°Thank you, my dear.¡± Archie was about to add something when he saw another figure entering through the door.Though the corners of his mouth turned downward after he recognized the figure, he still politely greeted his guest, albeit somewhat distantly. ¡°Hello, Mr. Farwell.¡± The sound of his brother¡¯s voice drew Benny¡¯s attention to the person behind his mother. A look of anticipation shed in his eyes as he greeted the man obediently. Lucian nodded curtly to the two boys. Despite his ims ofing for Este, Lucian¡¯s gaze merely swept over the girl beforending on Roxanne again. Archie and Benny smelled the alcohol by that point and looked at their mother with concern. ¡°Have you been drinking, Mommy? Does your head hurt?¡± Roxanne smiled warmly. ¡°Not at all. I¡¯ve only had a little.¡± Despite her assurance, the two boys remained uneasy. Archie ran to the medical kit for the hangover pills while Benny thoughtfully poured a ss of water and ced it on the coffee table. Este quickly joined in and helped Roxanne to the couch, With the meticulous care provided by the three children, Roxanne forgot all about the negativity she had encountered earlier that evening. Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. As he watched his mother gulp down the hangover pills, Archie hesitated for a moment before turning to the man who was still standing at the door. ¡°Did you drink as well?¡± Lucian raised his brow slightly. ¡°A little.¡± Archie looked at the tablets in his hand and then at the man at the door. He walked over hesitantly. ¡°Would you like one?¡± Lucian¡¯s deep gaze warmed slightly as he leaned over to ept the boy¡¯s offer. ¡°Thank you.¡± Archie merely pursed his lips without responding. He then returned to Roxanne¡¯s side after putting the hangover pills back. Roxanne was busy fretting over the children, caressing the heads of each one in turn. ¡°What have you three been up to tonight?¡± Excited to answer the question, Benny grabbed Roxanne¡¯s arm to help her up. Thetter rose to her feet curiously and followed him to the carpet. In its center stood a fairytale castle nearly one meter tall, made of Lego. Benny ran over proudly. ¡°We finished building the castle!¡± Archie and Este shared in his excitement. Roxanne examined it for several minutes, her eyes full of surprise. When Este arrived under her care, it urred to Roxanne that the little girl may not enjoy her sons¡¯ toys. That was why she decided to get them something they could work on together. The Lego set was only purchased a week ago. Despite the project containing a total of over twenty thousand pieces of Lego bricks, the children finished it remarkably quickly. ¡°You kids are amazing!¡± Roxanne eximed, grinning, The children glowed at her praise. Este ran to the side of the model as fast as her short legs could carry her and pointed to a small room on the left side of the castle with a stubby finger. She then turned to look at Roxanne with bright eyes that were full of anticipation. Chapter 167 Chapter 167 Chapter 167Roxanne was a little confused by the little girl¡¯s actions.The boys had been intcracung with Este long enough that they knew what she meant by observing her expressions and gestures. On the other hand, it remained an elusive task for RoxanneEste was bing anxious at Roxanne¡¯s prolonged confusion. Once more, she pointed to the room and then to herself while pouting.Roxanne was more bewildered than ever. ¡°Essie means to tell you that she assembled that part, Mommy,¡± Archie exined.Comprehension dawned on Roxanne¡¯s face aust. Smiling so broadly that her eyes were crinkled, she gushed, ¡°That¡¯s a lot of bricks, Este! Great job!¡±Este¡¯s eyes sparkled at the her little face shone with simr excitement.The four of them got along well together. Lucian knew what it meant when he suddenly met the expectant look of his daughter, though he could not think of any words of praise of his own except to give her an approving nod. ¡°Well done, Essie.¡±Este smiled so broadly that her dimples deepened.Lucian¡¯s eyes darkened a little at his daughter¡¯s delight. He could feel a confused torrent of emotions welling up within him.It is obvious that Essie is happier with Roxanne. I¡¯ve never seen her smile this much.Despite spending all nightpleting a Lego pce, Benny was not satisfied. He grabbed his mother¡¯s hand coyly. ¡°This castle was too simple, Mommy. Could you get us something more difficult?¡±Roxanne nced at Este hesitantly. She was just about to suggest that the two boys amodate Este when Benny added, ¡°Essie is also very good at Lego. She¡¯s going to catch up to Archie and me!¡±Roxanne stared at Archie in disbelief, who nodded vigorously in allestation.Meanwhile, Este patted her chest confidently, her face full of N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. anticipation.Roxanne did not need any more convincing. ¡°All righi. I¡¯ll get you a new set tomorrow.¡± Exhration shone on the faces of the three children. Archie and Benny delved at once into detailed and long-winded specifics of the model they wanted.Standing by the door, Lucian watched the four of them enjoying themselves. He remained silent for a long time.It was close to midnight when he spoke again. After suggesting that the children be tucked in, Lucian bid them farewell.Roxanne was only too d about his departure; she only put up with his presence for Este¡¯s sake. After the door shut behind him, she took Este to the door to watch him leave.Lucian seethed throughout his journey home.Upon arriving, he furrowed his brows at the sight of a figure seated on his couch.¡°So you still remembered toe home, huh?¡± Sonya reprimanded in displeasure.Intending to take the opportunity to have Luciane to terms with his marriage with Aubree, Sonya was scandalized to witness her son offer Roxanne a ride home in in sight. Their intimacy also irritated her.Though Sonya could not conceal her displeasure after her son¡¯s abrupt departure, she managed to hold on until the banquet ended before rushing over immediately.Initially, she thought that Lucian would have been back at so them do at Roxanne¡¯s house for over an hour?Sonya¡¯s face contorted with rage at that thought.Lucian felt a simr dislike for his mother¡¯s behavior that night. ¡°What can I do for you thiste at night, Mom?¡± he asked coldly.Sonya¡¯s scowl deepened. ¡°Can¡¯t your mother drop by in her free time? Are you aware of how embarrassed Aubree was after you left? Outrageous behavior!¡±Aubree again.Lucian¡¯s coldness bordered on hosulity by that point. ¡°I¡¯ve told you before. Stay out of my business. I can handle them myself. If there is nothing else, you can see yourself out.¡±Without another word, he went upstairs. Chapter 168 Chapter 168 Chapter 168 Meanwhile, Aubrce had returned to the Pearson residence with her parents,The three retained a grim expression all along their way back.Upon stepping foot into the house, Aubrce kicked off the heels on her feet.Gina had wanted tofort lier, but before she could, thetter already strode upstairs with a sullen look on her face. What followed next was an ear-shattering door m.Looks like she¡¯s really mad.Upstairs, Aubree clenched her fists tightly after mming the door shut. She was trembling in rage as the voices of the crowd at the dinner party rang in her ears.You¡¯d think that her marriage with Mr. Farwell is finally happening given how arrogant she is, but who knew¡­Didn¡¯t the Pearson family rely on the Farwell family to get to where they are today? Just look at Mr. Farwell; I¡¯m sure the Pearsons will have a hard time in the future!s, it was all for nothing after waiting for that long. Hah! What a joke!Ever since Lucian took Roxanne with him and left in front of everybody, those guests started treating Aubree in a different way- from politeness at the beginning to mockery and disdain. They could not be bothered with her feelings and would even gossip about her while she was present at the scene.Within a few minutes, she had turned from the future Mrs. Farwell, whom everybody was envious of in Horington, to the crowd¡¯sughing stock!Displeasure built up within her at the thought of her initial motive of attending the dinner party.She had wanted to make Roxanne acknowledge her own status. Little did she expect that Lucian would actually embarrass her in front of so many people.I¡¯m sure after tonight, Horington¡¯s high society will definitely spread rumors about how Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. the engagement between Lucian and me has fallen through! My efforts have all be futile because of that woman!With that thought in mind, her expression turned downright vicious, and she swept across the table in rage, sending everything Ilying to the ground.It¡¯s all that b*tch¡¯s fault! If not for her, things wouldn¡¯t havee to where it is today! I won¡¯t let her off that easily! Downstairs, Gina and Samuel could clearly hear themotioning from Aubree¡¯s room.¡°It¡¯s too much!¡± Gina could not help but grumbie, ¡°What did Lucian mean by that? He left Aubreebehind while so many people were watching. How are the others going to think of us?¡±Samuel¡¯s face turned red with rage. ¡°He obviously doesn¡¯t give a d*mn about us!¡±While the couple was fuming and the racket in the room continued, Roxanne was clueless about the incident between the two families.As she had consumed some alcohol at the dinner party, coupled with her interaction with Lucian along the way back, she was feeling worn out and thus headed to bed early after ying with the kids for a short while.In the early morning, Este¡¯s motions jolted Roxanne awake. She groggily got up to carry her andy for a while longer before she felt much more awake.By the time she headed downstairs after helping Este wash up, Catalina had already finished preparing breakfast. Archie And Benny were already seated downstairs as well.At the sight of Roxanneing down while holding hands with Este, the two kids stared at her as they asked earnestly, ¡°Mommy, do you have a headache?¡±Along with Este, Roxanne sat beside the two boys and shook her head, smiling: ¡°Thanks to you boys for bringing me the pillsst night, my head doesn¡¯t hurt at all.¡±Archie and Benny heaved a sigh of relief when they heard those words.Following that, Roxanne had breakfast with the three children.Right then, the doorbell rang.Roxanne got up to open the door, and a frown crept up her face as the door. ¡°It¡¯s so early. Is anything the matter?¡±.A tall and slender Lucian stood in front of the door and tilted his body slightly to reveal a line of bodyguards behind him. Every one of them was carrying arge box. Chapter 169 Chapter 169 Seeing thosc bodyguards grasping onto the boxcs lightly without any expression, Roxanne was overwhemed with puzzleinent. ¡°This is¡­¡± Lucian responded, ¡°Lego. I heard the kids saying they wanted to y with it yesterday, so I got my assistant to buy some for them in the middle of the night. There are also some challenging puzzles inside. I tunk they will like it.¡± Roxanne was promptly at a loss. She then shifted her gaze back to those cold-looking, muscr bodyguards. Somehow, she thought the vibe they gave off did not match what they were holding in their hands. ¡°Let them send the boxes in first.¡± Lucian gestured for the bodyguards to head inside the house. Roxanne hesitated for a few seconds before she moved aside for those men to put the boxes down. Concurrently, when the three children in the dining area heard the noises, they immediately ran out. Archie and Benny¡¯s eyes lit up as they stood next to the boxes, staring at them intently. On the other hand, Este twirled around Lucian once before she went up to her brothers and followed what they were doing. Wonderstruck by what was before him, Benny pestered Roxanne to open the boxes for them. He had never expected that there would be Lego right in the house that morning when he had only asked for it the night before. Moreover, there were also limited edition puzzles that he had wanted but dared not ask Roxanne to buy as they were too expensive. And to his surprise, they were inside those boxes too! Even Archie could no longer contain his excitement. ¡°Are these for us?¡± Benny looked at the man at the door, his eyes gleaming with joy. Lucian nodded quietly in response. As soon as Benny received the man¡¯s atlirmation, he cheered in a sweet voice and smiled brightly. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell!¡± Archie, in contrast, was slightly more reserved. He curled theers of his lips upward as he thanked the man. ¡°I¡¯m happy to know that you guys love it,¡± Lucian said with a nod. Their interaction caused Roxanne¡¯s forehead to crease as worry began to surge inside her. Lucian thought she did not like him giving presents to the kids without informing her beforchand, so he casually mentioned, ¡°Estc loves these toys too. The three of you can y together.¡± In other words, he was implying that those gifts were for her daughter, and Archie and Benny were merely basking in her glory. Hearing him say that, Roxanne had no choice but to acquiesce to leaving those toys behind. Havingpleted his mission, Lucian did not stay for longer and hurried to the office. Roxanne briefly put away the boxes and headed for the research institute after leaving the kids in Pippa¡¯s care at the school. As soon as she entered the office, her phone rang. When Roxanne saw the caller ID on the screen, her eyes lit up, and she immediately answered the call with a smile. On the other end of the call, Harvey¡¯s casual voice sounded. ¡°Are you busy?¡± Roxanne shook her head. ¡°No. I just arrived at work. Is anything the matter? It¡¯s been a long time since you called me.¡± Since her return to the country, the two had barely contacted each other. Most of the time, Roxanne would be the one calling him to report to him on the progress at the research institute. And because Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. Harvey was usually busy with research, his replies were normally curt. This was the first time Harvey actually called her. ¡°Indeed, there¡¯s something I need your help with.¡± Harvey went straight to the point. ¡°There¡¯s a project that I need you to follow up with its research and development. I¡¯ll forward you the details in a while. Take a look at it.¡± Having learned that it was about work matters, Roxanne agreed readily. The two had a brief chat about that project before she concernedly tried to find out about Harvey¡¯s return. ¡°When are youing back? Let me pick you up.¡± Harvey looked at his schedule and replied, ¡°Probably not that soon. I¡¯ll let you know before I return. Roxanne acknowledged with a curt reply. Chapter 170 Chapter 170 Chapter 170 Sunce Alfred¡®s treatment hade to an end, all that was required next was to prescribe him medi cauon regrly and remind him to take the pills on ume.As such, there was no need for Roxanne to bic ad over to the Qucon residence now and then. And non that she had plenty of unc, she spent almost the whole day at the research insti tute, either handling misceneous work or heading to the rescarch facility and joining the other researc hers in the research.As Colby had been working as her assistant while she was overseas previously, h e continued helping her. Needless to say, the two had a great rapport.That particr day, the two walke d out of the research facility earlier than usual as they had finally achieved a breakthrough in their research. Colby suggested, ¡°Since we¡®ve been so busy for the past few days, why don¡®t we have a meal together Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. to celebrate?¡±Roxanne nced at the time and apologized, ¡°Let¡®s do it another day. I still have to pick my kidsup.¡±It did not seem proper for Colby to insist since Roxanne had given that reason. And so, the t wo left the research institute and went in separate ways.Upon getung into the car, Roxanne¡®s phone rang again. This time, it was a call from Larry.¡°What is it, Larry?¡±Lary¡®s gentle voice r ang out from the other end of the line. ¡°Do you have timeter? We haven¡®t had time to meet up after c oming back here. I wonder if I have the honor of having you join mefor a meal, Dr. Jarvis?¡±Just as Roxanne wanted to use the same excuse sh e had given Colby earlier, Larry interrupted, ¡°I¡®ve booked a restaurant and am only waiting for you toe over.¡±Hearing that, she swallowed her words back.It was true that she was in a rush to pick up the three children, but since Larry was so adamant about having a meal wi th her, she reckoned it would be inappropriate if she refused any further.Besides, Larry had offered her a lot of help when she was abroad. No matter what, it did not seem right for her to leave the man all by himself. ¡°All right. Where are you? I¡®ll head over now.¡± Eventually, she epted his invitation. At once, Larry gave her the restaurant¡®s name and location, almost as though he knew her answer beforehand. Roxanne promptly agreed.After concluding the call, she made another call to Catalina, asking thetter to help pick theTourchildren up trom the kindergarten. With that, she changed her route and headed to ward the address Larry provided her.By the ume she arrived, Larry had already waited for her for quite some time.At the sight of Roxanne, he waved and beckoned her over. Hurrying over and siling down in the seat opposite his, she said apologetically, ¡°Sorry for the wait.¡±Larry smiled. ¡°No worries. Did I disturb you while you were at work earlier?¡±Back when they were overseas, Roxanne would often for get about the time because of work. At times, she would even stay up the entire night for work.Roxanne giggled while shaking her head. ¡°No. I just happened to have ended work earlier today.¡±Having said th at, she beckoned the waiter and turned to Larry. ¡°Let me treat you to a meal today since I¡®mte. Besides, I returned earlier than you, so we¡®ll treat this as a weing fe ast for you.¡±Larry readily agreed, ¡°Well then, don¡®t mind if I do.¡±Afier ordering some food, the two began chating about work and gradually became engrossed in the conversation.Al that moment, the restaura nt manager marched in, leading a group of people behind him.Surrounded by men, Lucian had to uli hi s head every so often to listen to them talk.As he happened to turn in a direction, he spotted a familiar s ilhouelle siling at a table by the window.His face instantly darkened when he took a second look at the t wo figures chauing happily.¡°Mr. Farwell?¡± Baffled, someone in the group called him afier noucing that h e suddenly stopped in his tracks.Lucian¡®s brows scrunched up as he slowly withdrew his gaze and follo wed the crowd into a private room. Chapter 171 Chapter 171 Chapter 171 As if she sensed a pair of frosty eyes staring in her direction, Roxanne turned to observe her surroundings in puzzlement. Nheless, she did not spot anything strange.¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Larry asked in a concerned tone as he noticed the change in her expression.Roxanne merely retracted her gaze and shook her head, though appearing a little apprehensive. ¡°It¡¯s nothing.¡±As much as she had said that, she seemed to be in her own world throughout the rest of the meal. She knew that the burning gaze she felt carlier was not only her imagination. Yet, she could not find its source.Only after finishing the meal did she reluctantly put her suspicions aside,Like a gentleman, Larry proposed, ¡°It¡¯s drove here myself, so I better not trouble you.¡±Hence, Larry had no choice but to respect her decision.The two made their way out while chatting happily, and only after watching her get into her car did he head to his and drive out of the parking lot slowly.Conversely, Roxanne had just fastened her seat belt and was about to start the car when someone abruptly pulled open the door on the passenger side.Then in came a man exuding a chilly aura from head to toe.Roxanne jolted in rm and froze in her movement but still instinctively looked in the direction of the passenger scat.After getting a good look at the person¡¯s face, the scowl on her face deepened. ¡°What are you doing. Mr. Farwell?¡±Devoid of expression, Lucian shut the car door. ¡°Nothing. My car has broken down. And coincidentally, I happened to see you here. Please drive me back, Ms. Jarvis.¡±The chilling aura surrounding his body was almost palpable.Well aware how the atmosphere would only be tenser if she continued probing, Roxanne ultimately staried the engine without uttering another word.Throughout the ride, the car was dead silent. Lucian locked his deep gaze on the woman next to him, his brows tightly knitted together. She¡¯s o close with that dude¡­ And they even met up just now. The way they interacted carlier inade it sem like they are a couple¡­At this point, Lucian could no longer hold his curiosity back and broke the silence. ¡°That guy¡­ Is he Archie and Benny¡¯s father?¡±Roxanne was instantly stumped, unable to believe what she had heard. I wonder how did he get to that conclusion?Her reaction made Lucian¡¯s frown deepen as he asked again, ¡°It¡¯s him?¡±When she finally recovered from her trance, Roxanne replied in annoyance, ¡°You¡¯re overthinking things.¡±However, the man¡¯s tone remained displeased. ¡°Then are you intending to let him be Archie and Benny¡¯s father?¡±Roxanne was even more dumbfounded. ¡°I¡¯m not. It¡¯s true that I¡¯m close to Larry, but please don¡¯t make such baseless Content held by N?velDrama.Org. assumptions, Mr. Farwell. That will cause unnecessary trouble for others.¡±Lucian stared at her with a scrutinizing gaze, and his grave expression lightened up a little. ¡°If that¡¯s the case, you might want to be considerate of your children and perhaps keep your distance from other men, Ms. Jarvis.¡±In truth, Roxanne had found the man a little weird since he got into the car earlier. At this point, even the words he said made her feel slightly ufortable.Hmm¡­ why does he sound like he¡¯s being sarcastic and trying to imply something?Their brief conversation had already left Roxanne feeling annoyed, and her patience ran out after she heard hisst sentence. ¡°Mr. Farwell, what rights do you have to say that? Do you think you¡¯re doing fine in that aspect?¡±Lucian cognized the irony in her statement and furrowed his brows slightly.Roxanne gradually stopped her car and turned her gaze toward the man beside her. ¡°Before you poke your nose into someone else¡¯s business, please mind yourself first, Mr. Farwell!¡±¡°What did I do wrongly?¡± Lucian¡¯s face turned even grimmer. Chapter 172 Chapter 172 Chapter 172 The cars in the front started moving again, so Roxanne lifted her leg from the brakes and set her eyes on the road.Everything felt even more ironic when she recalled Lucian¡¯s expression. ¡°Aren¡¯t you engaged to Ms. Pearson? Don¡¯t you feel that it¡¯s inappropriate to be so close to me because of Essie?¡±Besides, he doesn¡¯t even know who Essie¡¯s biological mother is.The more she dwelled on the matter, the more outrageous she thought he was. How dare he nag me?Lucian didn¡¯t expect her to bring Este up, so he looked a little conflicted and replied ambiguously, ¡°That¡¯s not the same thing.¡±After all, Este was her daughter.She sneered, ¡°What¡¯s different? Besides, we have no other connection other than Essie, and we¡¯re not even friends. It¡¯s my right to decide who I wish to be friends with. It has nothing to do with you. Don¡¯t you think you¡¯re being a little too controlling?¡±As soon as she said that, the temperature in the car dropped.Lucian¡¯s expression darkened as he stared into the distance. After that, he didn¡¯t say anything else during the entire trip.Simrly, Roxanne pursed her lips tightly, and her mind was all over the ce while she had the same expression on her face as Lucian.Both of them stayed silent for the rest of their journeyTun dedit toll her where he wanted to go, so she drove back to herWantto Jano way anything her opened the artxan xolSecondster, Lucian got out of the passenger seat too.¡°Since Essie¡¯s condition is basically stabilized now, it¡¯s not very N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. appropriate for her to keep staying here. Mr. Farwell, if it¡¯s convenient for you, you should bring her back.¡± Roxanne had considered it throughout the journey Despite her reluctance to be separated from Este, Roxanne made that decision in the end. She was a little tired of the fact that Lucian would go to her house once every few days because Este was staying with her.I¡¯ve told him clearly from the beginning when we first met that we¡¯re already strangers, buttely, he kept showing up in front of me and even did that during Old Mr. Queen¡¯s birthday banquet. I¡¯m really confused. What¡¯s our rtionship right now, anyway? Besides, it¡¯s obvious that Archie and Benny, especially Benny, have gotten closer to him.Benny had already taken a liking to him at the beginning. Moreover, thest two times Lucian gave Benny and Archie gifts made them even more fond of him. As such, Roxanne was afraid that Benny would tell Lucian everything about her one day.With Lucian¡¯s intelligence, he would definitely find out that Archie and Benny were his when the time came.Roxanne didn¡¯t even dare to think about what would happen after that.There was still no response from Lucian after some time, so she added, ¡°Besides, it seems that Mrs. Farwell doesn¡¯t want Essie to stay with me¡­¡±She didn¡¯t know why, but she felt that Lucian was staring at her with a strange look in his eyes.Unbidden, she stopped talking.Lucian gave Roxanne onest nce before he walked away without saying anythingSering his disappearing silhouette, she opened her mouth. Instead of srying any?hing. Jur let out a quiet nigh before turning around and walking11 the nanS1011.Once she got into the mansion. Archie, Benny, and Este pounced on her happilyRoxanne squatted down out of habit, spread her arms, and the three of them jumped in for a hug.As Roxanne felt the warmth in her arms and took in the sweet scent of the three children, her heart melted instantly. She tightened her hug and pulled thern closer to her as her worries disappeared. Chapter 173 Chapter 173 Chapter 173 ¡°I¡®m sorry. Something came up at night, so I couldn¡®t fetch you, ve you calon yet?¡± Roxa nne asked gently in concern as she released the three children.Archie, Benny, and Este nodded obe diently. ¡°Yeah! We¡®ve eaten! We have been ying for a long time!¡±She secretly sighed with relief when she heard that. After that, she stood up. ¡°What were you ying? Show me.¡±Benny dashed toward the living room excitedly. ¡°We were ying with the Lego bricks that Mr. Farwell gave us! It¡®s really fun!¡± On the other hand, Archie and Este stayed by Roxanne¡®s side. She was holding hands with the childr en, with one at each side as she watched Benny with a smile on her face.Obviously, the Lego bricks that Lucian had given them met their expectations in terms of the desig n and level of difficulty, and they loved the gift.In just one night, the three children had already made a b ase.However, no matter how Roxanne looked at it, that Lego set seemed boyish to her.She looked at E ste with concern in her eyes. ¡°Essie, do you like this toy?¡±Este¡®s eyes lit up as she nodded fervently.As long as I can y with Archie and Benny, I ¡®m fine with ying anything!Seeing that, Roxanne felt relieved. After taking a look at the time, she yed with them for a while more since it was still early.Archie and Benny were used to ying Lego with her, so each of them start ed to build their models seriously. Roxanne also decided to make something after she selected a model .When she was looking for a piece, she felt someone lug the hem of her sunt twice.Roxanne turned around in confusion and saw Este looking at her with a pitful and h elpless look. The little girl was holding a picture with the building instructions as she pointed at one of the pieces in it.It was obvious th at she couldn¡®t find the piece she wantedRoxanne smiled in adoration. Just as she was about to help Este look for the piece together, she remembered how thetter had spokenst time.If Roxanne had guessed it correctly, Este would only asionally utter one or two words when she was emotional. Thinking of that, Roxanne pretended to look confusedly at Este. ¡°What¡®s wrong?¡±Este pointed at the piece in the picture again and again, but Roxanne continued to stare at her in confusion.After some time, Est e got anxious and pouted.Roxanne¡®s heart softened at that, and she caressed Este¡®s head. ¡°If you want me to do s omething, you should say it out loud and tell me.¡±Este blinked innocently as she opened her mouth.Roxanne thought that she w as about to say something, so she looked at thetter expectantly.Este seemed to be trying hard, but Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. after a few attempts, not a single word came out of her mouth. Feeling discouraged, she poked Archie and Benny, who were concentrating on building their models.Since Archie and Benny had spent some t ime building the models together with Este, they could tell what she meant based on her movements. When they wanted to help her out, they saw that Roxanne was shaking her head at them behind Estell a.Seeing that, Archie and Benny obediently sat back down again despite not knowing what Roxanne was trying to do.Roxanne said again patiently, ¡°Essie can speak, right? Come on. Tell us. What do you want us to do?¡±Archie and Benny understood her intentions and nodded in response. ¡°Essie, what¡®s the matter?¡±All three of them looked at Este expectantly.Este sensed th eir anticipation, so she tried hard to speak until her face flushed red, but still, no words came out of her mouth.After some time, she began to panic and felt aggrieved. Soon, her eyes reddened.Roxanne had been observing Este¡® s expression the entire time. Seeing that, she quickly caressed Este¡®s cheeks and apologized, ¡°I¡®m s orry, Essie. I was rushing things. Let¡®s take it slow, Essie. Shhh¡­ Don¡®t cry. Don¡®t cry.¡±Meanwhile, Archi e and Benny had already found the piece that Este wanted from the pile of Lego pieces, and they happily showed it to her with their outstretched hands. ¡°Essie, look! Is this what you wanted? We f ound it for you!¡±She took it from them with a sniffle before she smiled again gradually. Chapter 174 Chapter 174 Chapter 174The next morning, Roxanne and the three kids had breakfast togetherEste sat beside her quictly and allowed the boys to feed her. Fler cheeks pulled up adorably as though she were a chipmunk.Roxa nne felt her heart sofien at the sight of the obedient little girl. She also felt bad for her.I believe Essie wa nted to talkst night. With that thought in mind, she gazed at Este affectionately. ¡°Essie, do you want some buns?¡±Este nodded eagerly.Roxanne picke d up a bun but didn¡®t ce it on Este¡®s te. She said, ¡°If you want, tell me in words.¡±Este blinked, seemingly stumped by her request.Roxanne¡®s brows furrowed in disappointment. ¡°If you don¡®t talk, I mi ght not understand what you want. That way, I¡¯ll worry that I can¡®t take care ofyou. Essie, can you get used to talking? Don¡®t worry, I¡®ll help you. We can do it slowly.¡±Hearing h er words, Archie and Benny ced their forks down. ¡°Let¡®s do it together! We want to hear Essie talk, too!¡°.As their expectant gazes fell on Este, she nced at each and every one of them. Her fists balled up as she forced herself to grunt, ¡°Mm!¡±Roxanne and the boys were pleasantly delighted by her soft and adorable voice. Their eye s lit up in surprise.I was just trying my luck and didn¡®t expect Este to talk for real!Despite wanting more, Roxanne knew she shouldn¡®t be impatient. She stroked Este¡®s hair adoringly before cing the bun on her te.Estetio n to learn that she could tak, 100. She was still bearing joviully w hen Ruxanne opedihemi o llie kindergarten¡°Essie, youre in a jovial mood today, huh?¡± l¡®ippa romarke Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. d when she saw Exp¡®s precious grin.Este beamed at her and nodded happily,Benny chimed in, ¡°W e¡®re helping her to learn how to talk!¡± Pippa assumed they were joking around. After all, she had taught Este for some ume but never heard Esto talk.However, Archie and Benny took the matter seriously. They were even discussing how to push Este to talk during ss.In betwee n sses, Este went to them as usual so they could y together.Nevertheless, Archie wasn¡®t his us ual self. He frowned and demanded, ¡°What do you want from us?¡±Puzzled, Este whipped her head ar ound to look at Benny.I want to y with Archie and Benny! We y together every day, right? Benny added sternly, ¡°Hurry up and tell us what you want. Archie and I are busy!¡±Both of them were ob viously treating her coldly. Este recalled how she followed them everywhere back when they first came and how they ignored her. She really enjoyed ying with them recently, so she grew fluster ed and grabbed the pencil and paper on Benny¡®s table so she could write her thoughts out.To her surpri se, Archie pocketed the pencil. ¡°Talk to us. Otherwise, we won¡®t know what you mean.¡±Este gripped t he corner of the desk sadly.¡°Didn¡®t you promise Mommy this morning that you¡®ll learn how to talk slowly?¡± Benny gazed at her. ¡°If you can¡®t talk, you can call our names.We¡®ve been calling your name, Essie, but you¡®ve never said our names!¡±Este parted her lips but nothing came out of her mouth. She grew anxious and was about to burst into tears.Seeing that, Archie and Benny gave her the pencil instead of forcing her to talk.Howeve r, for the next few days, the two boys grew distant from her at home and at the kindergarten.Every time Este came to them, Benny would huff angrily, ¡°We treated you well, but you wouldn¡®t even call our na mes! We¡®re going to ignore you!¡±Este was devastated. Chapter 175 Chapter 175 Chapter 175 For the next few days, Esie yed with Roxanne at home but had no ymates at the kindergarten.She could only w atch as Archie and Benny yed with the other children and ignored her entirely. Finally, she plucked up her courage to ru n to them.The boys shared a look and put on stern expressions. ¡°What do you want?¡±Este clutched t he corners of her skirt until it was all crumpled up. Her brows snapped together as she stared at them s olemnly. Parting her lips, she tried to make a sound. Archie and Benny were both worried and anxious.If they had no idea she could actually talk, they would n¡®t be forcing her to talk now.A whileter, they were about to give up when they heard a tiny whisper, ¡° Arch¡­ Ben¡­¡±Este¡®s cheeks were Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. flushed, but she only managed to utter a syble from each of their names. She hung her head low des pondently.Both Archie and Benny were ted. They gave her a hug and eximed, ¡°Good job, Essie!¡±Este was taken aback by their sudden hug. Hearing their praises, s he snapped back to reality and broke into a smile.After the first try, it was easier for her to pronounce th eir names.As she seemed to have ovee an obstacle, Archie said solemnly, ¡°Mommy treats you wel l, and you adore her, too. Am I right? But you¡®ve never called her name. I believe she¡®s way more upset than Benny and me.¡±Este grew flustered once again. She grabbed Archie¡®s shirt and said, ¡°Arch¡­ ie !¡±She wanted him to teach her how tofort RoxanneA cunning look shed across Archie¡®s eyes as he exined slowly, ¡°You called our names, so we¡®ve forgiven you. If you can call Mommy Ms. Jarvis, she¡® ll be delighted!¡±Este nodded vigorously.She then spent the entire day at kindergarten practicing the w ord ¡°Ms. Jarvis.¡±Roxanne was really busy these few days.The project Harvey handed her was urgent and challenging. He might¡®ve informed her about the details, but there was still stuff he missed. Thus, Roxanne and her team had to figure out those by themselves.This was the f irst time she got to work with most of the researchers in the research institute. They weren¡®t familiar with each ot her, and thus their project was behind schedule.Fortunately, Colby was around to help her catch up.By the time the first phase waspleted, Roxanne was depleted of energy.She nced at her wat ch and realized Catalina should¡®ve picked the kids up from kindergarten already.Thus, Roxanne drove back home to prepare dinner for them.Shortly after, the door to the mansion was pushed open. A series of footsteps sounded followed by Archie and Benny¡®s chatter.¡°Mrs. Farwell?¡± Catalina was about to he ad into the kitchen when she saw Roxanne inside. ¡°Why are you back early today?¡±Roxanne shot her a smile. ¡°I got off work earlier than usual today. Dinner¡®s almost ready. Please help them wash their hands, and we can eat soon!¡±The kids ran into the kitchen and surrounded her.Benny began telling her stories about his day in kindergarten.Roxanne¡®s exhaustion faded into thin air as she took in their smiling faces.¡°Miss!¡± An adorable voice rang out after Benny was done talking.St unned, Roxanne lowered her head to look at Este, who was standing beside her.Este was hugging her leg and staring at her intently. The little girl¡®s lips were still parted.Once their gazes met, she repeated slowly, ¡°Miss!¡±It took Roxanne a while before she regained herposure. Squatting do wn, she flung her arms around the little girl and replied happily, ¡°Yes, I¡®m here! That sounds amazing, E ssie!¡±Tears threatened to escape her eyes.After taking care of Este for a while, she was already treati ng the little girl as her own daughter.When she heard Este doing her best to address her as ¡°Ms. Jarvis,¡± she was transported back to the day when Archie and Benny learned how to call her ¡°Mommy.¡± Chapter 176 Chapter 176 Chapter 176 Despite being busy at work, Lucian would show up at Roxanne¡®s door every day.His mind kept repl aying the scene where Roxanne met Larry and how she questioned him harshly.After their argument, R oxanne even suggested he bring Este back with him. Thus, Lucian only dared to observe the four of them from afar instead of sh owing up before Roxanne.Este was bing livelier day by day. Lucian assumed it was because she adored Roxanne. He had no idea she was starting to t alk now. Meanwhile, Aubree appeared at the Farwell Group¡®s building when it was time to get off work.¡°I¡®m sorry, Ms. Pearson. Mr. Farwell just left.¡± Cayden reminded her when he saw her pressing the elevator butto n to head to the CEO¡®s office. He had just got off work.Hearing that, Aubree knitted her brows. ¡°Where is he?¡±Cayden shot her a professional smile. ¡°I don¡®t know his schedule after work. If you¡®re curious, you¡®re wee to call him and ask him where he is.¡±He gave her a polite bow and turned to leave.When the elevator doors slid shut b efore her, Aubree bit her lip. A wave of fury crashed through her.Even though Lucian humiliated her in public and made her theughingstock of the upper¨Css society, she refused to give up just yet.These few days, she didn¡®t stop contacting Lucian in hopes that he would change his mind.If Lucian were to change his mind and confirm their wedding d Content held by N?velDrama.Org. ate, the rumors would be scotched.That was the only way. There was nothing else she could do to turn the tables for now.,Aubree was bitterly disappointed after her constant tries to contact b im were met with cold rebukes.After the incident at the birthday party, Lucian didn¡®t botherforting th e Pearson family. Instead, he got all wrapped up in Roxanne.There was no need to call Lucian, for Aubr ee knew he was obviously with that wicked woman. With that thought in mind, Aubree pushed the elev ator button and marched out.Back at the Pearson residence, she saw Samuel and Gina in the living roo m.When she came in, they were about to ask whether she got to meet Lucian when they noticed her expression. Comprehension dawned on the m. ¡°Lucian isn¡®t around again?¡±For the past few days, Aubree and her parents tried to meet Lucian but t o no avail. The man refused to spare them any time.Aubree went to him a few times, but he refused he r entry.Infuriated, Aubree tossed her bag to the floor. ¡°It¡®s all that b*tch¡®s fault! What exactly is so great about her?¡±Gina frowned. ¡°Did Lucian go to her again?¡±Aubree plopped into the seat next to them furiously. ¡°Duh! Everyone¡®s saying that he¡®s going to marry Roxanne. I¡®m just a gold¨C digger who clings to him shamelessly. He doesn¡®t even want me even if I offer him everything!¡±Gina an d Samuel shared a look,They had heard this rumor, too. However, just like Aubree, they assumed the rumor would be scotched once Lucian agreed to the wedding.s, things weren¡®t going their way.Gina patted Aubree¡®s back in aforting manner. ¡°No matter what, we¡®ll get his exnation soon. Calm down.¡± |¡°You¡®re asking me to calm down? If we wait any longer, that b*tch will marry him soon!¡± Aubree dered as a crazed look appeared on her face.Despite her fury, Gina remained calm. ¡°What Lucian wants may not be what the Farwells want. Didn¡®t you see how his mother held a prejudice toward that woman previously?¡± she reminded Aubree.Aubree calmed down slightly. ¡°Are y ou saying that¡­¡±¡°Let¡®s pay the Farwell residence a visit,¡± Gina stated coolly. Chapter 177 Chapter 177 Chapter 177 The three of them discussed briefly before agreeing to invite Sonya and her husband to dinner at The Waterfront that night.When Sonya and Elias arrived, Aubree¡¯s family was already waiting in the private room. Aubree hung her head low, seemingly despondent, while her parents wore grim expressions.When they walked into the room, Aubree lifted her head and forced out a smile. ¡°Hello, Mr. and Mrs. Farwell.¡±Her smile slipped soon after as though she was nursing a grievance. Sonya was puzzled. ¡°Aubree, what¡¯s the matter? Did someone bully you? Tell me about it.¡±Gina¡¯s voice rang out. ¡°She¡¯s upset because of the rumors circting outside. People are using Aubree of being a gold- digger, so she¡¯s been crying for the past few days.¡±Aubree immediately refuted, ¡°No, I know Lucian Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. doesn¡¯t mean it. I¡¯ve heard of the rumors, but I didn¡¯t take them to heart¡­¡±She trailed off as her eyes turned red.Gina shot her a resigned and worried look. ¡°You¡¯ve remained by Lucian¡¯s side these few years, so we know your feelings. But the outsiders have no idea. If Lucian¡­¡±She paused and lowered her voice, ¡°If Lucian loves you, he won¡¯t allow you to suffer. He can ignore your plight, but I can¡¯t! Listen to me. It¡¯s time to break up with him.¡±Sonya and Elias heard their exchange clearly.Sonya¡¯s brows snapped together as she demanded, ¡°What¡¯s going on? Is it about the rumor? I¡¯ll deal with the rumor right away!¡± Gina let out a bitter chuckle and raised her head. ¡°How are you going to handle the matter? Everyone in Horinglon knows about it. They im that Aubree and Lucian¡¯s engagement is only Aubree¡¯s wishful thinking. Lucian doesn¡¯t have any intention of marrying her. They also im that our family depended on your family to climb up the ranks. Now that Lucian has a new lover, and their engagemeni hasn¡¯t been announced, they are saying that Aubree is holding Lucian back.¡± ¡°That¡¯s utter nonsense!¡± Sonya¡¯s face darkened.Gina¡¯s lips twitched. ¡°They¡¯re right. For the past few years, it was Aubree who remained by Lucian¡¯s side. We¡¯re the only ones who know about the engagement. We¡¯ve received a lot from Lucian. As he isn¡¯t interested in Aubree, we shouldn¡¯t hold him back.¡±She shot her daughter a distressed look. ¡°Aubree still¡­ Well, I¡¯ve advised her for a couple of days, but she couldn¡¯t bring herself to break up with him. As her mother, it breaks my heart to see people gossiping about her. It¡¯s better to just get the pain over with, rather than prolong the agony. I¡¯ll decide on behalf of her today to break cif their engagement.¡±Aubree hung her head low and trembled slightly.No one could see her expression, but it was pretty obvious that she was devastated.Sonya had no idea they would suddenly ask to break off the engagement. Her expression changed drastically as she dered, ¡°Impossible! Lucian and Aubree have been engaged for years. How could we call off the engagement just like that?¡±¡°This is the only way to quell the rumors,¡± Gina exined bitterly. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll tell Aubree to forget him so she could find her own happiness.¡±Silence ensued. A momentter, Sonya said icily, ¡°There¡¯s another solution.¡±Before Gina could say anything, Sonya took her bag and rose to her feet. ¡°Aubree is the only daughter-inw I¡¯ll acknowledge. Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯ll handle the matter personally!¡±With that said, she spun on her heels and strode away without looking back. Chapter 178 Chapter 178 Chapter 178 Inside the private room, Aubrre raiseu her locad slowly. There were no signs of cars on her face.¡°Just you wait!¡± Gina announced smuglyBesides calling off the engagement, the only other way to quell the rumors was to arrange for the wedding!She was contident that Sonya shares her sentiments, The next morning, Lucian arrived at his office and noticed Cavaden was acting strangely¡°What¡¯s wrong¡± Lucian was batlle,Cavdien hesitated for a momenu before blurring out. ¡°Mi Barwell, you and Ms. Pearson¡­¡±¡°What about me and her:¡± Lucian¡¯s brows turtoweSensing his contusion, Cavien added circully: ¡°Are you really going to get engaged to her?¡±Atier saying that, Cavden lowered luis gaze hastilyEarly this morning, he heard about the rumors saving his employer was finally going to get engaged with lubroc.The public was kept out of the loop, bui Cayden had been working for Lucian for some time. Ilc saw firsthand how close Lucian and Roxanne Worc lle also know that Lucian didn¡¯t harbor any lings for Aubrec. Even 10 m outsider like him, it was obvious that Aubree¡¯s feelings were one sided.For the past six years, Lucian refused to get engaged to Aubree but suddenly grecato il without warning:Naturally, that struck Cayden as strange.Lucian¡¯s expression turned dark instantly. ¡°Where did you hear it from?¡±Hearing his employer¡¯s fury, Cayden promptly knew what was going on. He replied solemnly, ¡°Everyone¡¯s talking about it. It was also published in a few morning papers.¡±He pulled his phone out and showed Lucian the news that was published Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. online.Farwell Group and Pearson Group: A Marriage of Convenience! The Farwells and Pearsons¡¯ Marriage Alliance Finally Coming Through Six Years Later! Lucian¡¯s gaze swept over the various news captions online. There were alsoments praising that he and Aubree were the perfect couple.At once, the surrounding temperature dropped. Find out who was the one who released the news!¡±The discussion went wild just after one night.I must find out who the h*ll dares to make an issue over my matter!Clearly, the culprit didn¡¯t bother concealing his or her identity.Less than an hourter, Cayden went to Lucian¡¯s office to report his findings.Lucian¡¯s heart sank when he noticed Cayden¡¯s expression.¡°Mr. Farwell, it was the chairman who gave the orders,¡± Cayden reported cautiously.He was shocked to learn that it was Lucian¡¯s father behind the matter. In fact, it was the chairman¡¯s assistant who contacted various media outlets and ordered them to release the news by dawn.Hence, a few media outlets had to hold back the news that was supposed to be published today so they could report about the marriage of convenience.It only took one morning for the news to be sshed all over the headlines.Almost everyone in Horington was gossiping about the matter.Lucian stiffened momentarily before regaining hisposure to nod. His face was devoid of expression as he said, ¡°Got it. You may leave now.¡±Cayden nodded. Realizing that Lucian was in a foul mood, he walked out of the office and shut the door quietly.Inside his office, Lucian strode over to the window and stared out, feeling conflicted.For the past six years, his parents kept reminding him to get married to Aubree, but he would always brush them off.Thus, he assumed they understood his intentions.s, they ended up going against his wishes and announced the engagement to the outside world after urging him for six whole years. Chapter 179 Chapter 179 A long whileter, he took out his phone to call his father. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. The call connected quickly. ¡°What is it, Lucian?¡± Elias didn¡¯t head to work today and was currently enjoying breakfast. After answering his son¡¯s call, he cast Sonya, who was sitting across from him, a look. Sonya knew why her son had called. She took the phone from Elias. Elias allowed her to take his phone from him withoutining. Not knowing anything, Lucian asked sternly, ¡°Were you the one who released the news about the engagement?¡± Cayden had investigated the matter, but Lucian still wanted to hear Elias admit to it in person. To his surprise, his mother¡¯s voice sounded on the other end of the line instead. ¡°It was my idea. What¡¯s wrong about it?¡± Sonya responded nonchntly. CTT Lucian stiffened as his brows snapped together. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you ask for my opinion? This is my business. Besides, I¡¯ve told you not to interfere. I have my own ns.¡± Recalling what the Pearsons told herst night, Sonya scowled unhappily. ¡°What other ns can you have? Are you going to ignore Aubree forever? Aubree has been the talk of the town no thanks to what you did. Did you handle the matter? Is that part of your n?¡± Lucian felt an iing headache. ¡°How can you be sure that I didn¡¯t take action?¡± He had learned of the rumors that spread like wildfire after leaving with Roxanne under the crowd¡¯s watchful eyes. Even though he disliked Aubree, he owed her grandfather a favor. Thus, he wasn¡¯t about to ignore the matter. Before he could take action, things took a twist. He was dragged into the mess, too. Lucian was caught off guard. ¡°That doesn¡¯t matter. This is the only way we can quell the rumors!¡± Sonya dered, her tone allowing no room for negotiation. ¡°You¡¯re the reason the rumors started, so you¡¯ll be the one to end them. Aubree has been with you for years, so you should bear responsibility by making her your wife. I announced your engagement on behalf of you. There¡¯s nothing wrong with that.¡± Massaging his temples, Lucian tried hard to tamp down his irritation. ¡°You know I have no intention of marrying her! I¡¯m pretty sure you know Essie¡¯s condition well. She never liked Aubree. A few dayster, Aubree even struck Essie. You¡¯re now asking Essie to ept the fact that Aubree¡¯s going to be her mother. Have you ever considered Essie¡¯s feelings?¡± Sonya was unfazed. ¡°Essie didn¡¯t like Aubree as they didn¡¯t get to spend time together. Anyway, Aubree knew she was too harsh in punishing Essie. She knows her mistake now. You¡¯re going to get married soon, so Essie will need to ept Aubree no matter what. They get to spend more time together if she epts Aubree earlier.¡± She didn¡¯t wait for Lucian to respond and added, ¡°If you¡¯re not nning on marrying Aubree, are you going to marry Roxanne instead? No matter what, I won¡¯t agree to let her enter our family yet again! I wouldn¡¯t have allowed Essie to stay with her for the time being if you hadn¡¯t told me that she could help Essie¡¯s condition. That was my biggestpromise!¡± Lucian said naught a word. ¡°Essie should¡¯ve recovered by now. You should bring her back so she can spend more time with Aubree,¡± Sonya ordered. ¡°Also, remind Roxanne to not harbor any notions. I will never allow her to marry into the Farwell family for the second time!¡± With that said, she ended the call. Lucian¡¯s expression scrunched up at once. Chapter 180 Chapter 180 Roxanne would always switch on the TV in the morning so she could listen to the news during N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. breakfast with the kids. ¡°The news of the marriage of convenience between Farwell Group and Pearson Group hassted six years. Recently, they¡¯ve finally agreed to set a date for the engagement,¡± the male newscaster reported. Roxanne¡¯s hand paused midair. She fell silent for a few moments before resuming her action nonchntly. Archie and Benny promptly lost their appetite as their smiles crumbled. When they were overseas, they were curious and excited to find out who their daddy was. Aftering back to Chanaea, they were upset to learn that he had a daughter. They despised him for abandoning Roxanne. However, after spending some time with him, they realized he wasn¡¯t as bad as they assumed. On the contrary, he was a caring man. Despite not knowing they were his sons, he treated them patiently and would give them gifts.They were about to ept him when the news of his marriage was announced. Thus, their impression of him hit rock bottom once again. Daddy¡¯s a bad guy! He treats us nicely but is nning on marrying another woman. He should¡¯ve stayed away from us! Este¡¯s gaze dimmed when she heard the news. I don¡¯t like Ms. Pearson. She¡¯s an evil woman. I want Ms. Jarvis to be my mommy. Daddy promised that he won¡¯t allow Ms. Pearson to be my mommy. Why did he break his promise? Does he not love me anymore? Este was crestfallen. Sensing the change in her emotions, Roxanne frowned and asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong, Essie?¡± Este pouted unhappily. ¡°Sad.¡± For the past few days, Este learned how to utter simple words to express her feelings following Roxanne and the boys¡¯ efforts. Roxanne¡¯s confusion heightened. ¡°Why are you sad? Can you tell me about it?¡± Este hung her head low and toyed with her fingers ruefully. I want Ms. Jarvis to be my mommy, but I don¡¯t think she likes Daddy. Daddy¡¯s a bad guy. How could he marry the baddy? The three kids sulked unhappily throughout breakfast. Roxanne was exasperated when she realized they were sulking. After breakfast, instead of ying Legos together on the carpet, the kids trudged upstairs together. Roxanne knew they were upset after learning the news, but she couldn¡¯t figure out why. Besides, her thoughts were also a tangled mess. She wasn¡¯t in the mood to guess their thoughts. Six yearster, Lucian is getting engaged to Aubree. His wish is finallying true. She was lost in her thoughts when the doorbell rang. Roxanne snapped out of her reverie and went to open the door. The sight of the visitor gave her a huge shock. It took her a few seconds to regain herposure. ¡°Why are you here?¡± The person mentioned in the news was standing at her door. He was dressed in a thin shirt, and his hair was slightly messy. After their previous fight, she knew Lucian would oftene to visit. However, he was tactful enough to not show himself before her. This was the first time they met in person after the fight. After hearing the news earlier, Roxanne had no idea how she should face him. Chapter 181 Chapter 181 As the newscaster¡¯s sound could be heard faintly, Lucian knew Roxanne should¡¯ve heard about his engagement. He studied her carefully but realized she seemed calm. Shortly after, he broke the silence. ¡°I¡¯m here to pay Essie a visit. How is she doing?¡± Roxanne stepped aside to allow him entry. ¡°She¡¯s upstairs. I need to talk to you about her.¡± They entered the living room one after another. Roxanne gestured for him to take a seat on the couch while she upied a single couch aside. Catalina served them coffee and left after realizing they had something to discuss.¡°What is it?¡± Lucian¡¯s Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. heart sank when he noticed her expression. Roxanne revealed calmly, ¡°I agreed to let Essie stay here temporarily because of her condition. She is doing better these few days. She is also starting to talk. Compared to her past self, she has improved a lot. There is no need for her to remain here.¡± She was telling him to bring Este back home. Lucian¡¯s expression turned grim. ¡°Since she¡¯s improving a lot here, she might recoverpletely if she stays here. If it doesn¡¯t trouble you¡ª¡± Roxanne interjected swiftly, ¡°I¡¯m sorry. Essie¡¯s your daughter, so I believe she¡¯ll recover faster if she stays with you. I¡¯m just a stranger to her, after all.¡± Lucian¡¯s brows puckered when he realized she was determined. ¡°Why the sudden decision? I thought you were taking care of her well?¡± Roxanne met his gaze and shed a sarcastic grin. ¡°I¡¯m not obliged to take care of someone else¡¯s daughter. Previously, I agreed to take care of her as she was sick. I¡¯ve done what I could. Mr. Farwell, you should know when to stop. We¡¯re not even rted, so you shouldn¡¯t force me to take care of your daughter.¡± ncing at the TV, which was still ying the news, she added icily. ¡°Besides, I don¡¯t want to get involved with a married man and risk getting used of being a homewrecker one day.¡± Lucian gazed at the TV silently. He couldn¡¯t utter a single word in rebuttal. Since he did not deny it, Roxanne assumed she was right. Her voice grew frosty. ¡°I¡¯ve been busy with work recently, and taking care of your daughter will merely add to my burden. I don¡¯t want to force myself, so please don¡¯t make things difficult for me and bring her back as soon as possible.¡± Roxanne¡¯s face was devoid of expression as she said that out loud. Averting her gaze, she said nothing else as her nails dug into her palms She only made up her mind hastily after Lucian arrived. Lucian is about to marry Aubree. If Essie remains here, he¡¯ll often show up. That is not right. It¡¯s best to keep a distance from him rather than cause a misunderstanding in the future. Sensing her intention, Lucian frowned. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say that the kids are innocent?¡± Without flinching, Roxanne replied, ¡°I won¡¯t stop Archie and Benny from being friends with Essie. Essie is wee to y with them anytime.¡± Chapter 182 Chapter 182 The silencested for a while, but eventually, Lucian broke it. ¡°As you wish.¡± Roxanne nodded and walked up the stairs to get Este. All three kids were hanging out in Archie and Benny¡¯s room at the time. Everyone was upset, and the atmosphere in the room was grim. Archie and Benny were ying with their respective robot toys, whereas Este had buried her head into her plush toy¡¯s tummy. All three were immersed in their own worlds. When they heard the door opening, all three of them unanimously shifted their attention toward the door. Roxanne softened her stance when she looked into their eyes. However, sheter thought about the man waiting downstairs and became resolute again. She said calmly, ¡°Essie, your dad is here to pick you up.¡± All three kids were stunned to hear that. Este, in particr, bulged her eyes that were shining with confusion while she hugged her plush toy, not moving a muscle.Roxanne looked down as she repeated stiftly, ¡°Your dad is waiting downstairs, so hurry along now.¡± After saying all that, she moved to the side and waited quietly by the door. ¡°Ms. Jarvis¡­¡± murmured Este. Her voice suggested that she was a little scared and extremely reluctant to leave. Roxanne forced herself to look away from the kid¡¯s face. She did not dare to say a word because she worried that she would ask the kid to stay the second her lips parted. It took some time before the kid finally made her way to the door. Roxanne couldn¡¯t help stroking her hair, then held her hand as they walked down the stairs together. Lucian had already gotten up from the couch by then, and he had one hand in his pocket as he stood in the middle of the living room. It seemed like he was ready to take Este away as soon as she showed up. Roxanne held Este¡¯s hand until they were off thest step. After that, she spoke in a sweet voice, ¡°Go on, then.¡± Having said that, she let go of Este¡¯s hand. Este stared at her father, then at the beautifuldy beside her. The kid¡¯s eyes shone with dissatisfaction and reluctance. She only took two steps forward before she suddenly turned back around and hugged Roxanne¡¯s leg tightly, refusing to let go. Roxanne¡¯s heart melted and turned into a messy mush as she reached out her hand. At first, she wanted to stroke Este¡¯s head to offer her somefort, but her hand stopped midair before it reached for Este¡¯s hands and gently pried them away from her leg. ¡°Be good and go home with your dad. I will be very busy in theing days, and you know that.¡± As if she sensed something amiss about the situation, Este used her tiny hands to grab Roxanne¡¯s skirt and shook her head fervently. ¡°No! No going home!¡± Lucian frowned a little when he heard what the kid said. At the same time, his eyes gleamed with surprise and a hint of bitterness. She needs her mother so badly, but that woman has no intention of taking care of her¡­ Roxanne shifted her gaze to the man standing right there and prayed that he would say something. However, Lucian merely stood there with a stoic expression. He stared at the two of them but seemed Content held by N?velDrama.Org. to have no intention of helping at all. Roxanne retracted her gaze when she saw that, following which, she crouched down to look at Este¡¯s cute face. Tears filled up Este¡¯s eyes as she pouted aggrievedly and looked at Roxanne longingly. ¡°I want to stay with you!¡± Roxanne¡¯s gaze softened upon hearing that. At the end of the day, she couldn¡¯t bear to see the kid crying, so she patiently cooed, ¡°Be good, Essie. I know you like me. I enjoy spending time with you too, but I have been really busy and tiredtely. If you wish to help me, then be good and go home with your dad, okay?¡± ¡°I want to stay with Ms. Jarvis¡­¡± murmured Este stubbornly as she bit her lip. There¡¯s no saying if I can see Ms. Jarvis again if I go home with Daddy now¡­ When Roxanne looked into Este¡¯s eyes, she realized what the kid was thinking, and for a minute there, Roxanne didn¡¯t know what to say. She remained quiet for a few minutes before she smiled and said sweetly, ¡°I will always be here, and you can drop by anytime you want, okay?¡± However, Este didn¡¯t quite buy those words. Meanwhile, Lucian misread the situation and thought that Roxanne only said those words to chase Este away. Hence, he sternly reminded, ¡°Este Farwell, have you forgotten that this is not your home?¡± Este slowly lowered her head before turning around and walking to her father right away. Chapter 183 Chapter 183 Chapter 183 With that, the door to the mansion slowly closed, and Este¡®s tiny figure was gone from Roxanne¡®s sight.Missing the little girl dearly, Roxanne took a deep breath and forced her tears back in.They had spent quite some time together, and the kid had obviously grown fond of her and the boys. On top of that, her illness showed evident signs of improvementIf at all possible, Roxanne wished that she coul d continue to stay with Este and take care of thetter until she had Unfortunately, it seemed that was no longer possible.As Archie and Benny walked down the stairs after Roxanne and Este, the boys could tell that their mother was sad to send Este away. Although they, too, felt the same, they kept their words to themselves.When they sa w how saddened their mother was, they snuggled up in her arms and promised, ¡°Don¡®t be sad, Mommy. We promise we will always be with you.¡±Roxanne hugged the cuddly kids in her embrace, and her heart slowly became filled with warmth once more.Although she was reluc tant to part with Este, her challenging job made it impossible for her to deal with other matters as she was preupied with her work every day.On that fateful day, Roxanne followed her routine and left the research facility when it was time to pick up her kids from kindergarten.When she was on her way, she received a call from Larry.Roxanne picked up the call. ¡°Hi Larry, what¡®s up?¡±Larry sounded a little troubled when he spoke on the other end of the line,¡°Are you free to talk? I¡®d like to ask for a favor.¡±Roxanne could tell that something was off, so she agreed to help him without hesitation, ¡°Ask away.¡±Larry replied, ¡°It¡®s easier if we talk in person. I¡®ll send you a location that, she sped up and drove quickly to the kindergarten to pick up her kids. Upon dropping them off at her home, she asked her friend to babysit them, then hurried off to meet Larry at the restaurant h e picked. Larry was already there when she arrived, and he had a grim expression on his face.¡°Sorry for asking you toe here out of the blue,¡± said Larry when he saw her sitting down.Roxanne didn¡®t mind, so she grinned. ¡°It¡®s fine. I¡® m free tonight anyway. So, what do you need my help for?¡±While they were talking, a server showed up to serve their dishes so that they could eat while they chatted.¡°Initially, I nned to only stay here for a short while, but an elderly member of my extended family suddenly developed an illness in his bra in. I¡®m the only medical practitioner in the family, so I stayed behind to help out,¡± said Larry. ¡°I¡®ve read his medical file, and he n eeds a craniotomy. Unfortunately, he is getting too old, and the risk involved is rather high.The sess rate is only 20%¡±They both worked in the healthcare industry, so Larry could exin the patient¡®s situation in a few short sentences.Those few words also all owed Roxanne to understand what Larry wanted her help with.¡°We worked together on several asio ns when we were living overseas, and of all the doctors I know, you are the most skilled one in this field. T hat is why I was hoping.¡± Larry trailed off as he became hesitant.After all, craniotomy was a difficult and risky procedure, so the surgeon performing the task would have to endure tremendous stress.Roxanne had no obligation and didn¡®t need to take a risk like that.Nevertheless, she understood that Larry was worried about her being burdened by the risk involved. Hence, she didn¡®t bother waiting for him to finish his sentence and immediately said, ¡°Where is the patient now? If possible, I think I should go check his condition in Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. person. It¡®s as you said. I specialize in this field, so I might be able toe up with another solution. Who knows? Maybe we can avoid surgery entirely.¡±Larry was still pondering h ow to finish his sentence when her words prompted a bewildered glint to sh past his eyes.D¨C Did she agree to help out just like that? Chapter 184 Chapter 184 ¡°If it¡¯s fine with you, I can free up some time tomorrow and drop by the hospital to examine the patient,¡± suggested Roxanne after she thought about her work schedule for the next few days. Larry came back around and quickly nodded. ¡°Okay, then I¡¯ll be counting on you. If you ever need anything in the future, please feel free to let me know.¡± Roxanne grinned. ¡°It¡¯s fine. You¡¯ve helped me a lot while we were living overseas. Besides, it is our duty as doctors to help the sick. Since you believe that I can do this, there¡¯s no reason for me to back down.¡± The two of them chatted a little longer before they settled on a time for Roxanne to visit her patient. On the following afternoon, Roxanne finished up her work at the research institute and went to meet up with Larry right away at the entrance of the hospital. ¡°I spoke to the rest of my family, so I will be the only one staying overnight here. You don¡¯t need to feel pressured at all,¡± said Larry. He then led her to the hospital room. Lying on the sickbed was an elderly man whose hair had been shaved. He was still unconscious at the time. He had gotten ill suddenly, so the color on his face hadn¡¯t faded yet. That was why he looked as though he was an ordinary elderly man who was simply sleeping.¡°Are you J?¡± asked the medical experts in the room, who were in charge of treating the elderly man. Larry had shared Roxanne¡¯s alias with the others before he even dropped by. Those medical experts had long heard about the renowned J, and they were surprised to see such a young woman standing behind Larry. Most of them even wondered if there was something wrong with their eyes. Roxanne nodded slightly, then turned her attention to the patient. ¡°Sorry, but now¡¯s not the time to exchange pleasantries. Please tell me more about the patient¡¯s condition. Also, please allow me to perform a few examinations.¡± The medical experts turned to Larry to get his approval when they saw how professionally she acted. Larry nodded in response. With his approval, the medical experts quickly helped Roxanne. They showed her the patient¡¯s medical report and helped her perform some examinations. They worked for hours before Roxanne finally had the full picture of her patient¡¯s condition. She couldn¡¯t help feeling disheartened by what she had learned Unfortunately, she had to admit that the patient¡¯s case was tough, even for someone as skilled as herself. ¡°What do you think? Can you help him?¡± asked Larry in a concerned tone. Roxanne¡¯s expression turned grim. ¡°I need some time to figure this out. He can hold out for two more days, and I will use that time to hold a conference to discuss his condition.¡± Larry trusted her, so he nodded and agreed to let her work her magic. Roxanne ended up spending most of her time at the hospital over the next two days. She discussed the matter with a few domestic experts who were renowned in that field. After that, she came up with a new medical proposal, but even then, the chances of sess were only forty percent. On the day of the surgery, Roxanne dropped her kids off at the kindergarten early in the morning. She hurried to the hospital immediately after to confirm the surgical procedure with the other experts. The preparation for the surgery was done following that. The surgery would begin at one o¡¯clock in the afternoon, and if everything went smoothly, the entire process would take about five or six hours. That would give her just enough time to go pick up her kids. Roxanne¡¯s confidence caused her to dismiss the idea of asking Lysa to pick up the kids. Soon, it was one o¡¯clock, and the surgery began officially. Roxanne and the other medical experts worked diligently as they operated on the patient. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Everyone was going all out to make this case one of the forty percent of cases that ended in sess. Unfortunately, their patient truly was too old, and an unexpectedplication arose during the surgery. The medical experts had never dealt with anything like that before, so they panicked for a minute there. Roxanne was worried as well, but she forced herself to calm down and continued operating on her patient. Chapter 185 Chapter 185 Before she even knew it, the surgery had already gone on for over seven hours. By then, all the other kids in the kindergarten had already left, and only three kids remained. Este had moved out of their house, but Archie and Benny still treated her the same way they did when she was staying with them. The boys noticed that no one was there to pick Este up, so they took her to the sandbox. All three of them then built a sandcastle together and were having so much fun. When Lucian showed up, he saw the three kids crouching in the sandbox. Theirughter filled the small yground in the kindergarten. ¡°Essie,¡± said Lucian, who waited until all three had finished ying before he called out to his daughter. However, Este was reluctant to leave as she stared at her two friends, even though her dad had alre ady called out to her. Lucian frowned and turned his attention to Archie and Benny. ¡°Where¡®s your mom?¡± The boys didn¡®t like him, but they still stood up politely. Reluctant to answer Lucian¡®s questions, Archie pouted and turned his head to the side to stare at the tiny sandcastle they had built earlier. Benny, on the other hand, had an innocent look on his face. He answered, ¡°Mommy has an important surgery to perform today. She is probably dealing with something troublesome, and that is wh y she¡®s not here yet.¡± As soon as he finished speaking, he turned around and saw the look on Archie¡®s face. That prompted B enny to quickly add, ¡°But, uh, she should be here soon. Bye, Mr. Farwell. Bye, Essie.¡± Nodding, Lucian reached out to hold Este¡®s hand and leave but to no avail, Este had tilted her head down and backed away a few steps. At that moment, she was standing behind Archie and Be nny, shaking her head at her father. The boys realized that Este refused to leave, so they turned around to coo her. But no matter how hard they tried to convince her to go home, Este stubbornly shook her head. She N?velDrama.Org owns this text. even clutched onto their bags and insisted, ¡°Stay together.¡± Este had been rather harsh to Lucian ever since he took her away from Roxanne¡®s ce. The kid wo uld cry endlessly at every trivial matter, and that made Lucian raise his white g. At that point, he no lo nger dared to force her to do things she didn¡®t want to. Hence, he had no choice but to give in by noddi ng and saying, ¡°I¡®ll wait here with you boys.¡± With Lucian around, the kids couldn¡®t y as freely as they did before. All they did was sit quietly on the bench. After they waited for about an hour, the sky was turning dark. Yet, Roxanne was nowhere to be seen. Lucian frowned a little as he fished his phone out of his pocket to call Roxanne. He made several consecutive calls, but no one picked up. I guess she is still in the operating room. Lucian checked the time before shifting his attention to the kids. ¡°Are you hungry? I¡®ll get everyone som e food.¡± Hearing that, Este turned to look at both Archie and Benny with anticipation gleaming in her eyes. Archie, however, grabbed the strap of his backpack and shook his head with a scowl on his face. ¡°We¡®re going to wait for Mommy. Mr. Farwell, please go ahead and take Essie home.¡± When Benny heard what Archie said, he forced himself to ignore his hunger and nodded in agreement. ¡°I¡®m sure Essie is hungry, so please take her home quickly, Mr. Farwell.¡± The glint in Este¡®s eyes dimmed instantly. She stubbornly shook her head at her father and said, ¡°Not hungry.¡± I will stay with Archie and Benny if they¡®re not leaving. I want to keep thempany. Lucian couldn¡®t help feeling a headacheing. Even after he tried to talk some sense into the kids, all three of them remained adamant about staying put. .. Left with no choice, Lucian ordered Cayden, who was waiting right outside, to buy them some food and deliver it over. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell, but we¡®re not hungry,¡± lied Archie as he stubbornly turned Lucian¡®s offer down. Meanwhile, Benny caressed his tummy pitifully and echoed his elder brother¡®s words. At that point, Lucian could more or less guess the reason behind that hostility. The incident from before must¡®ve left a bad impression on the kids and made them hate me. Ah, they are so frustrating. ¡°I specially bought these for the two of you. If neither of you will eat it, then I have no choice but to thro w it away,¡± said Lucian, pretending to look for a trash can after that. The boys hesitated for a moment, but at the end of the day, they didn¡®t want the food to go to waste, so they epted it. Chapter 186 Chapter 186 Chapter 186 The sky had already turned dark when Roxanne left the operating room.She saw the night sky and suddenly realized that she was nce of the kindergarten, she saw from a distance that a guy with a hand in his pocket was standing besi de a bench. The kids were sitting together and eating their burgers with their heads down.Roxanne couldn¡®t help stopping short when she saw that.It seemed like Lucian could sense her gaze because he looked up and took a nce at her. After that, he shifted his attention to the kids a nd told them something All three of them then simultaneously turned to her. Each of them had a half¨C eaten burger in their hands when they ran to her.Feeling apologetic, Roxanne crouched down and stroked the kids¡® heads. ¡°I am so sorry for beingte.¡±Archie and Benny were used to her beingte, so they did n¡¯t mind and shook their heads when they heard what she said. They were actually worried about her. ¡° Mommy, have you been working all this time? Are you tired?¡±¡°Not at all,¡± replied Roxanne while grinnin g.Despite her words, her body was actually exhausted.If it weren¡®t for her kids, she wouldn¡®t even have the strength to lift her arm.Years ago, aplication urred when she gave birth to her kids, and she lost a lot of blood. As a result, she had been frail and weak.It was also why she would be exhausted every time she operated for an extended period and would need to rest a lot to recuperate.¡°Why is Essie¡­?¡± asked Roxanne a s she stared at Este in confusion.Lucian is already here to pick her up, so why hasn¡®t she gone home yet? Or¡­ did he stay out of the courtesy to take care of Archie and Benny?Conflicting emotions welled up in Roxanne when she came to that conclusionNo one knew when Lucian had made his way to them, but when he heard that question, he answered in an even tone, ¡°Essie refused to leave th em behind.¡± Roxanne couldn¡®t help being taken aback when she heard that. A self mocking thought ran past her mind immediately after.¡°I tried calling you earlier, but you didn¡®t pick u p,¡± said Lucian.Right then, Roxanne came back around. She stood up to look right into his eyes and forced a smile. ¡°I turned my phone off and didn¡¯t see your calls until I was out of the operating room. Thank you for taking care of Archie and Benny.¡±Lucian frowned a little when he realized that Roxanne was slightly pale. ¡°It¡®s only right for me to do that. After all, you took care of Essie for such a long time.¡±The two of them didn¡®t have much to say to each other, and Roxanne was truly exhausted, s o she exchanged some pleasantries with him before putting some distance between them and nodding. ¡°Okay, I¡®ll take Archie and Benny home now.¡±The two boys then politely bid goodbye to Lucian.Este, however, kept staring at R oxanne with her big, round eyes. The little girl didn¡®t want to part with her just like that.When she saw the look on Este¡®s face, Roxanne¡®s heart melted, and she crouched down to stroke Este¡®s hea d. ¡°Be good, Essie, and go home with your daddy. Archie and Benny will y with you again tomorrow, okay?¡±Only then did Este nod obediently and reply in her baby voice, ¡°Bye¨C Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. bye, Ms. Jarvis.¡±¡°See you tomorrow,¡± replied Roxanne, whose heart softened even morewhen she hear d Este¡®s adorable voice.After saying that, Roxanne held her boys¡® hands and left.Lucian¡®s gaze was i ndecipherable when he watched all three of them leave.That was the first time they interacted again aft er he took Este home.That woman is treating me the way she did when we first met. If I hadn¡®t helped t ake care of the two boys, she likely wouldn¡®t have bothered to talk to me at all.Este waited for a while, but her father just stood there without budging, so she swung his arm in confusion.Only then did Lucian return to his sens es. He picked his daughter up and walked toward the exit. Chapter 187 Chapter 187 Back at the mansion, Lysa had been waiting for them to return and have dinner for quite some time. When she saw everyone entering the house, she hurried to them and asked, ¡°What happened? Why is everyone home sote?¡± Roxanne forced a smile and answered, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. I had to work overtime. Please babysit the kids. I¡¯m a little tired, so I think I¡¯ll go to bed now.¡± When Lysa saw how pale and tired Roxanne looked, she agreed to babysit right away. Roxanne cooed her kids a little, then retired to her own room. When Lysa finished making breakfast the next morning, she realized that Roxanne was still nowhere to be seen. The kids, on the other hand, had already made their way downstairs. They even dressed themselves up. ¡°You boys eat away. I¡¯ll go check on your mother,¡± said Lysa. She was a little worried when she recalled how tired Roxanne looked the previous night. However, the kids stopped her in her tracks when they heard what she said. ¡°There is no need for that. Mommy is always tired after she has performed surgery. Let her sleep in. Wake her up only if she is still asleep in the afternoon.¡±Lysa hesitated for a moment, but she eventually agreed to do as they said. She made sure the boys had their breakfast, then took them to the kindergarten. It was ratherte by the time she got home, but Roxanne was still sleeping. Nevertheless, Lysa decided that she wouldn¡¯t disturb Roxanne. She simply made some oatmeal so that thetter had something to eat when she woke up. Roxanne sprung up from her bed immediately after she woke up and saw the time. N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. It¡¯s eleven o¡¯clock, and the kids arete! She was about to kick her nket off when she recalled that she had already hired a housekeeper. The kids are probably at school already. Strangely, Roxanne felt drained after she rxed. She rested on her bed for a while before someone knocked on her door. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, are you up?¡± asked Lysa. She had waited for an entire morning and was quick to check on Roxanne when afternoon came around. Roxanne replied, ¡°Yeah, I¡¯m up. I¡¯ll be right out.¡± She didn¡¯t realize that her voice had be hoarse until she finished speaking. Do I have a fever? Nevertheless, Roxanne didn¡¯t pay much attention to it. She got out of bed and freshened up before going downstairs to have some food. However, her fatigue became more apparent when she walked. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, why is your face all red?¡± asked Lysa in a surprised tone as she served Roxanne the bowl of oatmeal she had prepared. Roxanne frowned and spoke a beatter, ¡°I think I might have a fever. Please find some medicine for me.¡± In a panic, Lysa quickly searched the medical kit and gave Roxanne some pills. Although she didn¡¯t have any appetite, she forced herself to have some food before she returned to her room to rest. Roxanne hadn¡¯t expected herself to fall sick so easily. I only performed one surgery. I can¡¯t believe that is all it takes to wear me out so much that I¡¯ve fallen ill. When did I be so weak? Maybe because she had a fever, her mind became fuzzy soon after. A flurry of thoughts shed past her mind, and she fell asleep. That night, Lysa noticed that Roxanne was still resting and guessed that thetter hadn¡¯t recovered. Hence, she went to the kindergarten to pick the boys up. When she reached the ce, she saw Este hanging out around the boys. Disappointment shed past Este¡¯s eyes when she saw Lysa there. Archie and Benny knew that Este missed their mommy and worried that she would refuse to go home like she did the day before. Hence, one of them took the initiative to ask, ¡°Where is Mommy?¡± Lysa was worried about Roxanne, who was all alone at home at the time. Hearing that question brought a worried frown to Lysa¡¯s brows. ¡°Ms. Jarvis is sick and is resting at home. Let¡¯s hurry back.¡± Both boys became anxious when they heard that. They had assumed their mommy would recover soon after resting for a bit, just like usual. They didn¡¯t expect her to be so tired that she fell ill. Chapter 188 Chapter 188 Este refused to go home with him because she wanted to see Roxanne. That was why Lucian had no choice but to wait at a corner. Never had he expected to hear such news. Este gave Lucian an anxious look and grabbed his sleeve. ¡°Ms. Jarvis-¡± Lucian knew what his daughter wanted to ask, so he helped her finish her question. ¡°What happened to Ms. Jarvis?¡± Lysa, who knew nothing about their story, told them what happened to Roxanne, ¡°Ms. Jarvis hadn¡¯t been feeling well when she got homest night. I thought she was exhausted, but when I checked on her at noon, she had alreadye down with a fever. I have to get back to take care of her now.¡± She then held the boys¡¯ hands and left. Archie and Benny left in haste and did not even bid Este goodbye.Este¡¯s eyes started turning red. She could not help but mumble in a soft voice, ¡°Ms. Jarvis-¡± Lucian looked at the little girl and hesitated for a moment. He then asked his driver to follow Lysa¡¯s car so that they could visit Roxanne. The boys were so worried about their mother that they ran straight into her room. They did not even say anything when Lucian came into the house. Lysa did not stop Lucian and Este from going upstairs either. Roxanne was woken up by the boys when they opened the door. She opened her eyes and saw two pairs of doe eyes staring at her. ¡°Mommy, how are you? You must be feeling very ufortable.¡± Archie touched her forehead and was taken aback by the heat. Roxanne responded with aforting smile. ¡°It¡¯s just fever. It¡¯ll go away once I have enough sleep.¡± Suddenly, she heard a little girl¡¯s voice. ¡°Ms. Jarvis-¡± Roxanne froze for a bit. She tilted her head aside and saw Este fussing with the edge of the bedsheet and gave Roxanne a worried look. Essie? Why is she here? Instinctively, Roxanne looked in the door¡¯s direction and saw a slender figure standing by the entrance. After meeting her gaze, the man frowned and entered the room. ¡°High fever?¡± With mixed emotions surging in her heart, Roxanne looked away and said calmly, ¡°It¡¯s not a big problem. I¡¯m a doctor, so I know my body well. I¡¯ll get better once I get enough sleep.¡± Lysa could not help but refute, ¡°You¡¯ve been sleeping for almost twenty four hours, but you still didn¡¯t get better. Why don¡¯t you go to the hospital?¡± The man narrowed his eyes suspiciously. Roxanne clenched her fists for a second, but she was so dizzy that she could not think of a way to say no to the suggestion. She knew she had a high fever. In fact, she waited for Lysa toe home so they could go to the hospital together. Never did she expect Lucian to be there. Archie and Benny, too, were worried about their mother. ¡°Mommy, we¡¯ll go to the hospital with you. You¡¯ll feel better once the doctor gives you a jab. You¡¯d always give us a jab whenever we have a fever.¡± The boys then grabbed her hands and helped her sit up. Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. Este was so exasperated that her eyes turned red. Seeing how anxious the kids were, Roxanne had no choice but to listen to them. She nodded and looked at Lysa. ¡°Could youe with me to the hospital?¡± The two boys insisted on apanying her, but Roxanne turned them down with a frown. ¡°You boys just stay home and rest, okay? I¡¯ll be back very soon.¡± She did not want her children to go out at this hour. Before Lysa could say yes, Lucian¡¯s deep voice emerged from the back. ¡°I¡¯ll take you. Lysa can stay home and take care of the kids.¡± Chapter 189 Chapter 189 Chapter 189Mission To Remarry Chapter 189Upon hearing his suggestion, Roxanne was a little apprehensive.She wanted to stay away from Lucian, but she had to admit that was the best solution..A few secondster, Roxanne nodded. ¡°Thanks.¡± Lucian nodded.After asking Archie and Benny to move aside, she got up from her bed.But before she could stand still, her head started spinning. She staggered and pressed her hand on the bed to steady herself.¡°Let me help you.¡± Lysa immediately walked toward her to grab her arm.Roxanne¡¯s vision darkened for a few seconds. When her vision recovered a few secondster, she responded with a weak nod.§£§¡§³ §©§¡§ª§¯§´§¦§²§¦§³§µ§¦§´Angelina Jolie¡¯s Shocking Health Struggles Over The Years12 Facts About Venezia Cruz: She Did Get Noticed The three little children, too, got up to her and walked by her side.Roxanne was so frail that she had to lean on Lysa when she walked. Even Lysa had difficulty supporting her.Upon noticing that, the three children wanted to help. Before they could extend their hands, a towering figure stood in their way.Lucian stood in front of Lysa and frowned. ¡°Let me. You take care of the kids.¡±Before Roxanne could react, Lucian wrapped his hands around her waist and carried her in his arms.At that time, Roxanne was still in a daze as she had brain fog. By the time she came to her senses, she put up a struggle but to no avail. The man was clearly in control of the situation.Roxanne had no choice but to stop struggling. She knitted her brows and expressed her dismay, ¡°Put me down. I can walk.¡±Her request fell on deaf ears. Lucian turned to Lysa and said, ¡°Please whip up something for the kids. They haven¡¯t eaten anything so far. Put them to bed first if wee backte.¡±Lysa agreed But the three children were not pleased with the arrangement. They followed the adults to the car and tried to crawl into the passenger¡¯s seats.After putting Roxanne into the car, Lucian turned around, grabbed the little ones, and removed them from the car.Archie, Benny, and Este sulked while looking at the woman in the car.¡°She¡¯ll be worried if you insist on following, and that¡¯s not good for her recovery. She¡¯ll be relieved to know that all of you stayed home, ate your dinner, and turned in early,¡± Lucian exined patiently.The three little ones cast a doubtful look at Roxanne.Roxanne put on a faint smile and said, N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ¡°Yes. Sleep early, and don¡¯t wait for us.¡±The children had no choice but to nod.Lucian got into the car, sat beside Roxanne, and closed the door, blocking the children¡¯s view of the car¡¯s interior. He then instructed the driver to rush to the hospital.After sending them off, the children reluctantly returned to the mansion with Lysa.Roxanne kept looking at the children from the rear-view mirror and was relieved when they all headed back to the house.The warm and cozy atmosphere in the car made Roxanne want to fall asleep, but when she thought of the man sitting next to her, she forced herself to stay awake.Due to her fever, despite trying her best to stay awake by digging her nails into her palms, she soon fell into a deep slumber.¡°How do you feel?¡± Lucian expressed his concern as they were caught in a traffic snarl.When he did not get a reply, he looked to the side and noticed the woman was sound asleep.Overwhelmed byplicated emotions, Lucian looked away and ordered the driver, ¡°Drive slower.¡±Soon, he felt a weight on his shoulder.Lucian turned around and looked at the side of the woman¡¯s sleeping face with a subtle gentleness in his eyes. Chapter 190 Chapter 190 Chapter 190Roxanne slept throughout the journey.She did not wake up even when they arrived at the hospital.Lucian hesitated for a moment and decided not to wake Roxanne up. After instructing the driver to open the door, he covered the woman with his coat and carried her out of the car.The emergency department was the only ce with people on duty since they arrivedte at night. After registering at the counter, he carried Roxanne and headed to the department.Roxanne woke up when they entered the department. It took her a few seconds to realize she was in Lucian¡¯s arms. The doctor was looking at them from the opposite side.§£§¡§³ §©§¡§ª§¯§´§¦§²§¦§³§µ§¦§´Angelina Jolie¡¯s Shocking Health Struggles Over The Years12 Facts About Venezia Cruz: She Did Get Noticed Roxanne¡¯s face immediately turned brick-red, but no one could tell she was blushing because the fever had already caused her face to look flushed.¡°Put me down!¡± She nudged the man in N?velDrama.Org owns this text. embarrassment.Lucian, who was listening to the doctor exin Roxanne¡¯s health condition, realized she had woken up when he heard her voice. He nced at the woman but did not release her.Roxanne, who also heard the doctor¡¯s voice, fell silent and buried herself in his coat to avoid further embarrassment.The man¡¯s chest was so warm that Roxanne conked out again.She could vaguely hear the doctor¡¯s voice and Lucian¡¯s questions. He doesn¡¯t need to ask those questions in detail. I¡¯m aware of the things the doctor said.After the consultation, the man woke her up.Lucian ced her on the bed and said, ¡°You need to be on a drip, so you¡¯llneed to stay in the hospital for a night.¡± Roxanne, who was still in a daze, nodded. She waited for the nurse to put her on a drip before sleeping like a log again.Lucian sat by the bed, looked at the woman¡¯s palm-sized face, and his expression dimmed slightly. I haven¡¯t seen her for six years, and she seems to have lost quite some weight. She looks even frailer now that she¡¯s ill.Despite carrying Roxanne in his arms and walking quite a bit, Lucian did not feel exhausted as she was as light as a feather. Did she even take good care of herself in thest six years? She even had to raise two kids all by herselfRoxanne woke up in the middle of the night and opened her eyes. She still felt a little dizzy and was a little lost. Everything that had happened before this was like a dream to her. Why is he treating me so well when he¡¯s about to marry another woman? While she was still in a groggy state, she heard someone breathing in the ward.Roxanne looked to the side and saw Lucian leaning on a chair. The chair was too tiny for his tall and muscr physique. Despite not being in afortable position, he could still sleep without a stir.She looked up at the IV drip bag and noticed it was reced with a new one.Roxanne could not help but freeze for a moment. So it wasn¡¯t a dream. Lucian must be exhausted after taking care of me for the whole night.At that point, Roxanne was inundated by mixed feelings.She took a nce at the clock and realized it was midnight. Can¡¯t believe I¡¯ve slept for so many hours. I wonder if the kids have slept well too.Roxanne took out her phone but hesitated when she was to text Lysa. I might disturb her sleep if I were to text her at this hour.She thought about it for a moment and put aside her phone.After spending a few hours resting in the hospital, Roxanne felt a lot better.She touched her forehead and felt her fever had also subsided. Chapter 191 Chapter 191 Chapter 191 Lucian was a light sleeper. When he heard the series of soft rustling sounds, he opened his eyes and saw that the patient on the bed had already woken up.She ced her palm on her forehead, seemingly checking her own temperature.¡°How are you feeling? Do you still have a high fever?¡± Lucian got up and walked toward the bed.Roxanne froze in her movements before slowly propping herself up. In a courteous tone, she said, ¡°I feel much better now. Thank you, and sorry for the trouble caused tonight.¡± Seeing how she was acting distant from him, Lucian¡¯s face fell. However, he quickly hid his displeasure upon recalling that she was unwell. ¡°You didn¡¯t have dinner just now. Are you hungry?¡± he asked in a caring tone.As soon as he brought that up, Roxanne realized that she was starving.Apart from the few bites she had at lunch, she practically ate nothing the entire day due to a low appetite caused by her fever.Then again, she was reluctant to owe him any more favors.Just when she was about to say no to him, her empty stomach growled.In an instant, Roxanne¡¯s cheeks flushed. She kept a calmposure and replied, ¡°I don¡¯t feel like eating anything thiste.¡±Lucian furrowed his brows and left the ward at once.Upon hearing the door shut behind her, Roxanne turned, only to realize that the man had disappeared.Ten minutester, he returned with a piping hot bowl of oatmeal.¡°There isn¡¯t much option at this hour. I can only make you this using the microwave at the hospital. Hope you don¡¯t mind it.¡±Roxanne was taken aback by his action.By the time she snapped back to her senses, he had already adjusted her bed and ced the oatineal in front of her.¡°Thank you.¡± She got up and took a mouthful of it.Considering all that he has done for me, it would be very impolite of me to decline him once more Lucian waited till she started eating before returning to his seat. ¡°The doctor advised you to be hospitalized for further observation, just in case your condition worsens. You should go for another check-up tomorrow morning. If all is well, then you can be discharged,¡± he uttered in a low voiceRoxanne nced at him and nodded. ¡°I feel okay now. Thank you for taking care of me tonight. It¡¯s getting prettyte, so you¡¯d better go home and take a rest since you have to work tomorrow.¡±He was chagrined to hear that she was not so subtly chasing him away. ¡°I¡¯m not so irresponsible to leave you here alone overnight,¡± he snapped coldly.Frowning, Roxanne insisted, ¡°I¡¯m fine, and I don¡¯t need Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. special care anymore. It¡¯s unnecessary for you to stay back. You can¡¯t get a good rest here, anyway.¡±She did not want to owe him anything more than she already did.Her voice sounded awkwardly loud in the quiet hospital ward at midnight.Dead silence filled the room upon her words.However, the man did not seem to have any intention of leaving.She dug her fingernails into her palms as she exined in a slightly friendlier tone of voice, ¡°We aren¡¯t in any rtionship. Hence, there¡¯s no reason for you to take special care of me, Mr. Farwell. I actually feel burdened when you do that.¡±Upon saying so, she gave the man sitting opposite her a solemn look.Never in a million years would Lucian have thought that caring for her would create a rift between them. He was utterly displeased.Yet, there was no way he could just leave the woman alone.After moments of pin-drop silence, he managed to suppress his anger. ¡°Don¡¯t you misunderstand. I just think that Essie will be mad at me if she finds out that I left you here and went back on my own,¡± he said indifferently.In other words, he was implying that she was not the reason why he insisted on staying.Though Roxanne was a little apprehensive, she could not refute him. Left with no choice, she acquiesced to his decision.However, none of them had anything to say to each other, resulting in a very awkward situation in the ward. Chapter 192 Chapter 192 Chapter 192 When Roxanne finished eating her oatmeal, Lucian automatically adjusted her bed for her and put the bowl away.away.For a long time, both of them just stared at each other without exchanging a word. The silence between them spoke volumes.Roxanne had rested for the whole day, so it was difficult for her to fall asleep again. Even so, she shut her eyes, not wanting to interact with Lucian. He, on the other hand, was exhausted after a long day. Sleepiness gradually descended upon him, and in the blink of an eye, he dozed off.Minutester, soft rhythmic breathing was the only sound that could be heard in the ward.Roxanne slowly opened her eyes and cast a look in his direction.His jacket had been ced over her nket, leaving him with only a thin shirt on. He folded his arms across his chest, seemingly having a rough time resting.Roxanne hesitated for a bit before she decided to get up and approach him quietly. Grabbing his jacket from the bed, she gently draped it over him.A turmoil of emotions crept up on her when she saw his handsome face close up.It¡¯s still the same gorgeous face from six years ago, but I¡¯m no longer the infatuated girl I was back then. I don¡¯t know how he sees me now, and neither do I want to find out about it. I just want to lead a peaceful life with my two little munchkins,Suddenly. Roxanne felt a sense of relief rise within her. She strode across the room to switch off the lights, then went back to bed.As soon as she closed her eyes, a million thoughts ran past her head, giving her a hard time falling asleep.Ironically, the soft sounds from the bed earlier had awakened Lucian, who was a light sleeper. When he heard her footstepsing toward him, he chose to keep his eyes shut and pretended to be asleep.A momentter, she stopped in front of him, and he was able to pick up the faint fragrance that lingered upon her body.Owing to his proximity, the scent made his heart skip a beat, and his breathing became uneven. Somehow, he had a feeling that her gaze was fixated on him. Hence, he could only continue with his act until he heard noisesing from the bed.¡¯ He slowly opened his bleary cyes to look at her, and his gaze never left the bed for the rest of the night.¡°That nighi, none of them had a good rest.The next morning, Roxanne was woken up by a ruckus outside of the ward.¡°The little ones were so worried about Ms. Jarvis. They have been asking to Mommy? Is she still sleeping?¡±¡°Yes. You should go inter.¡± Lucian¡¯s voice sounded hoarse.He had not gotten much rest. By the time he dozed off, the children had already barged into the ward, asking to see Roxanne. Seeing that she was sleeping soundly, he brought them all outside and shut the door behind him.Archie noticed how haggard Lucian was, so even though he was frowning, he obliged obediently.Meanwhile, Benny was peering through the small crack left by the closed door in hopes that he could get a glimpse of Roxanne, but to no avail. With that, he sulked.Lysa was holding Este, who Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. was equally worried about the beautiful Roxanne. Her big eyes kept staring at the door as if it would open for her if she continued doing so.Anyhow, the children stood outside and waited in the hallway quietly when their father reminded them again that Roxanne was still sleeping.As a result, peace was restored in the hospital.A warm and fuzzy feeling crept up on Roxanne when she realized how worried the children were. She was utterly touched by their concern and wanted to open the door to wee them.As soon as she sat herself up on the bed, she locked gazes with the man through the small window on the door.Her heart thumped uncontrobly when their eyes met.Right when she was still debating how to respond to him, the man averted his gaze. Turning to the kids, he announced, ¡°You may enter now.¡±Afterward, he opened the door for them.The little ones all had a twinkle in their eyes when they saw Roxanne sitting on the bed. Without a second thought, all of them dashed toward her. Chapter 193 Chapter 193 Chapter 193 ¡°How are you feeling, Mommy? Are you still down with a fever?¡± Archie and Benny ran to the bed at once, unable to hide their worry from their faces.Roxanne chuckled as she shook her head. ¡°No. I feel much better now.¡±The two boys were not convinced. They stretched out their hands, wanting to check her forehead for themselves.Seeing so, Roxanne bent down and let them touch her forehead. Then, she caught sight of the small figure standing behind Archie and Benny. With tears in her eyes, the little girl was biting her lip, concern written all over her face.She was rather timid whenpared to the two boys.Roxanne¡®s heart melted when she saw that. She smiled at Este and asked, ¡°Essie, do you want to confirm if I¡®m okay?¡±Este stiffened for a second before nodding her head vigorously. The next moment, she let go of Lysa¡®s hand and zoomed toward Roxanne.The woman had her body bent over as she grabbed Este¡®s outstretched hand and put it on her forehead.Shortly after, Este retracted her hand before finally breaking out into a smile.¡°You were all scared, weren¡®t you? I¡®m sorry for making all of you worried about me.¡± Roxanne patted each of them lovingly as she recalled their panic¨Cstricken faces upon seeing how she was rushed to the hospital yesterday.Benny nodded his head vigorously. ¡°Archie and I will be obedient boys from now on. Mommy, please don¡®t overwork yourself, okay?¡±With a sullen expression, Archie said nothing. Yet, one could tell that he concurred with his brother on this matter.Roxanne chuckled before replying, ¡°Sure, I¡®ll take good care of myself.¡±Lysa ced a thermal lunch box on the bedside table and said, ¡°Have you had breakfast? I brought some for you both. Hurry up and eat it while it¡®s still hot.¡±Then, she proceeded to take out two bowls to serve them soup and some side dishes.In response, Roxanne nodded. ¡°Thank you so much.¡± Seeing that Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Lysa had already prepared the food for him, Lucian could not bring himself to decline her kind gesture even though he had no appetite to eat.Simultaneously, the two of them reached for the bowls, which had been ced side by side. Their fingers then identally brushed against each other.Roxanne froze, and she subconsciously looked up at the man, who was coincidentally gazing in her direction too.Her heart thumped rapidly as they locked eyes with each other. Instantly, she snapped back to her senses and quickly repressed her feelings. She then picked up her bowl as though nothing had happened.¡°Mr. Farwell, thanks for spending a night here to take care of Ms. Jarvis.¡± Lysa broke the silence.¡°I¡®m happy to do that,¡± Lucian said with a nod.He took a quick nce at Roxanne before adding, ¡°After all, Essie loves her so much, and she has been so wonderful to her. I should do what I can to return the favor to Ms. Jarvis.¡°He tried to justify his actions again, stating that he only did it for Este.Roxanne had heard simr words justst night, so she did not show any reaction when he spoke this time.Conversely, Lysa was taken aback.Their interaction with each otherst night suggested positive progress. I thought that¡­Suspecting that she had interpreted the situation wrongly, Lysa responded wryly, ¡°Oh, I see¡­¡±When Archie learned that Lucian had stayed by Roxanne¡®s side the entire night, he pursed his lips, turned around to look at the man, and inclined his head. ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell, for taking care of my mommy,¡± he uttered in a rather formal manner.He shared the same thoughts as his mother. Since this guy has disappointed Mommy, we should keep our distance from him. However, he did help Mommy a lot this time, so I must thank him in principle.Benny followed suit and gave the man a courteous bob of his head.Lucian¡®s forehead creased in response to the boys¡® distant attitude. He simply nodded to acknowledge them. Chapter 194 Chapter 194 Chapter 194 After breakfast. Roxanne thought that the time was still early, so she could possibly make it to the research institute in time.¡°My fever has subsided. Lysa, could you please arrange for my discharge? I need to get some work done.¡±Her work progress at the research institute had been impacted due to the surgery she did for LarryTherefore, Roxanne did not want to create a backlog of work and fall behind even further. Lysa hesitated. ¡°Ms. Jarvis, I think you should stay and observe your condition for one more day. I know how swamped with work you¡®ve been recently. You didn¡®t fall sick yesterday for no apparent reason. It¡®s because of fatigue! Now that your temperature is kept at bay, you can¡®t wait to bury yourself in work again. I¡®m really afraid that your body can¡®t cope with it and will copse for the second time.¡±Though Lysa had not been serving Roxanne for a long time, she had witnessed enough of how thetter overworked herself day in and day out.One would easily assume that Roxanne had superpowers if she had not fallen ill yesterday. She never once grumbled that she was tired norined about her hectic routine of juggling a career and raising her children. IThe more time Lysa spent with the family, the more she felt sorry for the single mother of two.She treated Roxanne like her own daughter, and it broke her heart to see the younger woman fall sick.¡°It¡®s okay. I¡®m used to it already. Moreover, yesterday was just a little ident.¡± Roxanne removed the nket and insisted on getting off the bed.The expression of the man standing not too far away from her turned grim when he heard that.He recalled the contents of her amazing resume. How did she attain all those achievements within six short years? What kind of life did she lead when she was abroad? What has she gone through to get to where she is today?Lysa was still very concerned. She had not been present when the doctor gave his diagnosis, so she was clueless about Roxanne¡®s actual condition. While Lysa was still debating what to do, Roxanne had already gotten up from the bed. Fretting, the former hurriedly turned to Lucian and gave him a pleading look, hoping that he would offer some help in persuading Roxanne to stay.Somehow, she just felt that Roxanne would listen to him.Lucian¡®s frown became more pronounced as he strode toward the bed and stared at the stubborn woman. ¡°The doctor said that you must go through a check¨Cup before he will approve your discharge.¡±With that said, he nced at Lysa and instructed, ¡°Please get the doctor here.¡±Finally, Lysa heaved a sigh of relief and did as he had requested.Roxanne¡®s brow snapped together disapprovingly. ¡°This is really unnecessary. I know myself, and I know my body well.¡±As a doctor, she was well aware of her own body¡®s condition.It was just a fever. I have recovered, and I can definitely be discharged.Lucian retorted, ¡°If you did, why would you have copsed at home and gotten so weak that Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. you couldn¡®t even get down from your bed?¡±Roxanne was rendered speechless at hiseback.Upon hearing Lucian¡®s words, Archie and Benny chimed in, ¡°Mommy, let¡®s get the doctor to perform a check¨C up thoroughly.¡±Roxanne could not bear to see her boys getting all anxious because of her. Atst, she swallowed her rejection and obliged.Soon, Lysa returned to the ward with the doctor.After a series of examinations, the doctor scanned the group and located the man who had admitted Roxanne to the hospital. ¡°There appears to be nothing wrong with her, so the patient can be discharged. However, she must pay attention to her health and get sufficient rest from now on. Remember, health is wealth.¡±Lucian nodded. Then, he cast a look at Roxanne.After meeting his gaze, Roxanne felt somewhat guilty and lowered her eyes. ¡°Thanks, doctor. I¡®ll take note of this,¡± she muttered.With that, the doctor listed a few other usual reminders and left the room.Upon confirming that all was well with Roxanne, Lysa was put at ease and went ahead to settle the discharge procedures. Chapter 195 Chapter 195 Chapter 195 It was not even eight o¡®clock when they came out of the hospital.Roxanne stretched her stiff bodyzily. She was so d to be breathing some fresh air again after being confined to bed for one day and two nights.Archie and Benny trailed closely behind her just in case anything else N?velDrama.Org owns this text. happened to their mother.¡°Ms. Jarvis, why don¡®t you head home first to get some rest? Maybe just take the morning off?¡± Lysa tried her utmost to convince Roxanne not to dive into work right away. Thetter grinned and assured her, ¡°I¡®m perfectly fine, so don¡®t worry about me. After the surgery I did the day before yesterday, I rushed to the kindergarten in my sweaty clothes because I didn¡®t have the time to get changed. Most likely, I caught a cold then, which developed into a fever. I promise to be more careful next time.¡±Subsequently, she bent down and tousled the children¡®s hair. ¡°I need to finish up my work at the research institute. Can Ms. Lane take you to your kindergarten today? I¡®ll inform Ms. Ward that you¡®ll bete.¡±The children looked at her with concern.If possible, they wished that Roxanne could take a break and rest.However, they were well aware that their mother was a workaholic who would not dy her work.They struggled with it a little before nodding reluctantly.Roxanne turned to Lysa and said, ¡°I¡®ll leave you to bring the kids to the kindergarten, but I¡®ll inform Ms. Ward ordingly.¡±Lysa agreed.Then, Roxanne approached Lucian, who was already waiting by the main entrance. ¡°I just wanted to thank you forst night. I took care of Essiest time, and with you returning the favor now, we no longer owe each other anything,¡± she said in a calm manner.Despite the unfazed look on his face, his emotions were anything but that.Momentster, he broke the silence with aconic reply. ¡°Sure.¡± His thoughts were unfathomable.Right when Roxanne was about to turn and leave, a little hand grabbed her by the hem of her dress. ¡°Ms. Jarvis!¡± Este could notprehend the words Roxanne said to Lucian. She waspletely baffled about who owed what and to whom. It all sounded like a strange, foreignnguage to her, so she hurried over and grabbed Roxanne¡®s dress.The woman halted her steps and turned to the little girl. ¡°What¡®s wrong, Essie?¡±¡°I like Ms. Jarvis.¡± Tears glistened in Este¡®s eyes as she pouted unhappily, feeling rather aggrievedHer sad face caused Roxanne¡®s heart to soften. She quickly gave the little girl a tight hug andforted her, ¡°I like you too, Essie. Thanks for still reluctant to part as she stared at Roxanne¡®s retreating back.Roxanne walked Lysa and the boys to the junction to hail a cab.Lysa had taken a cab to the hospital in the morning, whereas Roxanne had been driven there by Lucianst night. Hence, they were without their own transport.Unfortunately, they could not escape the madness of rush hour. Not one vacant cab came by even after they had waited for a while.While Roxanne was debating if she should trouble Colby to make a trip to the hospital and fetch her, Lucian¡®s voice rang out beside her.¡°It¡®s hard to get a cab at this hour. Let me drive all of you to where you need to be.¡±Roxanne was startled by his sudden appearance. I thought he has left already. Why is he still here?She turned around and was met by Este¡®s puppy dog eyes, seemingly waiting for her to ept the offer. It was then she understood.Although she had a soft spot for the little girl, she did not want to have anything to do with that man anymore. With a frown, she rejected him once more. ¡°It¡®s okay. I¡®ve troubled you enough recently, Mr. Farwell. I¡®m sure that you need to get to the office as soon as possible, so please go ahead, and don¡®t worry about us. We will manage on our own.¡±The instant she ended her sentence, she saw Lucian knit his brows, looking annoyed.Did I say anything that upset him? Puzzled, Roxanne dared not speak further. Chapter 196 Chapter 196 Chapter 196 While holding Este¡®s hand, Lucian stared at the woman, who had an indifferent expression on her face at a near distance away. In a slightly sarcastic voice, he retorted, ¡°Even if we¡®re strangers. vou don¡®t need to avoid me like the gue, Ms. Jarvis. I¡®m going to send Essie to the kindergarten anyway, and I¡®ll drive past your research institute from the kindergarten to Farwell Group. That¡®s the reason I offered to give you a ride. What¡®s your concern, Ms. Jarvis?¡±In other words, he was implying that Roxanne was overthinking things.Este wanted to be with Roxanne for a while longer, so she gazed at thetter pitifully upon hearing that, ¡°Ms. Jarvis.¡±Unbidden, Roxanne¡®s heart melted. Furthermore, she had no refutation to Lucian¡®s words.They merely had nothing to do with each other, so her repeated demurral of such innocuous things made her appear rather petty.At that thought, she relented and said to Lysa, ¡°You may go back first. I¡®ll take them to kindergarten.¡±Lysa murmured in acknowledgment and handed Archie and Benny to Roxanne.Archie and Benny were still prejudiced against Lucian, so they were a touch hesitant, knowing that they were riding with the man again.Este, on the other hand, had already dropped her father¡®s hand and went over to clutch Roxanne¡®s dress. It was clear that she wanted to sit with Roxanne.Patting her head, Roxanne ordered Archie and Benny, ¡°Get in.¡±Only after hearing that did they slowly climb into the car.Roxanne went in after them with Este in her arms, sitting in the back seat with Archie and Benny.Lucian closed the car door for them and slipped into the passenger seat.Then, the car started slowly and drove toward the kindergarten.Silence reigned in the car. Roxanne had nothing to say to Lucian, and the children were inexplicably quiet as well.Throughout the entire drive, the atmosphere was exceedingly depressing.As the car gradually drove away, camera shed relentlessly in the bushes in front of the hospital.It was almost nine o¡®clock when they arrived at the kindergarten. Roxanne alighted from the car and led the three children to the kindergarten gates.As they were reallyte then, the kindergarten gates were already closed.Roxanne gave Pippa a call to exin the situation briefly. Pippa then came out and Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. brought the three children into thepound.Watching as their figures disappeared from her line of sight, Roxanne turned back hesitantly.By the side of the road, Lucian¡®s car was still parked in the same spot silently, waiting for her.ording to Lucian¡®s remarks earlier, he would drive her somewhere near the research institute on his way to the office.However, without the children¡®s presence, she really didn¡¯t know how to remain in such a cramped space with the man alone.Anyhow, the research institute was very near to the kindergarten. Part of the reason she chose that particr kindergarten back then was because of its distance from the research institute, which made it convenient for her to drive her children to and fro.Even by foot, it would only take about half an hour.25While she was contemting whether or not she should just walk, the car window slowly rolled down, revealing the man¡®s impatient profile.Roxanne was promptly taken aback.¡°Aren¡®t you in a hurry to go to the research institute? Why are you still dawdling?¡± Lucian could guess her intentions, so he was in a foul mood. Consequently, his tone wasn¡¯t all that amicable. either.Upon hearing that, Roxanne pursed her lips. A momentter, she shed him a polite smile and stepped forward, saying, ¡°The research institute is just around the corner, so I¡®ll walk there.¡±Suppressing the chagrin within him, Lucian replied coolly, ¡°If Essie were to learn that I had you walk over, she¡®d throw a fit at me when she returns.¡±At that, Roxanne was startled.As long as neither of us speaks of it, how would she learn about it?Nheless, seeing as the man seemingly wouldn¡®t leave unless she got into the car, she still climbed into the back seat after a moment¡®s hesitation. Chapter 197 Chapter 197 Chapter 197 That afternoon, Aubree found her employees looking strangely at her when she was doing the rounds at the office.One of the female employees who are closer to her came over and teased, ¡°Ms. Pearson. Mr. Farwell is so nice to you that we¡®re all green with envy!¡±Aubree was inexorably stunned to hear that. In the next instant, she forced a casual smile and inquired airily, ¡°Really? How could you tell?¡±Following that, the smile on the f emale employee¡®s face grew all the more ingratiating. ¡°Everyone knows that Mr. Farwell took care of you at the hospital for the entire night. Yet, you still came to work on time today. Verily, you¡®re our role model!¡± Aubree¡®s expression stiffened slightly. ¡°What are you talking about?¡±Lucian took care of me at the hospital for the entire night? I¡®ve been perfectly fine these two days, so I hadn¡®t been t o the hospital.The female employee presumed that she was embarrassed, so she took out Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. her phone straight away and showed her a news report. ¡°Don¡®t be shy. It¡®s already in the news, so the e ntire world knows about it now.¡®JUOnly after saying that did she btedly remember to show some concern for her employer¡®s health. She she epishly asked, ¡°Oh yes, what happened to youst night? Weren¡®t you just fine in the afternoon? Why d id you suddenly go to the hospital at night?¡±Aubree merely cast a swift nce at the content on the pho ne screen. When she glimpsed the headline that read: Mr. Farwell apanied his fianc¨¦e to the hosp ital in the middle of the night and took care of her for the entire night, the puzzlement within her grew. At the empl oyee¡®s question, she fibbed, ¡°Oh, perhaps I ate something badst night. I¡®m fine now. Go back to work .¡±The female employee uttered a few more titudes in feigned concern before going back to her work station.Aubree returned to her office with a grim expression on her face. She immediately logged on to Twitter and searched for news rted to Lucian.As soon as she entered his name, a news report popped out. It read: Mr. Farwell apanies his fianc¨¦e to the hospital, proving their rtionship intimate. The other headlines that popped out underneath w ere pretty much simr.She proceeded to click on the first link, and thements had already exceeded a million.The most popr one among the news report was one posted by a renowned entertainment page in the industry.The news report read: Last night, Mr . Farwell personally drove his fianc¨¦e to the hospital and carried her in a bridal carry the entire way. Wh at an attentive boyfriend! At eight o¡®clock in the morning today, the two of them got into Mr. Farwell¡®s car, apanied by Mr. Farwell¡®sdaughter. His fianc¨¦e has a close rtionship with the li ttle girl, so it seems that wedding bells are near.Two photos were attached beneath it.The first photo ha d a night backdrop, and it was of Lucian carrying a woman in, striding toward the hospital entrance.Mea nwhile, the second photo was taken at the hospital entrance, with Lucian standing in front of the car whi le the woman climbed into the car with a child in her arms.Judging from the clothes and figure, the wom an in the two photos was obviously the same person.Merely looking at those two photos alone indeed g ave off the impression that the people in the photo were very close. In fact, the second photo seemed li ke a family of three.However, as the fianc¨¦e in question, Aubree had no knowledge of the entire matter. Not only had Lucian been avoiding her because of the news report previously, but the woman in the ph otos was also someone else entirely.She zoomed in on the photos and scrutinized them multiple times before a familiar figure slowly emerged in her mind.Argh! It¡®s that b*tch, Roxanne, again!After all, both t he woman¡®s profile and figure in the photos were aplete match with Roxanne.At that realization, A ubree¡®s expression abruptly darkened.The so¨Ccalled attentiveness shown by Lucian toward his fianc¨¦e was a misunderstanding from the beginning to the end! It wasn¡®t me whom he took care of the entire night, but that batch, Roxanne! Chapter 198 Chapter 198 Chapter 198 On the contrary the employees outside were convinced by that news report and gossiped Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. aboutAubree.¡°Previously, it was rumored that Mr. Farwell had been dragging his feet on fulfilling the marriage contract because he was unwilling to marry Ms. Pearson. Unexpectedly, he¡®s such an attentive person in secret.¡±¡°Mr. Farwell is so handsome and attentive! I, too, want such a boyfriend!¡± And so, simr sentiments rang out, one after another.When Aubree heard all that, her expression changed time and again. Her fingernails almost punctured her palms before she managed to suppress the zing wrath within her. ¡°Don¡®t talk about irrelevant things during working hours. Go about your work seriously!¡±After saying that, she swept a chilly gaze over the employees who were whispering among themselves earlier. Then, she spun on her heel and strode away without a backward nce.Truly, she couldn¡®t bring herself to stay there anymore. The more they talked about it, the greater her fury.Having left the office, she sped home directly.In the Pearson residence, Gina and Samuel sat in the living room. Both of them were stunned when they suddenly caught sight of their daughter stalking in huffily.¡°What¡®s wrong, Aubree? Who offended you at the office that,¡±Samuel thought it was a work issue and was about to give his daughter some advice when Aubree cut him off coldly. ¡°Work schmerk! All you talk about is work! If you¡®re so eager to have thepany do well, shouldn¡®t you be enthusiastic about marrying me into the Farwell family? But why do you have no idea about Lucian¡®s movements?¡±At her remark, Gina and Samuel¡®s hearts sank.Frowning, Gina questioned, ¡°It¡®s about Lucian? Didn¡®t Sonya already circte the news of you both getting married? What more is there to worry about?¡±No sooner had she said that than Aubree stalked over to them on her high heels and tossed her phone onto the couch. ¡°See for yourselves!¡±At that, the couple exchanged a look before picking up the phone in puzzlement. The instant they saw the content on the screen, both their faces darkened.They usually watched financial news reports and rarely paid attention to entertainment news. Therefore, it was the first time they saw the news of Lucian taking care of his fianc¨¦est night.Naturally, they knew that their daughter was at home the whole ofst night. Besides, they could also tell that the silhouette in the photo wasn¡®t of her at all.¡°Who was the woman in the photo?¡± Gina asked with a frown.Auhree¡®s chest heaved violently. She swept an icy gaze over the phone screen without saying a single word.Receiving no response after a long time, Gina pressed, ¡°Who was that woman? Was it that won with thest name Jarvis?¡±Other than Roxanne, she couldn¡®t think of anyone else.At the mention of Roxanne, Aubree replied through gritted teeth, ¡°It was that b*tch all right!¡±Never mind that she embarrassed me during the banquet back then, but my impending marriage with Lucian is already public knowledge now, yet she¡®s still clinging on to him shamelessly! Fortunately, the photos taken by the media are blurry, and not many can tell that it wasn¡®t me. Otherwise, I¡®d be aughingstock again!At that thought, her face flushed bright red with fury. Her hands hanging by her sides balled into fists, her nails embedding into her palms.Although Gina had long since harbored that guess, her expression still turned as dark as night when she heard that confirmation from her daughter.She thought that the marriage between the two families would be a guaranteed thing after news of Lucian and Aubree¡®s impending marriage leaked out.Never had she thought that things would still be variable.I never knew that Lucian and that woman are so close!¡°Don¡®t panic. Since everyone is saying that it was you, we¡®ll just feign ignorance,¡± Gina ordered, lifting her eyes after a long moment.Aubree naturally wouldn¡®t take the initiative to humiliate herself, so she agreed with a frosty expression. Chapter 199 Chapter 199 Chapter 199 Aubree, Gina, and Samuel discussed for a long time beforeing to a consensus to hav e Sonya resolve the matter.After all, Sonya was the most supportive of Aubree marrying into the Farwell family, and Lucian would still obey her to a certain degree.In consideration of that, Gina asked Sonya out right away.¡°You¡®re here as well, Aubree? What would you like to eat? It¡®s my treat today.¡± Sonya didn¡®t n otice anything amiss, taking her seat across from them with a smile. Aubree¡®s smile was a tad forced. ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Farwell, but I don¡®t have much appetite today.¡±After saying that, she despondently lowered her head and ced both hands on her kn ees, twining her fingers together.Seeing that, Sonya queried in concern, ¡°Are you not in a good mood? What happened?¡±However, Aubree merely pursed her lips and shook her head.At that, Sonya looked at Gina in bafflement.Gina¡®s smile was likewise forced. She took out her phone and logged on to Twitter. This time, she didn¡®t even have to search before she spotted the news report on th e trending list. She tapped on it right away and handed the phone to Sonya. ¡°Look at this headline.¡±Sonya¡®s heart clenched at both their expressions, but still, she reached out and took it.A smile bloomed on her face when she s aw the contents of the news report. ¡°I just knew that they make the perfect couple. Lucian will definitely treat Aubree all the better after getting married.¡±She vaguely found it strange when she again glimpsed the expressions of the two women across from her, but she couldn¡®t fathom the reason.Sure enough, she didn¡®t even realize that the woman in the photo wasn¡® t Aubree.Suppressing the chagrin within her, Gina nced at her daughter beside her beforementi ng with a conflicted expression, ¡°But¡­ Aubree wasn¡®t sick at allst night. She was at home the whole night.¡±The moment Sonya heard that, the smile on her face gradually faded.Aubree was at homest night. In other words, the woman in the photo wasn¡®t her. Then, who else could it be? She stared at the photo on the screen intently, a vague conjecture surfacing within her.It was uncer tain whether her presumption helped things along, but as she looked at the woman in the photo, the mo re she felt that it was Roxanne,Forcing a smile, Gina put on an understanding expression and ventured , ¡°I was afraid that there¡®s a misunderstanding, so I¡®d like to ask whether Lucian has a cousin or someth ing. Otherwise, this is really quite uneptable.¡±At that, Aubree finally lifted her head and waited for So nya¡®s answer with an aggrieved yet hopeful expression.At the sight of her prospective daughter¨Cin¨C son carrying another woman once more. She couldn¡®t bring herself to tell Aubree about the identity of the woman in the photo.A long whileter, she enunciated, ¡°No matter what, news of the wedding has been circted. Now that such a scandal has broken out, our family is indeed at fault. Don¡®t worry, Aubree. I¡®ll definitely talk to Lucian. Such a thing will never happen again in the fut ure!¡±Aubree¡®s gaze darkened slightly, but she nodded docilely.Sonya hadn¡®t the temerity to tarry there, so she got up and left with huge strides after taking her leave from them both.In the blink of an e ye, Aubree¡®s expression darkened entirely.After returning to the Pearson residence, she couldn¡®t help lo Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. oking at that news report again, especially thements.One read: Wow, Mr. Farwell¡®s bridal carry is p erfect! His fianc¨¦e is so lucky!Another read: While the resolution of the photo is horrible, I can still see t hat his fianc¨¦e¡®s aura and figure are incredible! As expected of Mr. Farwell¡®s woman!And so it went.Wit hout exception, they were alluding Lucian¡®s attentiveness toward the woman in the photo and how they make a perfect match.Seeing thements increasingly steadily, Aubree pressed the lock screen hard. The screen went ck at once.A momentter, a muffle d thud rang out in the room.The phone that was initially in Aubree¡®s handy on the floor, the screen cr acked. Chapter 200 Chapter 200 Chapter 200 Roxanne had just gotten off work when she heard the employees in the research institute discussing Lucian and Aubree¡®s marriage.¡°Mr. Farwell is so attentive! He actually took care of h is fianc¨¦e for the entire night. If it were my boyfriend, he would never do so.¡±¡°Most importantly, he¡®s han dsome and rich. His fianc¨¦e is beautiful as well. She resembles Dr. Jarvis quite a bit, so she must be a beauty!¡±Simr sentiments drifted into the a ir. Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. The group of researchers chatted as they walked. When they caught sight of Roxanne, they even bid h er farewell. ¡°See you tomorrow, Dr. Jarvis.¡±Smiling, Roxanne answered them one by one.However, she couldn¡®t help feeling puzzled upon hearing their discussion.Lucian took care of his fianc¨¦e the whole of Just when she found it strange, Colby came up to her from behind. ¡°Are you free tonight? How about h aving dinner together?¡±Abruptly snapping back to her senses, Roxanne shed him an apologetic smil e. ¡°I still need to rush over to the kindergarten to pick my kids up, so I¡®m afraid I¡®ll have to take a rain ch eck. Another day, perhaps. When the project concludes, I¡®ll treat everyone to a meal.¡±When Colby heard that, a glimmer of disappointment shed across his eyes, but he said nothing in the end. Talking about the project, he exited the research institute with her.As Roxanne didn¡®t drive to work, she could only hail a taxi by the roadside.A moment her head.¡°Where are you going? I¡®ll give you a ride. I don¡®t have anything to do tonight anyway, and it is n¡®t easy to get a taxi here.¡± Colby¡®s smile was warm and gentle.caswas warmRoxanne hesitated for a s econd. She nced at the time, only to see that it was indeed time Archie and Benny got off school. Th us, she didn¡®t decline but opened the car door and got into the car. No sooner had she settled into the car tha n she received a call from Harvey again, inquiring about the project¡®s progress.She exined things to him briefly and sin ctly.After hanging up the phone, she was just about to put her phone away when a push notificationpop ped out.The headline read: Mr. Farwell drove his fianc¨¦e to the hospital in the middle of the night and kept herpany the entire night.Seeing that, she inexorably recalled the situat ionst night and the employees¡® discussion earlier. Unbidden, she tapped open the link.Right after doing that, two blurry photos entered her line of sight.The instant she saw the photos, she froze. She didn¡®t even have to tap into them to tell that the woman in there was her.The first photo was taken when she was delirious with a hi gh fever, probably when Lucian carried her from the car to the hospital.Even when she woke up in the h ospital, she was still in the man¡®s arms.WdrmsHowever, she didn¡®t expect them to look so close in the p hoto.That aside, the man seemed to exert particr care when carrying her.The second photo was tak en when she got into the car with Este in her arms, while Lucian stood at the side.She had no idea w here the person who snapped the photo hid that neither of them perceived his presence.Besides, the p aparazzo who published that news evidently couldn¡®t distinguish between her and Aubree that such a misunderstanding transpired.Fortunately, the photos were exceedingly blurry, so much so that only those closest to her co uld tell that the woman in them was her.With her brows creased, Roxanne continued scrolling downwar d, only to see that thements below were all envious of her because of Lucian¡®s attentiveness toward her.Little did they know that she didn¡®t feel the least bit happy about it.After looking through them for a while and ascertaining that no one realized that the wo man in the photos wasn¡®t Aubree, she put away her phone with mixed emotions.Hoping to avoid unnecessary trouble, she didn¡®t n on rifying things.Instead, she merely found the entire misunderstanding rather amusing. Chapter 201 Chapter 201 Leaving The Country Chapter 201 Colby noticed that Roxanne was scrolling through her Twitter feed for a while and asked out of curiosity, ¡°Are there any hot topics that are worth keeping up with?¡±Hearing that, Roxanne gathered her thoughts and gave him a nonchnt smile. ¡°Nothing much. I¡®m just looking at some gossip.¡±Based on her current rtionship with Lucian, his news could only be taken as gossip.Colby wanted to strike up a casual conversation with her and continued asking, ¡°What is the gossip about? Did something happen to a celebrity recently?¡± Roxanne didn¡®t expect that he would probe further. She was momentarily stunned and answered vaguely, ¡°It¡®s not a celebrity. I forgot their names and just clicked on it casually.¡±Once she finished speaking, she then changed the topic as if nothing had happened and didn¡®t wait for Colby¡®s reply. ¡°The recent project is quite demanding, isn¡®t it? I¡®m already feeling tired from it.¡±Colby raised his brows subtly and went along with her change in topic.Roxanne got off work early that day, and as Colby sent her there, she reached the kindergarten just when they were done for the day. Archie and Benny scrambled out of the doors.At a nce, Roxanne immediately found Archie and Benny among the swarm of children and went over to bring them back.In the crowd, Este looked at her pitifully.When Roxanne met her gaze, she felt a pang of inexplicable guilt in her heart.However, when she recalled the news that she had just seen, she genuinely didn¡®t want to face Lucian again.Thus, she could only harden her heart and bend down to touch Este¡®s head, saying, ¡°Essie, can you wait for Daddy with Ms. Ward? I sull have some things to do, so I have to go back quickly.¡±Once she finished her words, she didn¡®t dare to look into Este¡®s eyes again. She hurriedly got up as if she was running away and brought Archie and Benny into Colby¡®s car.Archie and Benny sull had some impression of Colby, and they greeted him politely when they got into the car, ¡°Hello, Mr. Galloway.¡± Colby gave them a warm smile. He started the car and slowly headed toward Roxanne¡®s house.As Archie and Benny sat in the back row, they looked at Colby¡®s face through the rearview mirror and fell into deep thought.Previously, they thought that Lucian wasn¡®t bad and made Roxanne choose again.But now that Lucian was getting married to someone else, they thought that Colby wasn¡®t badtoo.On the other hand, when Cayden saw the news, he recognized the woman in the photo at first nce. After he saw the headlines, he immediately contacted Lucian.¡°Mr. Farwell, this news¡­ Do you want us to make a rification on it?¡±At that moment, Lucian was busy with his work. Hearing Cayden¡®s words, he looked up at the phone that N?velDrama.Org owns this text. Cayden passed to him.When he saw the contents on the screen, his brows furrowed slightly.He didn¡®t even realize that they had been photographed.In the picture, the two of them indeed seemed like a loving couple.When he saw thements below it, Lucian bit his lower lip.After not receiving a reply for some time, Cayden was puzzled and urged him, ¡°Mr. Farwell?¡±Lucian retracted his gaze from the phone and returned Cayden his phone indifferently. ¡°There¡®s no need for that. Just leave it.¡±If he made a rification, it would inevitably drag Roxanne into the mess.Recently, Roxanne had been wanting to cut all ties with him. Therefore, she certainly would not want to be involved in such a scandal.Hearing that, Cayden hesitated for a moment before agreeing to it. Seeing that Lucian had no other orders after waiting for a while, he quietly retreated from the otlice,When he heard the door to the oflice being gradually closed, Lucian paused his work, got up, and headed to the floor¨Cto¨Cceiling window.By then, Roxanne should have seen the news as well. However, he didn¡®t know how she would react to it. Chapter 202 Chapter 202 Leaving The Country Chapter 202 Seeing that it was almost the end of the day at the kindergarten, it was only then that Lucian gathered his thoughts and drove toward the kindergarten. Based on Este¡®s habit, he thought that he might even see Roxanne at the kindergarten,When he reached the kindergarten, he realized that he wasn¡®t thatte. However, Roxanne came earlier than him, and Archie and Benny had already left as well.Este had the habit of waiting with Archie and Benny for Lucian to fetch her. But now, she was all alone, holding onto Pippa¡®s hand timidly. ¡°You¡®re here, Mr. Farwell.¡± As Pippa knew Este¡®s situation, she was very cautious when dealing with Este.Seeing that Lucian finally came, Pippa heaved a sigh of relief inwardly. Lucian nodded and took Este over from Pippa.After they got into the car, Este was still in low spirits.Lucian frowned and couldn¡®t help but ask, ¡°Why are you alone today?¡±Este knew what he was trying to ask. She lowered her gaze, and there was a hint of grievance in her soft voice as she said, ¡°Ms. Jarvis came to pick Archie and Benny up.¡±When he heard that, Lucian¡®s gaze darkened slightly. Although Roxanne wanted to distance herself from him, he knew that she always had a soft spot for Este.When Este saw Roxanne, there would be no way that she would let thetter leave so easily as well. Since the situation was out of the norm that day, the only reason for it would be that Roxanne saw the news.So is she avoiding me because she saw the news? Thinking of that, Lucian felt an inexplicable sense of displeasure deep down. Throughout the entire journey, the atmosphere in the car was depressing:Once they reached home, they saw that there was someone sitting in the living room. At that, Lucian couldn¡®t help but furrow his brows slightly. ¡°Mom, what are you doing here?¡±After Sonya left the caf¨¦ in the afternoon, she initially wanted to find Lucian for a chat at his office. But after giving it some thought, she decided not to interrupt him at work and headed to the manor to wait for him toe back. She waited for an entire afternoon but never had she expected that he would have such an attitude the moment he stepped in.Sonya, who was initially displeased, became even more upset. ¡°What¡®s wrong? Do you mean that I can¡®te over? Do you wish that I don¡®t evere here again so that you can hide things from us and marry Roxanne?¡± Upon hearing that, Lucian¡®s expression turned dark, and he instructed Catalina, ¡°Bring Essie upstairs.¡±Noticing the tension building up between the two, Catalina didn¡®t dare to waste a single second and hurriedly brought Este upstairs. However, Este slowly trudged up the stairs. Just now, I think I heard Grandma mention Ms. Jarvis. Is Daddy going to marry Ms. Jarvis? But the news clearly said that Daddy was getting married to Ms. Pearson¡­ Este was slightly puzzled, but she felt that if Lucian was going to marry Roxanne, it would be a dreame true.Meanwhile, Lucian remained expressionless as he sat down on the single couch opposite Sonya. ¡°What¡®s with the news today? Aren¡®t you going to exin it to me?¡± Sonya questioned him coldly as she suppressed her anger.As soon as she said that, she saw Lucian looking up and meeting her gaze coldly. Their eyes met, and Sonya felt an oppressive aura surrounding her, causing her to restrain her rage.There was a hint of mockery in Lucian¡®s voice as he refuted, ¡°Did you not give me an exnation as to why the news of my marriage with Aubree got out as well? N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Besides, you didn¡®t even ask for my opinion.¡±He had always known that Sonya wanted him to be with Aubree. However, never would he expect that she would resort to such harsh means.After the news of i got out, Lucian knew that he could no longer remain silent.Sonya felt a lump in her throat, and her expression changed. Although she felt rather guilty deep down, she sull replied stubbomly, ¡°It has already been so many years since your marriage contract with Aubree. The two of you were going to be together sooner orter. I¡®m just announcing it for you ahead of ume. Besides, you humiliated Aubree at Old Mr. Queen¡®s birthday celebration previously, and we ought to make it up to her.¡° Chapter 203 Chapter 203 Chapter 203 Hearing Sonya¡®s words, Lucian pursed his lips mockingly. ¡°If I don¡®t intend on doing so, then how d o you n on settling Aubree?¡±A glint of shock shed across Sonya¡®s eyes before it soon turned into r age. ¡°What are you saying? How many years has Aubree waited for you? How much has she sacrificed for you? Now you¡¯re telling me that you don¡®t have such intentions? The marriage contract between our two families has been circting for so many year s. Have you ever thought of how others would view us if we call it off?¡±Lucian coldly questioned her bac k, ¡°Why do you think I haven¡®t provided any response to this throughout the six years? I already told yo N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. u that I don¡®t need you to interfere in this. I will settle itmyself!¡± In other words, he was certain that he never intended on fulfilling the marriage contract with Aubree.Ha ving understood his intentions, Sonya¡®s expression changed slightly.She had heard the Pearson family mention this before that Lucian personally told Aubree about his decision.Back then, she was full of dou bts and thought that with Lucian¡®s personality, he wouldn¡®t let the marriage contract exist for so long if he didn¡®t have the intentions of marrying Aubree.But now, she was personally hearing those w ords from Lucian.Sonya clenched the armrest of the couch tightly, her face turned dark. ¡°If you don¡®t n on fulfilling the marriage contrac t with Aubree, then what are you nning to do? Are you going to marry Roxanne into our family again? I think you must have forgotten what she did back then!¡±At the mention of Roxanne, Lucian knitted his brows again but didn¡®t respond.¡°Back then, you would have been with Aubree long ago if it weren¡®t for her! Our family wouldn¡®t have been treated as such a joke as well! She left without saying goodbye, but leaving behind a divorce agreement, and even abandoned Este, causing such a young child to be sent back to the country. She even turned our family upside down. I will never allow a woman like her to ever step foot into our family again!¡± At the thought of Roxanne, Sonya felt her blood boil. She mmed the armrest on the couch forcefully. ¡°I don¡®t care about what you think now. If you want to marry Aubree, fine. If you don¡®t, then so be it! Anyway, I¡®ve already spread the news of your mar riage with Aubree. The Farwell family will never go back on our word. Your marriage with Aubree is set!¡± With that, she didn¡®t give Lucian the opportunity to refute and nced at Este¡®s room upstairs, continuing in a softer tone, ¡°After Aubree hit Essie to spend more time with each other during this period to improve their rtionship. Essie has to ept Aubree as her mother eventually.¡±Seeing how obstina te his mother was, Lucian furrowed his brows.After all, it was his marriage, but they had already reache d the stage of discussing the engagement ceremony before he could even give his opinions.Sonya was even willing to forgive Aubree after her beloved granddaughter was hit.He didn¡®t know how much Aubr ele was involved in the whole fiesta.Seeing that he remained silent, Sonya took it that he was agreeing to it, and her anger dissipated. ¡°Also, the woman in the picture on the news today is Roxanne, right?¡±Lu cian remained silent.¡°I¡®ll just take it that the news today was an ident. The news of your marriage with Aubree has already spread. I don¡®t care what you think, but you¡®d better keep a distance from Rox anne. Be more mindful of how your actions can impact the two families.¡±Seeming to remember something, Sonya frowned, adding, ¡°And get that woman to ke ep to herself. I don¡®t wish for there to be a repeat of the news today! The woman in the picture can only be Aubree!¡±Before Lucian had the chance to reply, Sonya got up and strode off. = Chapter 204 Chapter 204 Chapter 204 After sitting in the living room for a while, Lucian instructed Catalina to get Este down for dinner.Este had been staying in her room obediently, thinking about what Son ya just said. She was full of anticipation as she fantasized about what it would be like if Roxanne beca me her mother.During dinner, she couldn¡®t help but ask, ¡°Daddy, are you going to marry Ms. Jarvis?¡±Sh e then gazed at him expectantly. Ever since Este came back, she only said a few words every time although she spoke quite a lot with him. That was the first time that she sai d such a long sentence to him.Lucian was taken aback before he realized what Este was asking. As he thought about Este¡®s attitude toward Roxanne, he was curious and asked, ¡°Do you like her?¡±As ex pected, Este nodded.I like Ms. Jarvis the most! When he saw the joy on Este¡®s face the moment sh e mentioned Roxanne, Lucian frowned slightly. ¡°What do you like about her?¡±After all, Este had only spent a pitifully little amount of time with Roxanne, but she seemed to be very dependent on thetter. Besides, she seemed even closer to Roxanne than Lucian.Lucian couldn¡®t seem to think of a n exnation for that and could only take it that it was because of their mother¨C daughter bond.Este hadn¡®t thought of that question before. Now that Lucian asked her, she tilted her head and thought about it seriously.After a pause, Este counted on her fingers and answered serious ly, ¡°Ms. Jarvis is beautiful, gentle, cooks well and she is very nice to me¡­¡±Listening to her response, Lucian was filled with mixed emotions as he asked, ¡°But Ms. Jarvis still has her two sons . Do you want them to stay with us too?¡±To that very day, Archie and Benny¡®s existence still bothered Lucian. Although they were obedient, and Lucian was very fond of them, he felt bad for them every time he thought about how their father had heartlessly abandoned both the boys and their mother. On the other hand, Este simply wore an innocent expression, and her eyes sparkled. ¡°Archie and Benny are very nice to me, and I like them a lot too!¡±I like Ms. Jarvis, and I also like Archie and Benny! With that, she then remembered her initial qu estion and looked at Lucian expectantly. ¡°So, are you going to marry Ms. Jarvis, Daddy? I want Ms. Jar vis to be my mommy!¡±If not, why would Daddy ask me so many questions about Ms. Jarvis? As she thought about that, Este became even more ¡®hopeful and thought that Roxanne was definitely going to be her mom.But why is Daddy taking such a long time to answer me? Este¡®s eyes were filled with confusion, and the anticipation in her heart died down slightly. ¡°Daddy?¡± s he cautiously urged him.Lucian snapped back to his senses, and his gaze darkened as he avoided Est e¡®s eyes. ¡°No.¡±At least not for the time being Refusing to give up, Este frowned, and she recalled w hat Sonya previously said. ¡°But Grandma said that¨C¡± That Daddy wanted to marry Ms. Jarvis. Before E ste could finish her words, Lucian interrupted her in a low voice, ¡°It was just a misunderstanding.¡±Luci an didn¡®t wish to continue with the conversation and filled Este¡®s te with food. ¡°Let¡®s eat. Rest early after you¡®re done eating.¡±Este got excited and talked so much previously just because she thought t hat Lucian was going to make Roxanne her mom.But now that she heard his response, she lowered he r gaze dejectedly and lost her appetite. She forced herself to finish the food on her te before she jum ped down from her chair and went back to her room without saying a word.Upon seeing how dejected Este see med, Lucian knitted his brows and fell silent.Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. Chapter 205 Chapter 205 Chapter 205 On the other side. Roxanne brought the kids home. She was hesitating whether to invite Colby insi de for a while.Colby could see her hesitation. Being a gentleman, he smiled and said, ¡°It¡®s gettingte a nd I should head back. See you tomorrow.¡±Roxanne sighed in relief. She didn¡®t ask him to stay. Instead , she smiled and said her goodbyes.After watching his car drive off, she held the hands of the two childr en and led them through to the door. Lysa had already prepared dinner. Seeing that they had returned, she served the food.Roxanne treated Lysa like her family. During meals, she would eat at the table with them.During their meal, Lysa smiled and asked, ¡° Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. Ms. Jarvis, have you seen the news today? You and Mr. Farwell¡­¡±Lysa came across the news in the afternoon earlier, The media had identally mistaken Roxanne for Lucian¡®s fianc¨¦e. While she found it hrious, she also fe lt like the two of them looked good together. Just as she wanted to tease Roxanne, thetter interrupted her.¡°It¡®s nothing but a misunderstanding, so just act like you saw nothing.¡±Roxanne looked d own when she spoke. At the same time, she served food for the two children.Seeing that she didn¡®t wa nt to talk about it, Lysa took the hint and said no more. She changed the topic and started to tell stories about the children in kindergarten.On the other hand, Archie and Benny were intrig ued by her words. However, they did not show it. They ate the food that and answered Lysa¡®s questions obediently.They struggled to make it through dinner. That night, the two of them were not in their usual mood to y Lego. Instead, they rushed back to their room.Roxanne¡®s heart could not help but sink slig htly. She knew that the children were aware of thenews.Inside the room, Archie and Benny intuitively opened up their social media and searched for Lucian¡®s name. Soon enough, they saw the trending articles.When they clicked on it, they saw two pictures that appeared in almost every article.Th e two children did not need to zoom in to see that the woman in the pictures was their mother.However, the titles of the articles stated that it was Lucian and his fianc¨¦e.The two children were confused for a moment.From what they knew, that man was supposed to marry som eone else. Why would the news post pictures of Mommy and im that she¡®s his fianc¨¦e? Regardless, even from their points of view, the pictures showed that Lucian treated their mother very well.They thought back to the night that Roxanne had fallen sick, and how Lucian had care d for her. His attitude back then was even better than what was shown in the photos.Beneath the article s, all thements praised how well Lucian treated Roxanne. There were also a lot ofments sayin g they looked verypatible.The children were slowly wavering.After reading through the articles, Arc hie and Benny could not help but carry theirptops and run to their mother for answers. ¡°Mommy, are you getting together with Mr. Farwell?¡±Roxanne took a look at the articles on the screen. She couldn¡®t h elp but frown.ScreeiShe was worried Archie and Benny would misunderstand. That was why she didn¡®t want Lysa to say too much during dinner. Unexpectedly, the two children decided to investigate the matter themselves.Archie and Benny looked at Roxanne with th eir eyes wide.¡°No. His fianc¨¦e is Aubree Pearson. You guys have met her. The news reports are wrong. ¡± After a moment of silence, Roxanne forced herself to suppress her difort and give the two children an exnation.Hearing that, Archie and Benny exchanged a nce with each other. Archi e nodded his head obediently and said nothing more.Meanwhile, Benny felt a slight pang of disappoint ment in his heart.He thought that he was finally going to have a father. Chapter 206 Chapter 206 Chapter 206 After Sonva had a talk with Lucian, she returned home. The first thing she did was call the Pearson residence.After the news was released, Aubree refused to go into the office and hear all the employee s gossip about how good Lucian looked with Roxanne in the photos. Thus, she decided to stay home fo Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. r the next two days.When Sonya called, Aubree was right next to Gina,¡°I¡®ve already spoken to Lucian. Tell Aubree not to worry. This won¡®t happen again. Just rest easy and wait for the engagement!¡± said Sonya over the phone. Gina nced over at Aubree and gestured for her to answer.answG Aubree adjusted her mood. In a po lite tone, she said, ¡°Thank you, Mrs. Farwell.¡±nHearing her voice, Sonya was stunned. Guilt washed ov er her heart when she thought about how Lucian had mentioned he had no intention of fulfilling the mar riage contract with her. ¡°Aubree, I¡®m sorry you have to go through this.¡±Aubree¡®s expression turned ugly . However, her words remained polite. ¡°I¡®m fine, Mrs. Farwell. As long as I can be with Lucian, I am willi ng to bear with all these.¡±Sonya felt bad for her. ¡°Don¡®t worry. No matter what, I will only acknowledge you as my daughter¨Cin¨C so no one will say anything.¡±Aubree responded with more thanks.After some small talk, the call ended. Aubree could finally let her heart down.However, when she recalled how intimate Lucian and Roxanne looked in those two pictures, she couldn¡®t help but feel her anger rise.Pre viously, during Alfred¡®s birthday celebration, Roxanne had already humiliated her once.Now, she almost ruined Aubree¡®s engagement.It seems like I have to teach that b*tch a lesson. She needs to be put in h er ce! After thinking about it all night, Aubree went to wait by the entrance of the kindergarten the ne xt day.She watched as Roxanne dropped Archie and Benny off. When she turned around to go back t o her car, Aubree quickly followed behind her. She strode over and opened Roxanne¡®s front passenger seat door.Roxanne automatically assumed it was Lucian. She raised an eyebrow and looked over. When shesaw who it was, her face turned solemn. ¡°What do you think you¡®re doing, M s. Pearson?¡±Aubree smirked. ¡°Nothing. I just wanted to have a chat with you. Are you free now, Ms. Jar vis?¡±Roxanne could already guess what she wanted to talk about. With a frown, she answered, ¡°Sorry, but I¡®m busy. I don¡®t have time to chat.¡±¡°You don¡®t even know what I want to say, but you¡®re in such a hu rry to reject me. Could it be that you¡®re feeling guilty, Ms. Jarvis?¡± Aubree asked mockingly.Hearing that , Roxanne¡®s face stiffened. She turned to meet Aubree¡®s eyes. ¡°I have work in the morning, so I¡®ll only be free at noon. Since you¡®re the one who suggested a talk, you can pick a ce. I¡®ll be there.¡±The only reason she rejected Aubree was that she felt like she had already drawn a clear line with Lucian. She was not interested in being drawn into Aubree and Lucian¡®s rtionship again.OnHowever, consid ering the fact that Aubree had taken things that far, she would only get worse in the future.Roxanne dec ided she might as well just clear things up now.Seeing that she had agreed, Aubree no longer pestered her. She opened the car door and got down.Watching her figure disappear from her line of sight, Roxan ne suppressed the confusion in her heart. She started the car and headed toward the research institute.These two days were a critical period for the project she was handling. Thus, she waspletely swamped with work the entire morning.By the time she got done and took a look at her phone, she realized it wasn¡®t long before it was time for her to meet Aubree at the designated time.Roxanne did not dy. She quickly got into her car and set off. Chapter 207 Chapter 207 Chapter 207 Despite her speedy driving, Aubree was already sitting there waiting when she reached the caf¨¦.¡°You¡¯re a very busy woman, Ms. Jarvis. I have to wait such a long time just to meet you.¡± The moment they met, Aubreeshed out with a sarcasticment. Roxanne sat down opposite her. ¡°My apologies. I was very busy this morning. I am sorry you had to wait long, Ms. Pearson.¡± Even after that, she could tell that Aubree still wanted to mock her further. Roxanne was not in the mood to waste more time with her. ¡°Ms. Pearson, as you can tell, I am quite a busy person. If you have anything to say, just get straight to the point. I still have to rush back to work.¡± . Hearing that, Aubree swallowed her words. She couldn¡¯t help but choke up as her expression turned cold. ¡°Don¡¯t you know what I want to say? My engagement with Lucian has been public news for a very long time. I doubt you haven¡¯t seen it!¡± Roxanne had already expected she would say something along those lines. Her facial expression did not waver. ¡°I have seen it. I wish you two lifelong happiness.¡± ¡°Roxanne Jarvis!¡± When Aubree saw how chill Roxanne¡¯s attitude was, she couldn¡¯t help but retort, Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. ¡°There¡¯s only the two of us here Why are you still putting on an act? Since you already knew about my engagement with Lucian, how will you exin the news headlines yesterday?¡±. It was just as Roxanne had suspected. Disdain filled Roxanne¡¯s heart, but her face remained neutral. ¡°Shouldn¡¯t you be very happy to read yesterday¡¯s headlines? Everyone is talking about how considerate Mr. Farwell is being toward his fianc¨¦e. Isn¡¯t that exactly what you want?¡± Anyhow, she had no intention to step forward with the truth. To an outsider¡¯s eye, the woman in the photo was Aubree. Aubree¡¯s face was still icy. She clenched her fists in an attempt to soothe the anger in her heart. She stared frostily at Roxanne and replied, ¡°I don¡¯t need those two photos to prove how well Lucian treats me. For the past six years, he has loved me only! If it wasn¡¯t for you, the person who married him would have been me too!¡± Roxanne was indifferent to her words. Aubree was telling the truth. Six years ago, Lucian himself had said that the only woman he intended to marry was Aubree. Roxanne still remembered that very clearly. ¡°Six years ago, you came in between Lucian and me. We missed out on so much time together because of you.¡± Aubree¡¯s face tensed. ¡°Now, everyone in Horington knows about the engagement between Lucian and me. Since you know about it, I hope you take better care of your reputation and stay away from him. Six years ago, you were the other woman. I hope you don¡¯t repeat that mistake. We are both women, but I feel ashamed for you!¡± Roxanne frowned. ¡°Instead of spending your time criticizing me, why don¡¯t you use that time on Mr. Farwell?¡± Six years ago, it was her ignorance that made her fall for Lucian. However, Lucian was the one who kept trying to get closer to her at the moment. Seeing that she was still in denial, Aubree¡¯s tone lowered. ¡°I am here to warn you out of kindness. Six years ago, you might not have cared about your reputation. Now, you have two children, so you should take them into consideration. If they knew their mother was the third party in someone else¡¯s marriage, I wonder what they will think!¡± Initially, Roxanne had intended to listen to what Aubree had to say. She thought that maybe they could get past the conflict between them. However, she never expected Aubree to bring Archie and Benny into the conversation. Immediately, Roxanne¡¯s face turned sour. ¡°Ms. Pearson, you can rest assured that I have no interest in turning back. However, I can¡¯t control how Mr. Farwell feels. I suggest you put more time and effort into pleasing Mr. Farwell instead.¡± With that, Roxanne stood up to leave without giving Aubree a chance to answer. Chapter 208 Chapter 208 Chapter 208 Roxanne left The caf¨¦ at a much earlier time than she expected. After getting in the car, Roxanne gripped the steering wheel. For a long time, she didn¡¯t start the car. Her mind was aplete mess. After being overseas for six years, she thought that she had gotten over her past. To her surprise, when Aubree brought it up to her, her mood was still affected. When she married Lucian six years ago, she did not even have any idea who Aubree was. If she had¡­ When she recalled how foolishly in love she was with Lucian back then, she mockingly bit her lower lip. There was a possibility she would have insisted on marrying him anyway. However, the happiness she felt when she married Lucian was equalized to how miserable she felt when she left him. Who would have thought that after a long time being married, they had only fulfilled their duties as husband and wife once after she drugged him. Not to mention, the next morning, she left with her heart broken. Thinking back to it, Roxanne felt she was so pitiful and hideous back then. Even worse, six years had passed, and still, she was the thorn between Lucian and Aubree¡¯s rtionship. She still remembered how Lucian had sworn he wanted to marry Aubree. Yet, for some reason, it had dragged on for six years. Their rtionship remained stuck at the engagement stage. The way he treated her was vastly different from six years ago. Roxanne was getting more confused about what went on in his mind. After being lost in her thoughts for a while in her car, Roxanne realized that time was running out. She slowly came back to reality, started her car, and headed for the research institute. She arrived just in time for her to clock back into work. Just as she got out of her car, she ran into Colby. He had just returned from having lunch outside. ¡°Dr. Jarvis, did you have a lunch appointment?¡± Colby smiled and walked with her to the research facility. Roxanne thought of her unpleasant experience earlier that afternoon. She shook her head. Colby looked at her for several seconds. After some hesitation, he asked, ¡°You seem like you¡¯re in a bad mood. Did your lunch appointment not go well?¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t help but feel taken aback. She didn¡¯t think she would be so easy to read. When he saw how she looked a little surprised, Colby knew he had guessed it right. With a chuckle, he changed the topic. ¡°Since you¡¯re upset, why don¡¯t you head home earlier? I¡¯ll handle the project. You should take the time to rx.¡± Roxanne declined. ¡°I can¡¯t let something small like this affect my work.¡± Hearing that, Colby nced at her in confusion. Slowly, he said, ¡°Dr. Jarvis, do you not trust me? All Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. this while, everyone has seen how hard you¡¯ve been working on this project. Many employees were also forced to work overtime because of that. There¡¯s bound to be some I¡¯m sure it¡¯ll help you be more efficient with workter on too.¡± Roxanne couldn¡¯t argue with his reasoning. She was used to the tough working life overseas. Aftering back, she just assumed that everyone could be like her. However, she forgot the fact that that was her first time working together with these employees. For the past two days, their research progress had been slowing down. Thinking of that, Roxanne nodded at Colby appreciatively. ¡°Thank you for the reminder. Since that¡¯s the case, rest early today.¡± At noon, all the workers in the research institute got off work early. Roxanne headed straight to the kindergarten to pick Archie and Benny up. Because of her earlier conversation with Aubree, she had no idea how to face Este. Hence, when she picked Archie and Benny up, she did not dare to look at Este at all. Instead, she left straight away. Chapter 209 Chapter 209 Chapter 209 ¡°Are you in a bad mood, Mommy?¡± Archie and Benny looked at her with concern.Roxanne was taken aback. She thought she had hidden her emotions well in front of her kids, but they saw right through her ruse.¡°Why did you ask?¡± she asked nonchntly, ncing at them in the rearview mirror.Archie¡®s face creased in bewilderment. ¡°You ignored Essie just now. Did Mr. Farwell an noy you?¡± The slightly unsettled feeling gnawed at the pit of her stomach at the mention of Lucian.She must have been really close with him during that period of time for Archie to have misunderstoodBenny added, ¡°Essie almost cried.¡±Roxanne drew her brows together in a frown, and her heart wrenched as she could only imagine Este¡®s pitiable face without seeing it fo r herself.She wished she could apologize to Este.Aubree¡®s words further solidified her inclination to cut all ties with Lucian.She didn¡®t want to interfere with the kids¡® friendship, but she rea lly wanted to limit her contact with Lucian.Roxanne stole a casual peek at them and said, ¡°Come out ea rlier after your sses end. I¡®ll be busy for the time being, so Ms. Lane will pick you up.¡±Archie and Ben N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. ny didn¡®t get the desired answer and exchanged puzzled nces before nodding obediently.The doorb ell rang shortly after Roxanne led them inside the house. She froze before turning to answer the door.M adilyn stood on the other side with a pinched expression. She opened her mouth, but she noticed Archi e and Benny inside, and the words caught in her throat.¡°What is it?¡± Roxanne turned sideways to let he r pass.Madilyn sucked in a deep breath, holding on to her temper by the thinnest of threads. ¡°I¡®ll tell you in a bit.¡± Roxanne didn¡®t press her for answers and invited her to stay for dinner.Madilyn only began her rant when Archie and Benny had gone upstairs aft er dinner. ¡°I saw the news yesterday. What was Lucian trying to do?¡±Roxanne was caught off guard by t he question and didn¡®t know how to respond.¡°He shouldn¡®t have looked for you after deciding to marry Aubree!¡± Madilyn pped her hand against the table. ¡°I thought he had turned over a new leaf when he sought you out. I never expected to see the news.¡±Madilyn had always known about Lucian and Aubre e¡®s betrothal, and she didn¡®t mind when it was publicized thest time.Roxanne and she lived next to ea ch other, and she noticed that Lucian had been visiting Roxanne more frequently. She tried to find an e xcuse for him thest time when he and Aubree¡®s betrothal was made public, thinking that he didn¡®t me an it.But yesterday¡®s news had angered her greatly.If Lucian wanted to treat Aubree well, why would he look for Roxanne then? He¡®s such a scumbag. Bitterness ate Roxanne¡®s already troubled heart. ¡°He w as set to marry Aubree from the get¨Cgo. Don¡®t overthink things.¡±Madilyn stared at her best friend in shock. The person who should be the most affected by the news is her, yet here I am, making her feel worse with my tirad e. She leashed her irritation and shot out of her seat, grabbing Roxanne¡®s arm. ¡°Come on, we¡®re going out for drinks and won¡®t be back until we¡®re both drunk as a skunk. Forget all about those low¨Clife men!¡± Chapter 210 Chapter 210 Chapter 210 Roxanne was worried about leaving Archie and Benny at home, but Madilyn assured her that she h ad informed Lysa beforehand.Soon, bothdies were standing outside the entrance of a bar, and Roxa nne followed Madilyn impetuouslyMadilyn was clearly a regr at the bar. As soon as they stepped in, an employee immediately greeted them and led them to a booth near the dance floor.Pulsating music b floor. Roxanne found herself slowly letting loose in the electric atmosphere. ¡°Drinks are on me tonight. Let¡®s drink our fill!¡± Madilyn yelled in her ear.Then, she ordered a bottle of alcohol worth ten thousand and poured a ss for Roxanne. ¡°There are plenty more fishes in the sea. Let¡®s not get hung up on one!¡±Roxanne epted the ss and clinked it with Madilyn¡®s, tossing back her drink in one gul p.Madilyn cracked a satisfied smile at Roxanne¡®s bold attitude.She had drunk with Roxanne a few time s when they were in university. Though Roxanne may look well¨C behaved, she could surely hold her liquor very well.Madilyn had mentally prepared herself to throw in her lot with Roxanne tonight just to lift her spirits.Roxanne downed a few more ss es, and she started to loosen up, putting the day¡®s problems on the back burner.Madilyn wasn¡®t content ed with only drinking, so she mmed her ss down on the table and seized Roxanne¡®s hand. ¡°Let¡®s dance!¡±Then, she dragged her to the dance floor without waiting for a response.Their decision toe to a bar was a hasty one, so their outfits weren¡®t exactly appropriate while the women around them wer e dressed scantily.However, their beautiful faces still attracted the gaze of other patrons.Roxanne was wearing a long dress that reached her knees, baring her pale calves as she moved rhythmically to the music under the strobing lights. A hint of a smile pulled at her lips, and her eyes were downcast. Her bo dy movements were erratic yet oddly mesmerizing. Madilyn, on the other hand, was surveying the cro wd as she danced, hoping to find a man better than Lucian for her best friend. Nheless, she was p Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. ushed to the middle of the dance floor in her engrossment and lost sight of Roxanne when she looked back.Her expression froze, and she stopped dancing and checking out on men, frantically searching for Roxanne in the press of bodies on the dance floor.¡°Are you looking for someone, beautiful?¡± a man asked flirtatiously.¡°Get out of my way! I¡®m in the middle of a crisis.¡± She didn¡®t even spare him a nce.Meanwhile, Roxanne immediately realized Madilyn was getting swallow ed up by the crowd and called out her name twice, but her voice was drowned out by the deafening music, and she could only watch as her best friend disappeared before her eyes.She wa nted to go after Madilyn, but her gaze was riveted upon a couple kissing passionately, and she halted in her tracks.She turned and went to their booth after a pause, figuring Madilyn would make her way back here once she realized they had been separated.She wasn¡®t keen on clubbing, to begin with, so it was a wee respite for her.A cheery voice spoke beside her a few minutester. ¡°Hello, can I buy you a drink, if you don¡®t mind?¡±The male voice was muffled by the cacophony of the bar, and Roxanne though t she had misheard him when she raised her gaze. Surprised crossed her face when she saw a polishe d man dressed in a casual shirt standing in front of her.He was also taken aback when their eyes connected. Knowing she didn¡®t q uite catch what he said, he leaned in closer to repeat himself a little louder, ¡°Can I buy you a drink? You¡®re very be autiful and elegant. I wish to befriend you if that¡®s possible.¡± Chapter 211 Chapter 211 Chapter 211 Roxanne frowned slightly and was about to reject Hugo Reynolds. Meanwhile, escaping from the crowd on the dance floor, Madilyn sat be side her directly and started to give Hugo a once¨C over.Hugo had an elegant appearance. His chiseled facial features remained obvious under the bar¡®s di m light. Although Hugocked a fit body, he was not too skinny. Besides, judging from his attire, Madily n could tell that his outfit cost about one hundred thousand.Hmm. I guess I can give him an eight out of ten? After rating him inwardly, Madilyn agreed before Roxanne could decline him, ¡°Sure! Do you have a ny friends? Ask them toe over!¡± N?velDrama.Org ? 2024. Hugo¡®s table was right next to theirs. In fact, he had noticed them earlier when both of them danced together. Hence, he knew that they came together. Hearing Madilyn¡®s agreement, Hugo did not hesitate and asked his friends to join their table. His friends were good¨C looking, and all of them dressed in expensive clothes. As they approached the table, they brought alon g their wine.As they came over, Hugo¡®s friends were polite enough to maintain a reasonable distance fr om Roxanne and Madilyn.Upon scrutinizing the guys, Madilyn raised her brows as she questioned, ¡°Yo u guys are quite good¨Clooking. Are all of you single?¡±They responded, ¡°How dare we sit here if we aren¡®t single?¡±Then, Madilyn swept a meaningful gaze at Hugo who had just appr oached her table. ¡°How about him? Is he single as well? Hugo merely smiled at his friends, hinting that he did not mind them telling her the truth.¡°Hugo¡®s been si ngle for years. We have no idea what kind of women he¡®s interested in anymore. However, today¡­¡± As they replied, they cast him teasing nces.Hearing that, Hugo beamed and interrupted, ¡°Stop talking. L et¡®s have a drink, shall we?¡±In unison, his friends swiftly changed the topic.After having small talk with t he guys, Madilyn got along well with everyone and soon filled the air with chatter.In reality, Roxanne ca me to the bar to drink her sorrows away. Facing that situation, she had no choice but to appear unruffle d in front of everyone, despite feeling ufortable. Meanwhile, Madilyn was having a great time, and she moved to sit between the guys afterward. Subsequently, she yed some drinking games with the others, leaving R oxanne to sit all alone at the side.There was a space between Roxanne and Hugo after Madilyn left.¡°I¡® m sorry. Did we interrupt both of you?¡± Hugo asked apologetically.Hearing his question, Roxanne was b riefly stunned. ¡°Don¡®t worry. We¡®re all here to have a drink. You¡®re not disturbing us at all.¡± She smiled faintly.He frowned and asked, ¡°You don ¡®t seem to be in the mood for it. Are you in a bad mood?¡±Roxanne pressed her lips into a smile, admitting it silently . At the same time, it showed her reluctance to continue the conversation with him.Nheless, her indiffer ence toward him piqued Hugo¡®s interest.Hugo could tell that she was unbothered to continue the conve rsation. Hence, he drank alone slowly at the side while fixing his eyes on Roxanne¡®s face.At the side, M adilyn noticed that the two of them were drinking alone. That very sight pulled at Madilyn¡®s heartstrings. To break the ice, she sugges ted ying a card game whereby the person who got the King of Hearts card could instruct anyone to do anything.Before Roxanne could refuse, Madilyn swiftly shoved a card into R oxanne¡®s hand while she took the King of Hearts card.¡°Seven of Spades and Five of Diamonds.¡±Everyo ne looked at their cards.Looking at the Five of Diamonds card in her hand, Roxanne could feel a foreboding feeling growing in her heart.Madilyn gazed at her indifferently and voiced, ¡°Since we know each other, I won¡®t be requesting much. How about both of you drink a crossed¨C cup wine with each other? It¡®s not too much to ask for, right?¡±It was indeed a simple request in a drinkin g game. Refusing to be a total buzzkill, Roxanne agreed to Madilyn¡®s request with a smile.Hugo flipped his card, only to see he got a Seven of Spades. He nced at Madilyn the matchmaker helplessly before turning to Roxanne and said, ¡°Let¡®s just clink our sses instead of drinking a crossed¨C cup wine.¡±Seeing the Seven of Spades in Hugo¡®s hand, Roxanne could feel her heart sink slightly. It wa s at that moment she realized Madilyn¡®s intention to match them up. She regretted agreeing to her requ est that readily.However, Roxanne heaved a sigh of relief after hearing what Hugo said. Then, she rais ed her ss to clink it against Hugo¡®s ss. Chapter 212 Chapter 212 Chapter 212 Meanwhile in the VIP room upstairs, Lucian watched the middle¨C Copyright N?v/el/Dra/ma.Org. aged men with pot bellies toasting each other with a nk expression.When he picked Este up that afternoon, he noticed that she was in low spirits. Further to that. Este had just thrown a tantrum at him upon reaching home.I guess Essie¡®s in a bad mood because she hasn¡®t seen Roranne in a while. Perhaps she treated Essie aloofly? Regardless of t he reason, I¡®m still the one to me. She¡®s keeping a distance from Essie on purpose because of me. Because of that matter, Lucian was feeling cranky the whole night. He got even more irritated for not obtaining any satisfactory proposal from those men, albeit having a lo ng day of discussion.¡°Excuse me. I¡®m heading out for some fresh air.¡± With that said, Lucian stood up di rectly.The men dared not utter a word and watched him stride out of the room.Lucian¡®s private room wa s facing the dance floor downstairs. As he walked out, his gaze fell to the dance floor, and he saw a glimpse of a familiar figure.Immediately, Lucian paused in his tracks.The light flickered uncontrobly on the dance floor, and it caused Lucian to doubt his eyesight. As he attempted to look again, that famili ar figure was already out of his sight.He stood still, staring straight at the dance floor, hoping that he co uld locate that figure again. Nevertheless, he found nothing. Lucian retracted his gaze and started to sc off at himself inwardly.I wonder what kind of magic power Roxanne has? I was merely checking the ce out. Why would I have a figment of my imagination? Just when he was about to turn around and return, he heard a loud noiseing from one of the tables downstairs.That sound instantly attracted everyone¡®s attention. With that, almost everyone in the bar shifted their attention to the table, including Lucian.Lucian¡®s eyes darkened at once when he saw the p erson from that table. It wasn¡®t an illusion! That familiar figure was indeed Roxanne! She must have ret urned back to her table after getting tired of dancing on the dance floor. Lucian fixed his eyes on her and was quick enough to notice that she was getting surrounded by men. Apart from that, he also saw her grinning fro m ear to ear with one of them.From the look of it, they broke into an uproar because of what Roranne did with that man. They look intimate together. Meanwhile, Roxanne downed her drink s in one go after clinking sses with Hugo.Witnessing that, everyone cheered excitedly for them.Roxa nne put her ss down and sensed that something was amiss. She could feel someone looking in her direction from a distance when she drank the wine just now.She lifted her head to nce up instinctively, but it was dark.Strange enough, s he had a hunch that it was Lucian.With that thought in her mind, Roxanne suddenly lost her mood to continue drinking anymore.¡°I¡®m tired. I think I¡®ll make a move first.¡± Roxanne smiled apologetically to everyone before approaching Madilyn and sugge sted, ¡°It¡®s gettingte. Let¡®s go back.¡±Madilyn had been drinking for quite a while and was feeling quite tipsy. Hearing Roxanne¡®s words, she nodded in a daze and murmured, ¡°O kay. Have fun, guys. We¡®ll leave first.¡±With that said, she stretched out her hand toward Roxanne.Roxa nne strenuously helped her up while politely bidding goodbye to everyone.¡°Let me help you girls.¡± Hugo stood up and continued, ¡°You seem to be struggling. Let me help you get her into the car.¡± Roxanne hesitated for a few seconds. Looking at the tipsy Madilyn, she agreed eventually, ¡°Thank you for your help!¡±After interacting with Hugo that night, she had a pretty good impression of him. Besides, Roxanne could not support Madilyn alone after having a few sses of wine.Seeing that she had agree d, Hugo went up to them and was about to lend Roxanne a hand. It was at that moment he heard a dee p voiceing from behind. The tone of the man sounded displeased.¡°I appreciate your kindness, but I ¡®ll send the girls back. Thank you, Mr. Reynolds.¡± Chapter 213 Chapter 213 Chapter 213 Several people were stunned to hear that voice.Roxanne¡®s body instinctively stiffened at once.She knew Lucian too well. By listening to his voice alone, she could imagine his frosty expressionat that mo ment. Moreover, Roxanne did not know how to face the man behind her due to recent events.However, Lucia n had already walked in front of them.Hugo noticed Lucian¡®s keen gaze on Roxanne. His expression ch anged immediately. ¡°Mr. Farwell¡­?¡±He did not know that Lucian had another woman apart from Aubre e.Nevertheless, suspicion began to creep into Hugo¡®s mind when he saw Lucian¡®s attitude toward Roxa nne.Lucian¡®s expression turned cold when he recalled the scene of Roxanne clinking her ss with Hu go earlier. ¡°Mr. Reynolds, you should be careful when flirting with women. You shouldn¡®t approach thos e who already have children.¡±As he spoke, Lucian threw Roxanne a meaningful nce.A look of surprise shed in Hugo¡®s eyes as he heard the sarcastic remark.Roxanne has children already? I didn ¡®t see thating at all. Roxanne did not expect Lucian to suddenly bring up the matter in front of a str anger and still used it to provoke her. Her expression darkened like a storm. ¡°Yes, I do have two children. However, it doesn¡®t affect my life nor what kind of people I make friends with. Mr. Farwell, you don¡®t have to worry a bout me.¡±The surrounding temperature seemed to drop as Lucian turned his gaze to Hugo and his frien ds. Pursing his lips, he asked, ¡°Are you sure you want to talk about this matter here?¡±They were very cl ose to the dance floor. With their outstanding looks, they began to attract the crowd¡®s attention.Noticing the curious nces from the onlookers, Roxanne clenched her fists to suppress her rising anger. Supp orting Madilyn, she turned on her heel and strode out of the bar.Hugo subconsciously wanted to follow Roxanne. Nevertheless, he stopped in his tracks upon seeing that Lucian was walking closely behind h er.As the cold breeze blew against Roxanne, she began to sober up by the time she walked to the entrance of the bar. When Roxanne was about to hail a taxi by the roadside, she heard clear footsteps from behind Content ? provided by N?velDrama.Org. her. It was immediately followed by Lucian¡®smanding tone. ¡°Let me take you girls home.¡±Without looking back, Roxanne turned down his offer. ¡°Mr. Farwell, you don¡®t have to do that. We can go home by taxi.¡±Lucian¡®s brows creased as he went straight for her jugr. ¡°How long do you think you¡®ll have t o wait for a taxi in a ce like this? Or are you willing to make Archie and Benny wait for your return?¡±H earing that, Roxanne froze.Roxanne did not have time to exin to Lysa when she left the house earlie r. Moreover, she did not know what Madilyn had said to them. Could Archie and Benny be waiting for m e right now? The stalematested for a while as there was not a single vacant taxi on the road. Instead, Madilyn had fallen asleep.A car sl owly stopped in front of Roxanne. The passenger seat¡®s window wound down to reveal Lucian¡®s stern s ide profile. ¡°Get in.¡± |Roxanne furrowed her brows at his order.However, Madilyn, who was standing bes ide her, shuddered in cold. Upon waking up, she saw a car in front of her and mistook it for a taxi. With out thinking, she opened the car door and settled inside.Madilyn¡®s behavior made Roxanne stiffen in sh ock. Thetter leaned over to ask Madilyn to get out of the car. Nevertheless, Roxanne saw that her be st friend had already dozed off.After contemting for a while, Roxanne followed suit. Looking at Lucia n in front of her, she said faintly, ¡°Thank you, Mr. Farwell. I guess I owe you a favor now.¡±Lucian frowne d without replying to her. He instructed the driver to send them to Roxanne¡®s residence in a deep voice. Soon, the car moved slowly and began to drive toward the destination.Throughout the ride, the car was dead silent apart from the asional sounds of Madilyn s mumbling.The atmosphere inside the car wa s heavy. Chapter 214 Chapter 214 Chapter 214 When they arrived at the mansion, Lucian suddenly spoke up when Roxanne was about to help M adilyn get out of the car.¡°If you¡®re worried about your children, why would you go to a ce like that?¡±Roxanne could see Lucian¡®s frosty expression through the rearview mirror.Pausing for a moment, she replied, ¡°Mr. Farwell, you mad e the bar sound like some kind of shady ce. Weren¡®t you there too?¡± ¡°Unlike you, I was there for business. Ms. Jarvis, you sure have many men apanying you earlier,¡± Lucian retorted.Roxanne could not help frowning at his jibe. At that moment, she also recalled the word s Lucian had said to her at the bar.¡°Ms. Jarvis, since you already have two children, I advise you to clea n up your act. Even if you don¡®t care about your reputation, think about your boys. I wonder what will they think if they knew their mother has been frequenting that kind of ce while chatting up some random guys,¡± . Lucian added slyly.It was not the first time they had discussed such topic.Roxanne did not know if it was because of the wine, but she could not suppress her anger at that moment. ¡°Mr. Farwell, don¡®t you think you¡®re being nosy by m N?velDrama.Org owns this text. eddling in my private life? So whatif I¡®ve two children? I¡®m single right now. What¡®s wrong with me havin g a drink or two with another man? We¡®re all adults here,¡± she retorted.* WasLucian¡®s frown deepened when he sensed that Roxanne was on the verge of losing her temper. He wanted to retort but ended up saying nothing.Despite having two children, I can¡®t argue the fact that Roxanne is a single woman right now. Given our current rtionship, I¡®m not in a position to interfere with her private life either. Still, I ge t p*ssed seeing her with another man, After staying silent for a few seconds, Lucian uttered, ¡°Are you nning to find a father for Archie and Benny in a ce like that? Do you think you can find a reliable man there?¡±Roxanne let out a chuckle. ¡°I¡®ll only know if the man is reliable once we get to know each ot her. Of course, I can¡®t find out if the man is reliable if you keep interrupting us like what you did earlier. Mr. Farwell, if you¡®re so worried, why don¡®t you introduce s omeone to me?¡±¡°Roxanne!¡± A sh of anger passed through Lucian¡®s eyes.Roxanne averted her gaze i n disappointment. ¡°Mr. Farwell, since you don¡®t n to do that, you should mind your own business fro m now on.¡±OIWith that, she opened the car door and helped Madilyn out of the car.Through the rearvie w mirror, Lucian saw that Roxanne was struggling to walk while supportingMadilyn. Frowning, he got o ut of the car and wanted to give Roxanne a hand.Sensing Lucian¡®s intention, Roxanne immediately turn ed sideways to avoid him. Looking at the man, who was standing close to her, she said indifferently, ¡°M r. Farwell, you¡®re right to say that people should be careful while choosing a partner. I¡®m not interested i n a married man. Since you already have a fianc¨¦e, you should keep your distance from me.¡±Lucian¡®s e xpression changed when he heard her remarks.Roxanne continued coldly, ¡°Mr. Farwell, if Ms. Pearson and Este misunderstand the situation, it might ruin the happy life in your family. I don¡®t know how to make amends for that.¡±ording to Aubree, Roxanne was the homewrecker six years ago. Hence, she did not want toe between them again.Lucian¡®s expression darkened like a raging storm when he s aw her indifferent attitude. The atmosphere around him was filled with tension.Nevertheless, Roxanne helped Madilyn inside as though she did not see his expression. Chapter 215 Chapter 215 Chapter 215 Roxanne did not know how to face Este due to her unpleasant encounters with Lucian. She would even avoid talking about Este whenever Archie and Benny brought her up. It did not take long for the two sensitive boys to notice Roxanne¡®s strange attitude toward Este. Even though they were not avoiding Este in school, their attitude toward thetter had be colder.Este hardly spoke since she had just learned to talk. She would only speak a few words when others brought up a N?velDrama.Org owns this text. topic that she was interested in. Este¡®s condition gradually returned to its original state when Archie and Benny did not take the initiative to talk to her. Furthermore, she had not seen Roxanne for a few days. Lucian was the only one who noticed the changes in Este. A few days ago, Lucian could still hear Este speak up asionally after bringing her home. Nevertheless, Este had been unwilling to talk for the past two days. Lucian was worried that Este might suffer a rpse. However, the only person who could improve Este¡®s condition had made it clear that she wanted to keep her distance from Lucian. The man felt conflicted whenever he thought of Roxanne. After picking Este up from school in the evening, Lucian wanted to guide her into speaking by following James¡® method. ¡°Essie, how are you doing in thest two days? Are you in a bad mood?¡± That kind of one¨Csided conversation had been going on for several days. Nevertheless, Este remained silent. Lucian thought it would be the same that day. Surprisingly, the moment he finished speaking, a sweet but pitiful voice sounded in the car. Pouting, Este said dejectedly, ¡°I didn¡®t see¡­¡± ¡°What didn¡®t you see?¡± Lucian probed, feeling confused. Este mumbled, ¡°Ms. Jarvis.¡± Then, she carefully counted on her fingers before stretching out four fingers. ¡°Four days.¡± I haven¡®t seen Ms. Jarvis for four days. It was Ms. Lane who picked up Archie and Benny every day. Even though Ms. Lane was also kind to me, I still miss Ms. Jarvis dearly. Waves of emotions surged within Lucian, knowing fully well that Este could not see Roxanne because thetter was avoiding him on purpose. Nevertheless, he did not know how to exin the situation to Este. Lucian had not seen Roxanne since their argument when he sent her home from the bar that night. As Roxanne said, the two of us are merely strangers right now. As that thought urred to him, Lucian felt an inexplicable sense of displeasure deep down. After a while, he slowly broke out of his reverie.Seeing how sullen Este was next to him, Lucian suddenly felt that something was amiss. Wait. Didn¡®t she talk with me just now? Realizing that, Lucian knitted his brows in amazement. As if nothing had happened, he tried to get Este to talk again. ¡°Essie, what did you just say? I didn¡®t hear it earlier. Can you repeat it for me?¡± Este simply kept her head low, revealing the round back of her head and her puffed cheeks. She turned a blind ear to his question. Despite theck of response, Lucian patiently patted Este¡®s head before trying to guide her again. ¡°You said Ms. Jarvis didn¡®t pick up the boys from school.Then, who was the one who fetched them thesest two days?¡± As soon as he mentioned Roxanne, Este slowly raised her head to look at him. Lucian¡®s heart raced. He was expecting Este to finally reply to him. Much to his surprise, Este merely nced at him before shaking her head silently. Then, she lowered her head again as if she refused to